The electronic edition is a part of the UNC-CH database "A Digitized Library of Southern Literature: Beginnings to 1920."
Any hyphens occurring in line breaks have been removed, and the trailing part of a word has been joined to the preceding line.
All quotation marks and
ampersand have been transcribed as entity references.
All double right and left quotation marks are encoded as " and "
respectively.
All single right and left
quotation marks are encoded as ' and ' respectively.
Indentation in lines has
not been preserved.
Running titles have not
been preserved.
Spell-check and verification made against printed text using Author/Editor (SoftQuad) and Microsoft Word spell checkers.
Library of Congress Subject Headings, 21st
edition, 1998
[Cover Image]
[Title Page Image]
COPYRIGHT, 1900, BY
ELLEN GLASGOW
Press of J.J. Little & Co.
Astor Place, New York
TO REBE GORDON GLASGOW
THE VOICE OF THE PEOPLE
The last day of Circuit Court was over at Kingsborough.
The jury had vanished from the semicircle of straight-backed chairs in the old court-house, the clerk had laid aside his pen along with his air of listless attention, and the judge was making his way through the straggling spectators to the sunken stone steps of the platform outside. As the crowd in the doorway parted slightly, a breeze passed into the room, scattering the odours of bad tobacco and farm-stained clothing. The sound of a cow-bell came through one of the small windows, from the green beyond, where a red-and-white cow was browsing among the buttercups.
"A fine day, gentlemen," said the judge, bowing to right and left. "A fine day."
He moved slowly, fanning himself absently with
his white straw hat, pausing from time to time to exchange a word of greeting - secure in the inalienable affability of one who is not only a judge of man but a Bassett of Virginia. From his classic head to his ill-fitting boots he upheld the traditions of his office and his race.
On the stone platform, just beyond the entrance, he stopped to speak to a lawyer from a neighbouring county. Then, as a clump of men scattered at his approach, he waved them together with a bland, benedictory gesture which descended alike upon the high and the low, upon the rector of the old church up the street, in his rusty black, and upon the red-haired, raw-boned farmer with his streaming brow.
"Glad to see you out, sir," he said to the one, and to the other, "How are you, Burr? Time the crops were in the ground, isn't it?"
Burr mumbled a confused reply, wiping his neck laboriously on his red cotton handkerchief.
"The corn's been planted goin' on six weeks," he said more distinctly, ejecting his words between mouthfuls of tobacco juice as if they were pebbles which obstructed his speech. "I al'ays stick to plantin' yo' corn when the hickory leaf's as big as a squirrel's ear. If you don't, the luck's agin you."
"An' whar thar's growin' corn thar's a sight o' hoein'," put in an alert, nervous-looking countryman. "If I lay my hoe down for a spell, the weeds git so big I can't find the crop."
Amos Burr nodded with slow emphasis: "I never see land take so natural to weeds nohow as mine do." he said. "When you raise peanuts you're raisin' trouble."
He was a lean, overworked man, with knotted hands the colour of the soil he tilled and an inanely honest face, over which the freckles showed like splashes of mud freshly dried. As he spoke he gave his blue jean trousers an abrupt hitch at the belt.
"Dear me! Dear me!" returned the judge with absent-minded, habitual friendliness, smiling his rich, beneficent smile. Then, as he caught sight of a smaller red head beneath Burr's arm, he added: "You've a right-hand man coming on, I see. What's your name, my boy?"
The boy squirmed on his bare, brown feet and wriggled his head from beneath his father's arm. He did not answer, but he turned his bright eyes on the judge and flushed through all the freckles of his ugly little face.
"Nick - that is, Nicholas, sir," replied the elder Burr with an apologetic cough, due to the insignificance of the subject. "Yes, sir, he's leetle, but he's plum full of grit. He can beat any nigger I ever seed at the plough. He'd outplough me if he war a head taller."
"That will mend," remarked the lawyer from the neighbouring county with facetious intention. "A boy and a beanstalk will grow, you know. There's no helping it."
"Oh, he'll be a man soon enough," added the judge, his gaze passing over the large, red head to rest upon the small one, "and a farmer like his father before him, I suppose."
He was turning away when the child's voice checked him, and he paused.
"I - I'd ruther be a judge," said the boy.
He was leaning against the faded bricks of the old court-house, one sunburned hand playing nervously with the crumbling particles. His honest little face was as red as his hair.
The judge started.
"Ah!" he exclaimed, and he looked at the child with his kindly eyes. The boy was ugly, lean, and stunted in growth, browned by hot suns and powdered by the dust of country roads, but his eyes caught the gaze of the judge and held it.
Above his head, on the brick wall, a board was nailed, bearing in black marking the name of the white-sand street which stretched like a chalk-drawn line from the grass-grown battlefields to the pale old buildings of King's College. The street had been called in honour of a duke of Gloucester. It was now "Main" Street, and nothing more, though it was still wide and white and placidly impressed by the slow passage of Kingsborough feet. Beyond the court-house the breeze blew across the green, which was ablaze with buttercups. Beneath the warm wind the yellow heads assumed the effect of a brilliant tangle, spreading over the unploughed common, running astray in the grass-lined ditch that bordered the walk, hiding beneath dusty-leaved plants in unsuspected hollows, and breaking out again under the horses' hoofs in the sandy street.
"Ah!" exclaimed the judge, and a good-natured laugh ran round the group.
"Wall, I never!" ejaculated the elder Burr, but there was no surprise in his tone; it expressed rather the helplessness of paternity.
The boy faced them, pressing more firmly against the bricks.
"There ain't nothin' in peanut-raisin'," he said. "It's jest farmin' fur crows. I'd ruther be a judge."
The judge laughed and turned from him.
"Stick to the soil, my boy," he advised. "Stick to the soil. It is the best thing to do. But if you choose the second best, and I can help you, I will - I will, upon my word - Ah! General," to a jovial-faced, wide-girthed gentleman in a brown linen coat, "I'm glad to see you in town. Fine weather!"
He put on his hat, bowed again, and went on his way.
He passed slowly along in the spring sunshine, his feet crunching upon the gravel, his straight shadow falling upon the white level between coarse fringes of wire-grass. Far up the town, at the street's sudden end, where it was lost in diverging roads, there was visible, as through a film of bluish smoke, the verdigris-green foliage of King's College. Nearer at hand the solemn cruciform of the old church was steeped in shade, the high bell-tower dropping a veil of English ivy as it rose against the sky. Through the rusty iron gate of the graveyard the marble slabs glimmered beneath submerging grasses, long, pale, tremulous like reeds.
The grass-grown walk beside the low brick wall of the churchyard led on to the judge's own garden, a square enclosure, laid out in straight vegetable rows, marked off by variegated borders of flowering plants - heartsease, foxglove, and the red-lidded eyes of scarlet poppies. Beyond the feathery green of the asparagus bed there was a bush of flowering syringa,
another at the beginning of the grass-trimmed walk, and yet another brushing the large white pillars of the square front porch - their slender sprays blown from sun to shade like fluttering streamers of cream-coloured ribbons. On the other side there were lilacs, stately and leafy and bare of bloom, save for a few ashen-hued bunches lingering late amid the heavy foliage. At the foot of the garden the wall was hidden in raspberry vines, weighty with ripening fruit.
The judge closed the gate after him and ascended the steps. It was not until he had crossed the wide hall and opened the door of his study that he heard the patter of bare feet, and turned to find that the boy had followed him.
For an instant he regarded the child blankly; then his hospitality asserted itself, and he waved him courteously into the room.
"Walk in, walk in, and take a seat. I am at your service."
He crossed to one of the tall windows, unfastening the heavy inside shutters, from which the white paint was fast peeling away. As they fell back a breeze filled the room, and the ivory faces of microphylla roses stared across the deep window-seat. The place was airy as a summer-house and odorous with the essence of roses distilled in the sunshine beyond. On the high plastered walls, above the book-shelves, rows of bygone Bassetts looked down on their departed possessions - stately and severe in the artificial severity of periwigs and starched ruffles. They looked down with immobile eyes and the placid monotony of past fashions, smiling always the
same smile, staring always at the same spot of floor or furniture.
Below them the room was still hallowed by their touch. They asserted themselves in the quaint curves of the rosewood chairs, in the blue patterns upon the willow bowls, and in the choice lavender of the old Wedgwood. Their handiwork was visible in the laborious embroideries of the fire-screen near the empty grate, and the spinet in one unlighted corner still guarded their gay and amiable airs.
"Sit down," said the judge. "I am at your service."
He seated himself before his desk of hand-carved mahogany, pushing aside the papers that littered its baize-covered lid. In the half-gloom of the high-ceiled room his face assumed the look of a portrait in oils, and he seemed to have descended from his allotted square upon the plastered wall, to be but a boldly limned composite likeness of his race, awaiting the last touches and the gilded frame.
"What can I do for you?" he asked again, his tone preserving its unfailing courtesy. He had not made an uncivil remark since the close of the war - a line of conduct resulting less from what he felt to be due to others than from what he believed to be becoming in himself.
The boy shifted on his bare feet. In the old-timed setting of the furniture he was an alien - an anachronism - the intrusion of the hopelessly modern into the helplessly past. His hair made a rich spot in the colourless atmosphere, and it seemed to focus the incoming light from the unshuttered window, leaving the background in denser shadow.
The animation of his features jarred the serenity of the room. His profile showed gnome-like against the nodding heads of the microphylla roses.
"There ain't nothin' in peanut raisin'," he said suddenly; "I - I'd ruther be a judge."
"My dear boy!" exclaimed the judge, and finished helplessly, "my dear boy - I - well - I - "
They were both silent. The regular droning of the old clock sounded distinctly in the stillness. The perfume of roses, mingling with the musty scent from the furniture, borrowed the quality of musk.
The child was breathing heavily. Suddenly he dug the dirty knuckles of one fist into his eyes.
"Don't cry," began the judge. "Please don't. Perhaps you would like to run out and play with my boy Tom?"
"I warn't cryin'," said the child. "It war a gnat."
His hand left his eyes and returned to his hat - a wide-brimmed harvest hat, with a shoestring tied tightly round the crown.
When the judge spoke again it was with seriousness.
"Nicholas - your name is Nicholas, isn't it?"
"Yes, sir."
"How old are you?"
"Twelve, sir."
"Can you read?"
"Yes, sir."
"Write?"
"Y-e-s, sir."
"Spell?"
The child hesitated. "I - I can spell - some."
"Don't you know it is a serious thing to be a judge?"
"Yes, sir."
"You must be a lawyer first."
"Yes, sir."
"It is hard work."
"Yes, sir."
"And sometimes it's no better than farming for crows."
The boy shook his head. "It's cleaner work, sir."
The judge laughed.
"I'm afraid you are obstinate, Nicholas," he said, and added: "Now, what do you want me to do for you? I can't make you a judge. It took me fifty years to make myself one - a third-rate one at that - "
"I - I'd l-i-k-e to take a bo-b-o-o-k," stammered the boy.
"Dear me!" said the judge irritably, "dear me!"
He frowned, his gaze skimming his well-filled shelves. He regretted suddenly that he had spoken to the child at the court-house. He would never be guilty of such an indiscretion again. Of what could he have been thinking? A book! Why didn't he ask for food - money - his best piece of fluted Royal Worcester?
Then a loud, boyish laugh rang in from the garden, and his face softened suddenly. In the sun-scorched, honest-eyed little figure before him he saw his own boy - the single child of his young wife, who was lying beneath a marble slab in the churchyard. Her face, mild and Madonna-like, glimmered
against the pallid rose leaves in the deep window-seat.
He turned hastily away.
"Yes, yes," he answered, "I will lend you one. Read the titles carefully. Don't let the books fall. Never lay them face downwards - and don't turn down the leaves!"
The boy advanced timidly to the shelves between the southern windows. He ran his hands slowly along the lettered backs, his lips moving as he spelled out the names.
"The F-e-d-e-r-a-l-i-s-t," "B-l-a-c-k-s-t-o-n-e-'s C-o-m-m-e-n-t-a-r-i-e-s," "R-e-v-i-s-e-d Sta-tu-tes of the U-ni-ted Sta-tes."
The judge drew up to his desk and looked over his letters. Then he took up his pen and wrote several replies in his fine, flowing handwriting. He had forgotten the boy, when he felt a touch upon his arm.
"What is it?" he asked absently. "Ah, it is you? Yes, let me see. Why! you've got Sir Henry Maine!"
The boy was holding the book in both hands. As the judge laughed he flushed nervously and turned towards the door.
The judge leaned back in his chair, watching the small figure cross the room and disappear into the hall. He saw the tracks of dust which the boy's feet left upon the smooth, bare floor, but he was not thinking of them. Then, as the child went out upon the porch, he started up.
"Nicholas!" he called, "don't turn down the leaves!"
A facetious stranger once remarked that Kingsborough dozed through the present to dream of the past and found the future a nightmare. Had he been other than a stranger, he would, perhaps, have added that Kingsborough's proudest boast was that she had been and was not - a distinction giving her preëminence over certain cities whose charters were not received from royal grants - cities priding themselves not only upon a multiplicity of streets, but upon the more plebeian fact that the feet of their young men followed the offending thoroughfares to the undignified music of the march of progress.
But, whatever might be said of places that shall be nameless, it was otherwise with Kingsborough. Kingsborough was the same yesterday, to-day, and forever. She who had feasted royal governors, staked and lost upon Colonial races, and exploded like an ignited powder-horn in the cause of American independence, was still superbly conscious of the honours which had been hers. Her governors were no longer royal, nor did she feast them; her races were run by fleet-footed coloured urchins on the court-house green; her powder-magazine had evolved through differentiation from a stable into a church; but Kingsborough clung to her amiable habits. Travellers still arrived at the landing stage some several miles distant and were driven over all but impassable roads to the town. The eastern wall
of the court-house still bore the sign "England Street," though the street had vanished beneath encroaching buttercups, and the implied loyalty had been found wanting. Kingsborough juries still sat in their original semicircle, with their backs to the judge and their faces, presumably, to the law; Kingsborough farmers still marketed their small truck in the street called after the Duke of Gloucester; and Kingsborough cows still roamed at will over the vaults in the churchyard. In time trivial changes would come to pass. Tourists would arrive with the railroad; the powder-magazine would turn from a church into a museum; gardens would decay and ancient elms would fall, but the farmers and the cows would not be missed from their accustomed haunts. On the hospitable thresholds of "general" stores battle-scarred veterans of the war between the States dealt in victorious reminiscences of vanquishment. They had fought well, they had fallen silently, and they had risen without bitterness. For the people of Kingsborough had opened their doors to wounded foes while the battle raged through their streets, succouring while they resisted. They lived easily and they died hard, but when death came they met it, not in grim Puritanism, but with a laugh upon the lips. They made a joy of life while it was possible, and when that ceased to be, they did the next best thing and made a friend of death. Long ago theirs had been the first part in Virginia, and, as they still believed, theirs had been also the centre of all things. Now the high places were laid low, and the greatness had passed as a trumpet that is blown. Kingsborough persisted still, but it persisted evasively,
hovering, as it were, upon the outskirts of modern advancement. And the outside world took note only when it made tours to historic strongholds, or sent those of itself that were adjudged insane to the hospitable shelter of the asylum upon the hill.
It was afternoon, and Kingsborough was asleep. Along the verdurous, gray lanes the houses seemed abandoned shuttered, filled with shade. From the court-house green came the chime of cow-bells rising and falling in slow waves of sound. A spotted calf stood bleating in the crooked footpath, which traversed diagonally the waste of buttercups like a white seam in a cloth of gold. Against the arching sky rose the bell-tower of the grim old church, where the sparrows twittered in the melancholy gables and the startled face of the stationary clock stared blankly above the ivied walls. Farther away, at the end of a wavering lane, slanted the shadow of the insane asylum.
Across the green the houses were set in surrounding gardens like cards in bouquets of mixed blossoms. They were of frame for the most part, with shingled roofs and small, square windows hidden beneath climbing roses. On one of the long verandas a sleeping girl lay in a hammock, a gray cat at her feet. No sound came from the house behind her, but a breeze blew through the dim hall, fluttering the folds of her dress. Beyond the adjoining garden a lady in mourning entered a gate where honeysuckle grew, and above, on the low-dormered roof, a white pigeon sat preening its feathers. Up the main street, where a few sunken bricks of a
vanished pavement were still visible, an old negro woman, sitting on the stone before her cabin, lighted her replenished pipe with a taper, and leaned back, smoking, in the doorway, her scarlet handkerchief making a spot of colour on the dull background.
The sun was still high when the judge came out upon his porch, a smile of indecision on his face and his hat in his hand. Pausing upon the topmost step, he cast an uncertain glance sideways at the walk leading past the church, and then looked straight ahead through the avenue of maples, which began at the smaller green facing the ancient site of the governor's palace and skirted the length of the larger one, which took its name from the courthouse. At last he descended the steps with his leisurely tread, turning at the gate to throw a remonstrance to an old negro whose black face was framed in the library window.
"Now, Cæsar, didn't I - "
"Lord, Marse George, dis yer washed-out blue bowl, wid de little white critters sprawlin' over it, done come ter pieces - "
"Now, Cæsar, haven't I told you twenty times to let Delilah wash my Wedgwood?"
"Fo' de Lord, Marse George, I ain't breck hit. I uz des' hol'n it in bofe my han's same es I'se hol'n dis yer broom, w'en it come right ter part. I declar 'twarn my fault, Marse George, 'twarn nobody's fault 'cep'n hit's own."
The judge closed the gate and waved the face from the window.
"Go about your business, Cæsar," he said, "and keep your hands off my china - "
Then his tone lost its asperity as he held out his hands to a pretty girl who was coming across the green.
"So you are back from school, Miss Juliet," he said gallantly. "I was telling your mother only yesterday that I didn't approve of sending our fairest products away from Kingsborough. It wasn't done in my day. Then the prettiest girls stayed at home and gave our young fellows a chance."
The girl shook her head until the blue ribbons on her straw hat fluttered in the wind, and blushed until her soft eyes were like forget-me-nots set in rose leaves. She possessed a serene, luminous beauty, which became intensified beneath the gaze of the beholder.
"I have come back for good, now," she answered in a serious sweetness of voice; "and I am out this afternoon looking up my Sunday-school class. The children have scattered sadly. You will let me have Tom again, won't you?"
"Have Tom! Why, you may have him every day and Sunday too - the lucky scamp! Ah, I only wish I were a boy again, with a soul worth saving and such a pair of eyes in search of it."
The girl dimpled into a smile and flushed to her low, white forehead, on which the soft hair was smoothly parted before it broke into sunny curls about the temples. She exhaled an atmosphere of gentleness mixed with a saintly coquetry, which produced an impression at once human and divine, such as one receives from the sight of a rose in a Bible or a curl in the hair of a saint. The judge looked at her warmly, sighing half happily, half regretfully.
"And to think that the young rogues don't realise their blessings," he said. "There's not one of them that wouldn't rather be off fishing than learn his catechism. Ah, in my day things were different - things were different."
"Were you very pious, sir?" asked the girl with a flash of laughter.
The judge shook his stick playfully.
"I can't tell tales," he answered, "but in my day we should have taken more than the catechism at your bidding, my dear. When your father was courting your mother - and she was like you, though she hadn't your eyes, or your face, for that matter - he went into her Bible class, though he was at least five and twenty and the others were small boys under ten. She was a sad flirt, and she led him a dance."
"He liked it," said the girl. "But, if you will give my message to Tom, I won't come in. I am looking for Dudley Webb, and I see his mother at her gate. Good-bye! Be sure and tell Tom to come Sunday."
She nodded brightly, lifted her muslin skirts, and recrossed the street. The judge watched her until the flutter of her white dress vanished down the lane of maples; then he turned to speak to the occupants of a carriage that had drawn up to the sidewalk.
The vehicle was of an old-fashioned make, bare of varnish, with rickety, mud-splashed wheels and rusty springs. It was drawn by an ill-matched pair of horses and driven by a lame coloured boy, who carried a peeled hickory branch for a whip.
"Ah, General Battle," said the judge to a stout
gentleman with a red face and an expansive shirt front from which the collar had wilted away; "fine afternoon! Is that Eugenia?" to a little girl of seven or eight years, with a puppy of the pointer breed in her arms, and "How are you, Sampson?" to the coloured driver.
The three greeted him simultaneously, whereupon he leaned forward, resting his hand upon the side of the carriage.
"The young folks are growing up," he said. "I have just seen Juliet Burwell, and, on my life, she gets prettier every day. We shan't keep her long."
"Keep her!" replied the general vigorously, wiping his large face with a large pocket handkerchief. "Keep her! If I were thirty years younger, you shouldn't keep her a day - not a day, sir."
The little girl looked up gravely from the corner of the seat, tossing her short, dark plait from her shoulder. "What would you do with her, papa?" she asked. "We've got no place to put her at home."
The general threw back his great head and laughed till his wide girth shook like a bag of meal.
"Oh, you needn't worry, Eugie," he said. "I'm not the man I used to be. She wouldn't look at me. Bless your heart, she wouldn't look at me if I asked her - "
Eugenia clasped her puppy closer and turned her eyes upon her father's jovial face.
"I don't see how she could help it if you stood in front of her," she answered gravely, in a voice rich with the blending of negro intonations.
The general shook again until the carriage
creaked on its rusty springs, and the coloured boy, Sampson, let the reins fall and joined in the hilarity.
"She won't let me so much as look at a girl!" exclaimed the general delightedly, stooping to recover the brown linen lap robe which had slipped from his knees. "She's as jealous as if I were twenty and had a score of sweethearts."
The little girl did not reply, but she flushed angrily. "Don't, precious," she said to the puppy, who was licking her cheek with his warm, red tongue.
"What have you named him, Eugie?" asked the judge, changing the subject with that gracious tact which was mindful of the least emergency. "He is nicely marked, I see."
"I call him Jim," replied Eugenia. She spoke gravely, and the gravity contrasted oddly with the animation of her features. "But his real name is James Burwell Battle. Bernard and I christened him in the spring-house - so he'll go to heaven."
"Cap'n Burwell gave him to her, you know," explained the general, who laughed whenever his daughter spoke, as if the fact of her talking at all was a source of amazement to him, "and she hasn't let go of him since she got him. By the way, Judge, you have a first-rate garden spot. I hear your asparagus is the finest in town. Ours is very poor this year. I must have a new bed made before next season. Ah, what is it, daughter?"
"You've forgotten to buy the sugar," said Eugenia, "and Aunt Chris can't put up her preserves. And you told me to remind you of the whip - "
"Bless your heart, so I did. Sampson lost that whip a month ago, and I've never remembered it yet. Well, good-day - good-day."
The judge raised his hat with a stately inclination; the general nodded good-naturedly, still grasping the linen robe with his plump, red hand; and the carriage jolted along the green and disappeared behind the glazed brick walls of the church.
The judge regarded his walking-stick meditatively for a moment, and continued his way. The smile with which he had followed the vanishing figure of Juliet Burwell returned to his face, and his features softened from their usual chilly serenity.
He had gone but a short distance and was passing the iron gate of the churchyard, when the droning of a voice came to him, and looking beyond the bars he saw little Nicholas Burr lying at full length upon a marble slab, his head in his hands and his feet waving in the air.
Entering the gate, the judge followed the walk of moss-grown stones leading to the church steps, and paused within hearing of the voice, which went on in an abstracted drawl.
"The most cel-e-bra-ted sys-tem of juris-prudence known to the world begins, as it ends, with a code - " He was not reading, for the book was closed. He seemed rather to be repeating over and over again words which had been committed to memory.
"With a code. From the commencement to the close of its history, the ex-posi-tors of Ro-man Law con-sistently em-ployed lan-guage which implied that the body of their sys-tem rested on the twelve
De-cem-viral Tables - Dec-em-vi-ral - De-cem-vi-ral Tables."
"Bless my soul!" said the judge. The boy glanced up, blushed, and would have risen, but the judge waved him back.
"No - no, don't get up. I heard you as I was going by. What are you doing?"
"Learnin'."
"Learning! Dear me! What do you mean by learning?"
"I'm learnin' by heart, sir - and - and, if you don't mind, sir, what does j-u-r-i-s-p-r-u-d-e-n-c-e mean?"
The judge started, returning the boy's eager gaze with one of kindly perplexity.
"Bless my soul!" he said again; "You aren't trying to understand that, are you?"
The boy grew scarlet and his lips trembled. "No, sir," he answered. "I'm jest learnin' it now. I'll know what it means when I'm bigger - "
"And you expect to remember it?" asked the judge.
"I don't never forget," said the boy.
"Bless my soul!" exclaimed the judge for the third time.
For a moment he stood looking silently down upon the marble slab with its defaced lettering. Of the wordy epitaph which had once redounded to the honour of the bones beneath there remained only the words "who departed," but he read these with a long abstracted gaze.
"Let me see," he said at last, speaking with his
accustomed dignity. "Did you ever go to school, Nicholas?"
"Yes, sir."
"When?"
"I went 'most three winters, sir, but I had to leave off on o'count o' pa's not havin' any hand 'cep'n me."
The judge smiled.
"Ah, well," he returned. "We'll see if you can't begin again. My boy has a tutor, you know, and his playmates come to study with him. He's about your age, and it will give you a start. Come in tomorrow at nine, and we'll talk it over. No, don't get up. I am going."
And he passed out of the churchyard, closing the heavy gate with a metallic clang. Nicholas lay on the marble slab, but the book slipped from his hands, and he gazed straight before him at the oriel window, where the ivy was tremulous with the shining bodies and clamorous voices of nesting sparrows. They darted swiftly from gable to gable, filling the air with shrill sounds of discord, and endowing with animation the inanimate pile, wrapping the dead bricks in a living shroud.
On the other side swept the long, colourless grasses, rippling in faint waves like a still lake that reflects the sunshine and swaying lightly beneath myriads of gauzy-winged bees that flashed with a droning noise from blade to blade, to find rest in the yellow hearts of the damask roses. Across the white vaults and the low-lying marble slabs innumerable shadows chased, and from above the gnarled old locust trees swept a fringe of vivid green, the slender
blossoms hanging in tassels from the branches' ends, and filling the air with a soft and ceaseless rain of fragrant petals. Pale as the ghosts of dead leaves, they fell always, fluttering night and day from the twisted boughs, settling in creamy flakes upon the bending grasses, and outlining in delicate tracery the epitaphs upon the discoloured marbles.
Nicholas lay with wide-open eyes, looking up at the oriel window where the sparrows twittered. On a near vault a catbird poised for an instant, surveying him with bright, distrustful eyes. Then, with an impetuous flutter of slate-gray wings, it fled to the poisonous oak on the far brick wall. A red-and-white cow, passing along the lane outside, stopped before the closed gate, and stood philosophically chewing the cud as she looked within through impeding bars. From the judge's garden came the faint sound of a negro voice as the old gardener weeded the vegetables. Nicholas rolled over again and faced the outstretched wings of the noseless angel on the nearest tombstone. The loss of the nose had distorted the marble smile into a grimace, which gave a leer to the remaining features. As the boy looked at it he laughed suddenly, and his voice startled him amid the droning of bees. Then he sat up and glanced at his briar-scratched feet stretched upon the slab, and laughed again for the sheer joy of discord.
Nicholas followed the main street to its sudden end at King's College, and turned into one of the diverging ways which skirted the whitewashed plank fence of the college grounds, and led to what was known in the neighbourhood as the Old Stage Road. Passing a straggling group of negro cabins, it stretched, naked, bleached, and barren, for a good half-mile, dividing with its sandy length the low-lying fields, which were sown on the one side in a sparse crop of grain and on the other in the rich leaves and round pink heads of ripening clover. At the end of the half-mile the road ascended a slight elevation, and the character of the soil changed abruptly into clay of vivid red, which, extending a dozen yards up the rain-washed hillside, appeared, in a general view of the landscape, like the scarlet tongue protruding from the silvery body of a serpent.
Far ahead to the right of the highway and beyond the thinly sown wheat a stretch of pine woodland was darkly limned against the western horizon, standing a gloomy advance guard of the shadows of the night. At its foot the newer green of the late spring foliage took a frivolous aspect, presenting the effect of deep-tinted foam breaking against the impenetrable mass of darkness.
The boy trudged resolutely along the sandy road,
reaching at intervals to grasp handfuls of sassafras leaves from the bushes beside the way. From the ditch on the left a brown toad hopped slowly into the dust of the road. On the worm-eaten rails of the fence, on the other side, a gray lizard glided swiftly like a stealthy shadow of the leaves of the poisonous oak.
Nicholas picked up a stone from the roadside and aimed it at the slimy little body, but his throw erred, and the missile fell harmlessly into the wheat field beyond, startling a blackbird with scarlet marks, which soared suddenly above the bearded grain and vanished, with a tremulous cry and a flame of outstretched wings, into the distant wood.
The sun had gone down behind the pines and a warm mist steamed up from the cooling earth, condensing into heavy dew on the dusty leaves the plants in the ditch. Above the lowering pines the horizon burned to a deep scarlet, like an inverted brazier at red heat, and one gigantic tree, rising beyond the jagged line of the forest, was silhouetted sharply against the enkindled clouds. Suddenly, from the shadows of the long road, a voice rose plaintively. It was rich and deep and colourific, and it seemed to hover close to the warmth of the earth, weighed down by its animal melody. It had mingled so subtly with the stillness that it was as much a part of nature as the cry of a whip-poor-will beyond the thicket or the sunset in the pine-guarded west. At first it came faintly, and the words were lost, but as Nicholas gained upon the singer he caught more clearly the air and the song.
"Oh, de Ark hit came ter res'
On-de-hill,
Oh, de Ark hit came ter res'
On-de-hill,
En' dar ole Noah stood,
En' spread his han's abroad,
Er sacri-fice ter-Gawd
On-de-hill."
Nicholas quickened his pace into a run and, in a moment, saw the stooping figure of an old negro toiling up the red clay hillside, a staff in his hand and a bag of meal on his shoulder. In the vivid light of the sunset his stature was exaggerated in size, giving him an appearance at once picturesque and pathetic - softening his rugged outline and magnifying the distortion of age.
As he ascended the gradual incline he planted his staff firmly in the soil, shifting his bag from side to side and uttering inaudible grunts in the pauses of his song.
"En 'dar, mid flame en smoke,
De great Jehovah s-poke,
En' awful thunder b-roke,
On-de-hill."
"Uncle Ish!" called the boy sharply. The old man lowered the bag from his shoulder and turned slowly round.
"Who dat?" he demanded severely. "Ain't I done tell you dar ain' no ha'nts 'long dis yer road?"
"It's me, Uncle Ish," said the boy. "It's Nick Burr. I heard you singing a long ways off."
"Den what you want ter go a-hollerin' en a-stealin' up on er ole nigger fer des' 'bout sundown?"
"But, Uncle Ish, I didn't mean to scare you. I jest heard - "
"Skeer! Who dat you been skeerin'? Ain't I done tole you dar ain' no ha'nts round dese parts? What I gwine ter be skeered fer uv er little no 'count white trash dat ain' never own er nigger in dere life? Who you done skeet dis time?"
He picked up his bag, slung it over his shoulder and went on his way, the boy trotting beside him. For a time the old man muttered angrily beneath his breath, and then, becoming mollified by the boy's silence, he looked kindly down on the small red head at his elbow.
"You ain't said howdy, honey," he remarked in a fault-finding tone. "Dar ain' no manners dese days, nohow. Dey ain' no manners en dey ain' no nuffin'. De niggers, dey is gwine plum outer dey heads, en de po' white trash dey's gwine plum outer dey places."
He looked at Nicholas, who flinched and hung his head.
"Dar ain' nobody lef' to keep 'em ter dey places, no mo'. In Ole Miss' time der wa'nt no traipsin' roun' er niggers en intermixin' up er de quality en de trash. Ole Miss, she des' pint out der place en dey stay dar. She ain' never stomach noner der high-ferlutin' doin's roun' her. She know whar she b'long en she know whar dey b'long. Bless yo' life, Ole Miss wuz dat perticklar she wouldn't drink arter Ole Marster, hisself, 'thout renchin' out de gow'd twel t'wuz mos' bruck off de handle."
He sighed and shifted his bag.
"Ef Ole Miss 'ud been yer thoo' dis las' war, dar
wouldn't er been no slue-footed Yankees a-foolin' roun' her parlour. She'd uv up en show'd 'em de do' - "
"Are all Yankees slue-footed, Uncle Ish?"
"All dose I seed, honey - des' es slue-footed. En afar wuz Miss Chris' en ole Miss Grissel a-makin' up ter 'em, en a-layin' out er demselves fer 'em en a-spreadin' uv de table, des' de same es ef dey went straight on dey toes. Dar wan't much sense in dat ar war, nohow, an' I ain' never knowed yit what 'twuz dey fit about. Hit wuz des' a-hidin' en a-teckin' ter de bushes, en a-hidin' agin, en den a-feastin', en a-curtsin' ter de Yankees. Dar wan't no sense in it, no ways hits put, but Ise heered Marse Tom 'low hit wuz a civil war, en dat's what it wuz. When de Yankees come a-ridin' up en a-reinin' in dere hosses befo' de front po'ch, en Miss Chris come out a-smilin' en a-axin' howdy, en den dey stan' dar a-bowin' en a-scrapin', hit wuz des' es civil es ef dey'd come a-co'tin'. But Ole Miss wuz dead en buried, she wuz."
Nicholas shook his head without speaking. There was a shade of consolation in the thought that the awful "Ole Miss" was below the earth and beyond the possibility of pointing out his place.
The brazier in the west snapped asunder suddenly, and a single forked flame shot above the jagged pines and went out in the dove-coloured clouds. In a huge oak beyond the rail fence there was a harsh rustling of wings where a flock of buzzards settled to roost.
"Yes, Lord, she wuz dead en buried," repeated Uncle Ish slowly. "En dar ain' none like her lef'
roun' yer now. Dis yer little Euginny is des' de spit er her ma, en it 'ud mek Ole Miss tu'n in her grave ter hear tell 'bout her gwines on. De quality en de po' folks is all de same ter her. She ain' no mo' un inspecter er pussons den de Lord is - ef Ole Miss wuz 'live, I reckon she'd lam 'er twel she wuz black en blue - "
"Is she so very bad?" asked Nicholas in an awed voice.
Uncle Ish turned upon him reprovingly.
"Bad!" he repeated. "Who gwine call Ole Miss' gran'chile bad? I don't reckon it's dese yer new come folks es hev des' sprouted outer de dut es is gwine ter - "
At this instant the sound of a vehicle reached them, gaining upon them from the direction of Kingsborough, and they fell to one side of the road, leaving room for the horses to pass. It was the Battle carriage, rolling heavily on its aged wheels and creaking beneath the general's weight.
"Howdy, Marse Tom!" called Uncle Ishmael. The general responded good-naturedly, and the carriage passed on, but, before turning into the branch road a few yards ahead, it came to a standstill, and the bright, decisive voice of the little girl floated back.
"Uncle Ish - I say, Uncle Ish, don't you want to ride?"
"Dar, now!" cried Uncle Ishmael exultantly. "Ain't I tell you she wuz plum crazy? What she doin' a-peckin' up en ole nigger like I is?"
He hastened his steps and scrambled into the seat beside the driver, settling his bag between his knees;
and, with a flick of the peeled hickory whip, the carriage rolled into the branch road and disappeared, scattering a whirl of mud drops as it splashed through the shallow puddles which lingered in the dryest season beneath the heavy shade of the wood.
Nicholas turned into the branch road also, for the poor lands of his father adjoined the slightly richer ones of the Battles. He felt tired and a little lonely, and he wished suddenly that a friendly cart would come along in which he might ride the remainder of the way. Between the densely wooded thicket on either side, the road looked dark and solemn. It was spread with a rotting carpet of last year's leaves, soft and damp under foot, and polished into shining tracks in the ruts left by passing wheels. Through the dusk the ghostly bodies of beech trees stood out distinctly from the surrounding wood, as if marked by a silver light falling from the topmost branches. The hoarse, grating notes of jar-flies intensified the stillness.
Nicholas went on steadily, spurred by superstitious terror of the silence. He remembered that Uncle Ish had said there were no "ha'nts" along this road, but the assurance was barren of comfort Old Uncle Dan'l Mule had certainly seen a figure in a white sheet rise up out of that decayed oak stump in the hollow, for he had sworn to it in the boy's presence in Aunt Rhody Sand's cabin the night of her daughter Viny's wedding. As for Viny's husband Saul, he had declared that one night after ten o'clock, when he was coming through this wood, the "booger-boos" had got after him and chased him home.
At the end of the wood the road came out upon the open again, and in the distance Nicholas could see, like burnished squares, the windows of his father's house. Between the thicket and the house there was a long stretch of clearing, which had been once planted in corn, and now supported a headless army of dry stubble, amid a dull-brown waste of brooms-edge. The last pale vestige of the afterglow, visible across the level country, swept the arid field and softened the harsh outlines of the landscape. It was barren soil, whose strength had been exhausted long since by years of production without returns, tilled by hands that had forced without fertilizing. There was now grim pathos in its absolute sterility, telling as it did of long-gone yields of grain and historic harvests.
Nicholas skirted the waste, and was turning into the pasture gate on the opposite side of the road, when he heard the shrill sound of a voice from the direction of the house.
"Nick! - who - a Nick!"
On one of the cedar posts of the fence of the cow-pen he discerned the small figure and green cotton frock of his half-sister, Sarah Jane, who was shouting through her hollowed palms to increase the volume of sound.
"I say, Nick! The she-ep hev' been driv-en u-p! Come to sup-per!"
She vanished from the post and Nicholas ran up the remainder of the road and swung himself over the little gate which led into the small square yard immediately surrounding the house. At the pump near the back door his father, who had just come
from work, was washing his hands before going into supper, and near a row of pointed chicken coops the three younger children were "shooing" up the tiny yellow broods. The yard was unkempt and ugly run wild in straggling ailanthus shoots and littered with chips from the wood-pile.
As he entered the house he saw his stepmother placing a dish of fried bacon upon the table, which was covered with a "watered" oilcloth of a bright walnut tint. At her back stood Sarah Jane with a plate of corn bread in one hand and a glass pitcher containing buttermilk in the other. She was a slight, flaxen-haired child, with wizened features and sore, red eyelids.
As his stepmother caught sight of him she stopped on her way to the stove and surveyed him with sharp but not unkindly eyes.
"You've been takin' your time 'bout comin' home," she remarked, "an' I reckon you're powerful hungry. You can sit down if you want to."
She was long and lean and withered, with a chronic facial neuralgia, which gave her an irritable expression and a querulous voice. For the past several years Nicholas had never seen her without a large cotton handkerchief bound tightly about her face. She had been the boy's aunt before she married his father, and her affection for him was proved by her allowing no one to harry him except herself.
"How's your face, ma?" asked Nicholas with the indifference of habit as he took his seat at the table while Sarah Jane went to the door to call her father. When Burr came in the inquiry was repeated.
"Face any easier, Marthy?" It was a form that
had been gone through with at every meal since the malady began, and Marthy Burr, while she deplored its insincerity, would have resented its omission.
"Don't you all trouble 'bout my neuralgy," she returned with resigned exasperation as she stood up to pour the coffee out of the large tin boiler. "It's mine, an' I've borne worse things, I reckon, which ain't sayin' that 'tain't near to takin' my head off."
Amos Burr drank his coffee without replying, the perspiration standing in drops on his large, freckled face and shining on his heavy eyebrows. Presently he looked at Nicholas, who was eating abstractedly, his gaze on his plate.
"I got that thar piece of land broke to-day," he said, "an' I reckon you can take the one-horse harrow and go over it to-morrow. Them peanuts ought to hev' been in the ground two weeks ago - "
"They ain't hulled yet," interrupted his wife. "Sairy Jane ain't done more'n half of 'em. She and Nick can do the balance after supper. Hurry up, Sairy Jane, and get through. Nannie, don't you touch another slice of that middlin'. You'll be frettin' all night."
Nicholas looked up nervously. "I don't want to harrow the land to-morrow, pa," he began; "the judge said I might come in to school - "
Amos Burr looked at him helplessly. "Wall, I never!" he exclaimed.
"Did you ever hear the likes?" said his wife.
"I can go, pa, can't I?" asked Nicholas.
"He can go, pa, can't he?" repeated Sarah Jane, looking up with her mouth wide open and full of corn bread.
Burr shook his head and looked at his wife.
"I don't see as I can get any help," he said. "You're as good as a hand, and I can't spare you." Then he concluded with a touch of irritation, "I don't see as you want any more schoolin'. You can read and write now a heap better'n I can."
Nicholas choked over his bread and his lips trembled.
"I - I don't want to be like you, pa!" he cried breathlessly, and the unshed tears stung his eyelids. "I want to be different!"
Burr looked up stolidly. "I don't see as you want any more schoolin'," he repeated stubbornly, but his wife came sharply to the boy's assistance.
"I wish you'd stop pesterin' the child, Amos," she said, inspired less by the softness of amiability than by the genius of opposition. "I don't see how you can be everlastingly doin' it - my dead sister's child, too."
Nicholas swallowed his tears with his coffee and turned to his father. "I can get up 'fore day and do a piece of the land, and I can help you 'bout the sowin' when I get back in the evening. I'll be back by twelve."
"Oh, I reckon you can go if you're so set on it," said Amos gruffly. He rose and left the room, stopping in the hall to get a bucket of buttermilk for the hogs. Nicholas went over to the window and joined Sarah Jane, who was shelling the peanuts, carefully separating the outer hulls from the inner pink skins, which were left intact for sowing. Marthy Burr, who was clearing off the table, let fall
a china dish and began scolding the younger children.
"I declare, if you don't all but drive me daft!" she said, flinching from a twinge of neuralgia and raising her voice querulously. "Why can't you take yourselves off and give me some rest? Nannie, you and Jake go out to the old oak and see if all the turkeys air up. Be sure and count 'em - and take Jubal (the youngest) 'long with you. If you see your pa tell him I say to look at the brindle cow. She acted mighty queer at milkin', and I reckon she'd better have a little bran mash - Sairy Jane," turning suddenly upon her eldest daughter, "if you eat another one of them peanuts I'll box your jaws - "
Nicholas finished the peanuts and went upstairs to his little attic room. He was not sleepy, and, after throwing himself upon his corn-shuck mattress, he lay for a long time staring at the ceiling, thinking of the morrow and listening to the groans of his stepmother as she tossed with neuralgia.
In the first glimmer of dawn Nicholas dressed himself and stole softly down from the attic, the frail stairway creaking beneath his tread. As he was unfastening the kitchen door, which led out upon a rough plank platform called the "back porch," Marthy Burr stuck her head in from the adjoining room where she slept, and called his name in a high-pitched, querulous voice.
"Is that you, Nick?" she asked. "I declar, I'd jest dropped off to sleep when you woke me comin' down stairs. I never could abide tip-toein', nohow. I don't see how 'tis that I can't get no rest 'thout bein' roused up, when your pa can turn right over and sleep through thunder. Whar you goin' now?
Nicholas stopped and held a whispered colloquy with her from the back porch. "I'm goin' to drag the land some 'fore pa gets up," he answered. "Then I'm goin' in to town. You know he said I might."
His stepmother shook her bandaged head peevishly and stood holding the collar of her unbleached cotton gown.
"Oh, I reckon so," she responded. "I was thinkin' 'bout goin' in myself and hevin' my tooth out, but I s'pose I can wait on you. The Lord knows I'm used to waitin'."
Nicholas looked at her in perplexity, his arm resting
on the little shelf outside, which supported the wooden water bucket and the long-handled gourd.
"You can go when I come back," he said at last, adding with an effort, "or, if it's so bad, I can stay at home."
But, having asserted her supremacy over his inclinations, Marthy Burr relented. "Oh, I don't know as I'll go in to-day," she returned. "I ain't got enough teeth left now to chew on, an' I don't believe it's the teeth, nohow. It's the gums - "
She retreated into the room, whence the shrill voice of Sairy Jane inquired:
"Air you up, ma? Why, 'tain't day!"
Nicholas closed the door and went out upon the porch. The yard looked deserted and desolated, giving him a sudden realisation of his own littleness and the immensity of the hour. It was as if the wheels of time had stopped in the dim promise of things unfulfilled. A broken scythe lay to one side amid the straggling ailanthus shoots; near the woodpile there was a wheelbarrow half filled with chips, and at a little distance the axe was poised upon a rotten log. From the small coops beside the hen-house came an anxious clucking as the fluffy yellow chickens strayed beneath the uneven edges of their pointed prisons and made independent excursions into the world.
In the far east the day was slowly breaking, and the open country was flooded with pale, washed-out grays, like the background of an impressionist painting. A heavy dew had risen in the night, and as the boy passed through the dripping weeds on his way to the stable they left a chill moisture upon his bare
feet. His eyes were heavy with sleep, and to his cloudy gaze the familiar objects of the barnyard assumed grotesque and distorted shapes. The manure heap near the doorway presented an effect of unreality, the pig-pen seemed to have suffered witchery since the evening before, and the haystack, looming vaguely in the drab distance, appeared to be woven of some phantasmal fabric.
He led out the old sorrel mare and followed her into the large ploughed field beyond the cow-pen, where the harrow was lying on one side of the brown ridges. As he passed the pen the startled sheep huddled into a far corner, bleating plaintively, and the brindle cow looked after him with soft, persuasive eyes. When he had attached the clanking chains of the plough harness to the single-tree, he caught up the ropes which served for reins and set out laboriously over the crumbling earth, which yielded beneath his feet and made walking difficult.
The field extended from the cow-pen and the bright, green rows of vegetables that were raised for market to the reedy brook which divided his father's land from that belonging to General Battle. The brook was always cool and shady, and silvery with minnows darting over the shining pebbles beneath the clear water. As Nicholas looked across the neutral furrows he could see the feathery branches of willows rising from the gray mist, and, farther still up the sloping hillside, the dew-drenched green of the mixed woodlands.
The land before him had been upturned by shallow ploughing some days since, and it lay now pale and arid, the large clods of earth showing the detached
roots of grass and herbs, and presenting a hint of menacing destruction rather than the prospect of the peaceful art of cultivation. It was the boy's duty to drag the soil free from grass, after which it would be laid out into rows some three feet apart. When this was done two furrows would be thrown together to give what the farmers called a "rise," the point of which would be finally levelled, when the ground would be ready for the peanut-sowing, which was performed entirely by hand.
The boy worked industriously through the deepening dawn, giving an occasional "gee up, Rhody!" to the mare, and following the track of the harrow with much the same concentration of purpose as that displayed by his four-footed friend. He was strong for his years, lithe as a sapling, and as fearless of elemental changes, and as he walked meditatively across the bare field he might have suggested to an onlooker the possible production of a vast fund of energy.
Presently the gray light was shot with gold and a streak of orange fluttered like a ribbon in the east. In a moment a violet cloud floated above the distant hill, and as its ends curled up from the quickening heat it showed the splendour of a crimson lining. A single ray of sunshine, pale as a spectral finger, pointed past the woodlands to the brook beneath the willows, and the vague blur of the mixed forest warmed into vivid tints, changing through variations from the clear emerald of young maples to the olive dusk of evergreens.
Last of all the ploughed field, which had preserved a neutral cast, blushed faintly in the sunrise, glowing
to pale purple tones where the sod was newly turned. From the fugitive richness of the soil a warm breath rose suddenly, filling the air with the genial odour of earth and sunshine. The shining, dark coils of worms were visible like threads in the bright brown clods.
Nicholas raised his head and stared with unseeing eyes at the gorgeous east. A rooster crowed shrilly, and he turned in the direction of the barnyard. Then he flicked the ropes gently and went on, his gaze on the ground. His thoughts, which at first were fixed solely upon the teeth of the harrow, took tumultuous flight, and he reviewed for the hundredth time his conversation with the judge and the vast avenue of the future which was opening before him. He would not be like his father, of this he was convinced - his father, who was always working with nothing to show for it - whose planting was never on time, and whose implements were never in place. His father had never had this gnawing desire to know things, this passionate hatred of the work which he might not neglect. His father had never tried to beat against the barriers of his ignorance and been driven back, and beat again and wept, and read what he couldn't understand. The teacher at the public school had told him that he was far ahead of his years, and yet they had taken him away when he was doing his level best, and put him to dragging the land, and gathering the peanuts, and carrying the truck to market, and marking the sheep with red paint, and bringing up the cows, and doing all the odd, innumerable jobs they could devise. He let the ropes fall for an instant and dug his fist into
his eye; then he took them up again and went on stolidly. At last the sun came out boldly above the hill, and the hollows were flooded with light. In the centre of the field the boy's head glowed like some large red insect. A hawk, winging slowly above him, looked down as if uncertain of his species, and fluttered off indifferently.
At six o'clock his stepmother came to the back door and called him to breakfast.
When the meal was over Amos Burr went out to the field, and Nicholas was sent to drive the sheep to the pasture. With vigorous wavings of a piece of brushwood, and many darts from right to left, he succeeded finally in driving them across the road and through the gate on the opposite side, after which he returned to assist his stepmother about the house. Not until nine o'clock, when he had seen the Battle children going up the road, was he free to set off at a run for Kingsborough.
As he sped breathlessly along, past the wastelands, into the woods, down the road to the hillside, and down the hillside to the road again, he went too rapidly for thought. The fresh air brushed his heated face gently, and, at the edge of the wood, where the shallow puddles lingered, myriads of blue and yellow butterflies scattered into variegated clumps of colour at his approach, darting from the moist heaps of last year's leaves to the shining rivulets in the wheel ruts by the way. A partridge whistled from the yellowing green of the wheat, and a rabbit stole noiselessly from the sassafras in the ditch and shot shy glances of alarm; but he did not turn his head, and his hand held no ready stone.
Though he had run half the way, when at last he reached the judge's house, and stood before the little office in the garden where the school was held, his courage misgave him, and he leaned, trembling, against the arbour where a grapevine grew. The sound of voices floated out to him, mingled with bright, girlish laughter, and, looking through the open window, he saw the light curls of a little girl against the darker head of a boy. He choked suddenly with shyness, and would have hesitated there until the morning was over had not the judge's old servant, Cæsar, espied him from the dining-room window.
"Look yer, boy, what you doin' dar?" he demanded suspiciously, and then called to some one inside the house. "Marse George, dat ar Burr boy is a-loungin' rount yo' yawd."
The judge did not respond, but the tutor came to the door of the office and intercepted the boy's retreat. He was a pale, long-faced young man in spectacles, with weak, blue eyes and a short, thin moustache. His name was Graves, and he regarded what he called the judge's "quixotism" with condescending good-nature.
"Is that you, Nicholas Burr?" he asked in a slightly supercilious voice. "The judge has told me about you. So you won't be a farmer, eh? And you won't stay in your class? Well, come in and we'll see what we can make of you."
Nicholas followed him into the room and sat down at one of the pine desks, while the judge's son, Tom, nodded to him from across the room, and Bernard Battle grinned over his shoulder at his
sister Eugenia, and a handsome boy, called Dudley Webb, made a face which convulsed little Sally Burwell, who hid her merriment in her curls. There were several other children in the room, but Nicholas did not see them distinctly. Something had got before his eyes and there was a lump in his throat. He sat rigidly in his seat, his straw hat, with the shoestring around the crown, lying upon the desk before him. He looked neither to the right nor to the left, keeping his frightened gaze upon the tutor's face.
Mr. Graves asked him a few questions, which he could not answer, and then, giving him a book, turned to the other children. As the lessons went on it seemed to Nicholas that he had never known anything in his life; that he should never know anything; and that he should always remain the most ignorant person on earth - unless that lot fell to Sairy Jane.
The difficulties besetting the path of knowledge appeared to be insurmountable. Even if he had the books and the time he could never learn anything - his head would prevent it.
"Bound Beloochistan, Tom," said the tutor, and Tom, a stout, fair-haired boy with a heavy face, went through the process to the satisfaction of Mr. Graves and to the amazement of Nicholas.
The office was a plain, square room, containing, besides the desks and tables, an old secretary and a corner cupboard of an antique pattern, which held an odd assortment of cracked china and chemist bottles. There was also a square mahogany chest, called the wine-cellar, which had been sent from the
dining-room when the last bottle of Tokay was opened to drink the health of the Confederacy.
Before the war the place had been used by the judge as a general business room, but when the slaves were freed and there were fewer servants it was found to be little needed, and was finally given over entirely to the children's school.
When recess came the tutor left the office, telling Nicholas that he might go home with the little girls if he liked. "I shall try to have the books you need by to-morrow," he said, and, his natural amiability overcoming his assumed superciliousness, he added pleasantly:
"I shouldn't mind being backward at first. The boys are older than you, but you'll soon catch up."
He went out, and Nicholas had started towards the door, when Tom Bassett flung himself before him, swinging skilfully over an intervening table.
"Hold up, carrot-head," he said. "Let's have a look at you. Are all heads afire where you come from?"
"He's Amos Burr's boy," explained Bernard Battle with a grin. "He lives 'long our road. I saw him hoeing potatoes day before yesterday. He's got freckles enough to tan a sheepskin!"
In the midst of the laugh which followed Nicholas stood awkwardly, shifting his bare feet. His face was scarlet, and he fingered in desperation the ragged brim of his hat.
"I reckon they're my freckles," he said doggedly.
"And I reckon you can keep 'em," retorted Bernard, mimicking his tone. "We ain't going to steal 'em. I say, Eugie, here're some freckles for sale!"
The dark little girl, who was putting up her books in one corner, looked up and shook her head.
"Let me alone!" she replied shortly, and returned to her work, tugging at the straps with both hands. Dudley Webb - a handsome, upright boy, well dressed in a dark suit and linen shirt - lounged over as he munched a sandwich.
He looked at Nicholas from head to foot, and his gaze was returned with stolid defiance. Nicholas did not flinch, but for the first time he felt ashamed of his ugliness, of his coarse clothes, of his briar-scratched legs, of his freckles, and of the unalterable colour of his hair. He wished with all his heart that he were safely in the field with his father, driving the one-horse harrow across upturned furrows. He didn't want to learn anything any more. He wanted only to get away.
"He's common," said Dudley at last, throwing a crust of bread through the open window. "He's as common as - as dirt. I heard mother say so - "
"Father says he's uncommon," returned Tom doubtfully, turning his honest eyes on Nicholas again. "He told Mr. Graves that he was a most uncommon boy."
"Oh, well, you can play with him if you like," rejoined Dudley resolutely, "but I shan't. He's old Amos Burr's son, anyway, who never wore a whole shirt in his life."
"He had on one yesterday," said Bernard Battle impartially. "I saw it. It was just made and hadn't been washed."
Nicholas looked up stubbornly. "You let my father alone!" he exclaimed, spurred by the desire
to resent something and finding it easier to fight for another than himself. "You let my father alone, or I'll make you!"
"I'd like to see you!" retorted Dudley wrathfully, and Nicholas had squared up for the first blow, when before his swimming gaze a defender intervened.
"You jest let him alone!" cried a voice, and the flutter of a blue cotton skirt divided Dudley from his adversary. "You jest let him alone. If you call him common I'll hit you, an' - an' you can't hit me back!"
"Eugie, you ought to be - " began Bernard, but she pushed the combatants aside with decisive thrusts of her sunburned little hand, and planted herself upon the threshold, her large, black eyes glowing like shaded lamps.
"He wan't doin' nothin' to you, and you jest let him be. He's goin' to tote my books home, an' you shan't touch him. I reckon I know what's common as well as you do - an' he ain't - he ain't common."
Then she caught Nicholas's arm and marched off like a dispensing providence with a vassal in tow. Nicholas followed obediently. He was sufficiently cowed into non-resistance, and he felt a wholesome awe of his defender, albeit he wished that it had been a boy like himself instead of a slip of a girl with short skirts and a sunbonnet. At the bottom of his heart there existed an instinctive contempt of the sex which Eugenia represented, developed by the fact that it was not force but weakness that had vanquished his victorious opponent. Dudley Webb was a gentleman, and only a bully would strike a girl,
even if she were a spitfire - the term by which he characterised Eugenia. He remembered suddenly her exultant, "an' you can't hit me back!" and it seemed to him that, even in the righteous cause of his deliverance, she had taken an unfair and feminine advantage of the handsome boy for whom he cherished a shrinking admiration.
As for Eugenia herself, she was troubled by no such misgivings. She walked slightly in front of him, her blue skirt swinging briskly from side to side, her white sunbonnet hanging by its strings from her shoulders. Above the starched ruffles rose her small dark head and white profile, and Nicholas could see the determined curve of her chin and the humorous tremor of her nostril. It was a vivid little face, devoid of colour except for the warm mouth, and sparkling with animation which burned steadily at the white heat of intensity - but to Nicholas she was only a plain, dark, little girl, with an unhealthy pallor of complexion. He was grateful, nevertheless, and when his first regret that she was not a boy was over he experienced a thrill of affection. It was the first time that any one had deliberately taken his part in the face of opposing odds, and the stand seemed to bring him closer to his companion. He held her books tightly, and his face softened as he looked at her, until it was transfigured by the warmth of his emotion. Then, as they passed the college grounds, where a knot of students greeted Eugenia hilariously, and turned upon the Old Stage Road, he reached out timidly to take the small hand hanging by her side.
"It's better walkin' on this side the road," he said
with a mild assumption of masculine supremacy. "I wouldn't walk in the dust."
Eugenia looked at him gravely and drew her hand away.
"You mustn't do that," she responded severely. "When I said you weren't common I didn't mean that you really weren't, you know; because, of course, you are. I jest meant that I wouldn't let them say so."
Nicholas stood in the centre of the road and stared at her, his face flushing and a slow rage creeping into his eyes.
For a moment he stood in trembling silence. Then he threw the books from him into the sand at her feet, and with a choking sob sped past her to vanish amid a whirl of dust in the sunny distance.
Eugenia looked thoughtfully down upon her scattered possessions. She was all alone upon the highway, and around her the open fields rolled off into the green of far-off forests. The sunshine fell hotly over her, and straight ahead the white road lay like a living thing.
She stooped, gravely gathered up the books, and walked resolutely on her way, a cloud of yellow butterflies fluttering like loosened petals of full-blown buttercups about her head.
Battle Hall was a square white frame house with bright-green window shutters and a deep front porch, supported by heavy pillars, and reached from the gravelled walk below by a flight of rugged stone steps. In the rear of the house, through which a wide hall ran, dividing the rooms of the first floor, there was another porch similar to the one at the front, except that the pillars were hidden in musk roses and the long benches at either side were of plain, unpainted pine. At the foot of the back steps a narrow, well-trodden path led to the vegetable garden, which was separated from the yard by what was called "Cattle Lane" - a name derived from the morning and evening passage of the cows on their way to and from the pasture.
Beginning at the gate into the garden, where the tall white palings were gay with hollyhocks and heavy-headed sunflowers, a grapevine trellis extended to the farmyard at the end of the lane, whence an overgrown walk led across tangled meadows to the negro "quarters" - a long, whitewashed row of almost deserted cabins. Since the close of the war the "quarters" had fallen partly into disuse and had decayed rapidly, though some few were still tenanted by the former slaves, who gathered as of old in the doorways of an evening to strum upon broken-stringed banjos and to wrap the hair of their small offspring. Beyond this row there was a slight elevation
called "Hickory Hill," where Uncle Ishmael had lived for more than seventy years; and at the foot of the hill, on the other side, near "Sweet Gum Spring," there were several neatly patched log cabins occupied by the house servants, who held in social contempt the field hands in the neighbouring "quarters." Overlooking the "Sweet Gum Spring," on a loftier hill, was the family graveyard, which was walled off from the orchard near by, where the twisted old fruit trees had long since yielded the larger part of their abundance.
At the front of the Hall the view was vastly different. There the great blue-grass lawn was thickly studded with ancient elms and maples, whose shade fell like a blanket upon the velvety sod beneath. The gravelled walk, beginning at the front steps, was bordered on either side by rows of closely clipped box, which ended in the long avenue of cedars leading from the lawn to the distant turnpike. To the right of the house there were three pointed aspens, which shivered like skeletons in silver, holding grimly aloof from the vivid pink of the crepe myrtle at their feet. Beyond them was the well-house, with a long moss-grown trough where the horses and the cows came to drink, and across the road began the cornlands, which stretched in rhythmic undulations to the dark belt of the pine forest. On the left of the box walk, in a direct line from the three aspens, towered a huge sycamore, and from one of its protecting arms, shaded by large fan-like leaves, a child's swing dangled by a thick hemp rope. Near the sycamore, where an old oak had fallen, the rotting stump was hidden by a high
"rockery," edged with conch shells, and over the rough gray rocks a tangle of garden flowers ran wild - sweet-william, petunias, phlox, and the mossy stems of red and yellow portulaca. On the western side of the house there was a spreading mimosa tree, its sensitive branches brushing the green shutters of a window in the second story.
The Hall had been built by the general's father when, because of family dissensions, he had decided to move from a central county to the more thinly settled country surrounding Kingsborough. There the general had passed his boyhood, and there he had left his wife when he had gone to the war. At the beginning of the struggle he had freed his slaves and buckled on his sword.
"They may have the negroes, and welcome," he had said to the judge. "Do you think I'd fight for a damned darkey? It's the principle, sir - the principle!"
And the judge, who had not freed his servants, but who would have thought as little of using a profane word as of alluding in disrespectful terms to a family portrait, had replied gravely:
"My dear Tom, you will find principle much better to fight for than to live on."
But the general had gone with much valour and more vehemence. He had enlisted as a private, had risen within a couple of years to a colonelcy, and had been raised to the rank of general by the unanimous voice of his neighbours upon his return home. After an enthusiastic reception at Kingsborough he had mounted a heavy-weight horse and ridden out to the Hall, to find the grounds a tangle of weeds and
his wife with the pallor of death upon her brow. She had rallied at his coming, had lingered some sad years an invalid in the great room next the parlour, and had died quietly at last as she knelt in prayer beside her high white bed.
For days after this the empty house was like a coffin. The children ran in tears through the shuttered rooms, and the servants lost their lingering shred of discipline. When the funeral was over, the general made some spasmodic show of authority, but his heart was not in it, and he wavered for lack of the sustaining hold of his wife's frail hand. He dismissed the overseer and undertook to some extent the management of the farm, but the crops failed and the hay rotted in the fields before it was got into the barn. Then, as things were galloping from bad to worse, a letter came from his sister, Miss Christina, and in a few days she arrived with a cartload of luggage and a Maltese cat in a wicker basket. From the moment when she stepped out of the carriage at the end of the avenue and ascended the box-trimmed walk to the stone steps, the difficulties disentangled and the domestic problems dwindled into the simplest of arithmetical sums. By some subtle law of the influence of the energetic she assumed at once the rights of authority. From the master of the house to the field hands in the "quarters," all bent to her regenerating rule. She opened the windows in the airy rooms, cleaned off the storeroom shelves with soda and water, and put the marauding small negroes to weeding the lawn. Before her passionate purification the place was purged of the dust of years. The hardwood floors of the
wide old halls began to shine like mirrors, the assortment of odds and ends in the attic was relegated to an outhouse, and even the general's aunt, Miss Griselda Grigsby, was turned unceremoniously out of her apartment before the all-pervading soapsuds of cleaning day.
As for the servants, a sudden miraculous zeal possessed them. Within a fortnight the garden rows were hoed free from grass, the hops were gathered from the fence, and the weeds on the lawn vanished beneath small black fingers. Even the annual threshing of the harvest was accomplished under the overseeing eye of "Miss Chris," as she was called by the coloured population. During the week that the old machine poured out its chaffless wheat and the driver whistled in the centre of the treadmill Miss Chris appeared at the barn at noon each day to warn the hands against waste of time and to see that the mules were well watered.
But the revolutions without were as naught to the internal ones. Aunt Verbeny, the cook, whose tyranny had extended over thirty years, was assisted from her pedestal, and the hen-house keys were removed from the nail of the kitchen wall.
"This will never do, Verbeny," said Miss Chris a month after her arrival. "We could not possibly have eaten three dozen chickens within the last week. I am afraid you take them home without asking me."
Aunt Verbeny, a fat old woman with a shining black skin, smoothed her checked apron with offended dignity.
"Hi! Miss Chris, ain't I de cook?" she exclaimed.
But Miss Chris preserved her ground.
"That is no excuse for you taking what doesn't belong to you," she replied severely. "If this keeps up I shall be obliged to let Delphy do the cooking. There won't be a chicken in the hen-house by the end of the month."
Aunt Verbeny still smoothed her apron, but her authority was shaken, and she felt it. She gave a slow grunt of dissatisfaction.
"Dese ain't de doin's I'se used ter," she protested, and then, beneath the undaunted eyes of Miss Chris, she melted into propitiation.
"Des' let dat ar chicken alont, Miss Chris," she said, skilfully reducing the charge to a single offence. "Des' let dat ar chicken alont. 'Tain' no use yo' rilin' yo'se'f 'bout dat. Hit's done en it's been done. Hit don't becomst de quality ter fluster demse'ves over de gwines on uv er low-lifeted fowl. You des' bresh yo'se'f down an steddy like hit ain' been fool you ef you knowed yo'se'f. You des' let dat ar chicken be er little act uv erdultery betweenst you en me. Ef'n it's gone, hit'll stay gone!"
Whereupon Miss Chris retreated, leaving her opponent in possession of the kitchen floor.
But from this day forth the hen-house was locked at night and unlocked in the morning by the hand of Miss Chris, and Aunt Verbeny's overweening ill-temper diminished with her authority.
Miss Chris had been a beauty in her day, but as she passed middle age the family failing seized upon her, and she grew huge and unwieldy, the disproportion of her enormous figure to her small feet giving her an awkward, waddling walk.
She had a profusion of silvery-white hair, worn in fluffy curls about her large pink face, soft brown eyes, and a full double chin that fell over a round cameo brooch bearing the head of Minerva set in a plain gold band. In winter she wore gowns of black Henrietta cloth, made with plain bodices and full plaited skirts; in summer she wore the same skirts with loosely fitting white linen sacques, trimmed in delicate embroideries, with muslin ruffles falling over her plump hands. When she came to the Hall she brought with her innumerable reminiscences of her childhood, which she told in a musical voice with girlish laughter.
After his sister's arrival the general discontinued his fitful overseering. He rose early and spent his long days sitting upon the front porch, smoking an old briar pipe and reading the Richmond papers. Occasionally he would ride at a jogging pace round the fields, giving casual directions to the workers, but as his weight increased he found it difficult to mount into the saddle, and, at last, desisted from the attempt. He preferred to sit in peace in his cane rocking chair, looking down the box walk into the twilight of the cedar avenue, or gazing placidly beyond the aspens and the well-house to the streaked ribbons of the ripening corn. It was said that he had never been the same man since the death of his wife. Certainly he laughed as heartily and his jovial face had taken a ruddier tint, but there was a superficiality in his exuberant cheerfulness which told that it was not well rooted below the surface. His jokes were as ready as ever, but he had fallen into an absent-minded habit of repetition, and sometimes
repeated the same stories at breakfast and supper. He talked freely of his dead wife, he even made ill-placed jests about his widowerhood, and he never failed to kiss a pair of red lips when the chance offered; but, for all that, his gaze often wandered past the huge sycamore to the family graveyard, where rank periwinkle grew and mocking-birds nested. Through the long summer not a Sunday passed that he did not take fresh flowers to one of the neatly trimmed mounds where the marble headpiece read:
"AMELIA TUCKER,
BELOVED WIFE OF
THOMAS BATTLE,
DIED APRIL 3RD., 18-.
'I am the Resurrection and the Life, saith the Lord.' "
Sometimes the children were with him, but usually he went alone, and once or twice he returned with red eyelids and asked for a julep.
There was little to fill his life now, and he divided it between Bernard and Eugenia, whom he adored, and the negroes, whom he reviled for diversion and spoiled to make amends.
"They will break me!" he would declare a dozen times a day. "They will turn me out of house and home. Here's old Sambo's Claudius come back and moved into the quarters. He hasn't a cent to his name, and he's the most no 'count scamp on earth. It's worse than before the war - upon my soul it is!
Then they lived on me and I got an odd piece of work out of them. Now they live on me and don't do a damned lick!"
"My dear Tom!" Miss Chris cheerfully remonstrated. She had long been reconciled to her brother's swearing propensities, which she regarded as an amiable eccentricity to be overlooked by a special indulgence accorded the male sex, but she never knew just how to meet him in a discussion of the servants.
"What is to be done about it?" she inquired gravely. "Claudius left here at the beginning of the war, Aunt Griselda says, and he has never been back until now. It seems he has brought his family. He has lung-trouble."
"Done about it!" repeated the general heatedly. "What's to be done about it? Why, the rascal can't starve. I've just told Sampson to wheel him down a barrel of meal. Oh, they'll break me! I shan't have a morsel left!"
The next time it was an opposite grievance.
"What do you reckon's happened now?" he asked, marching into the brick storeroom, where his sister was slicing ripe, red tomatoes into a blue china bowl. "What do you think that fool Ish has done?"
Miss Chris looked up attentively, her large, fresh-coloured face expressing mild apprehension. She had rolled back her linen sleeves, and the juice of the tomatoes stained her full, dimpled wrists.
"He hasn't killed himself?" she inquired anxiously.
"Killed himself?" roared the general. "He'll live forever. I don't believe he'd die if he were
strung up with a halter round his neck. He's moved off."
"Moved off!" echoed Miss Chris faintly. "Why, I believe Uncle Ish was living in that cabin on Hickory Hill before I was born. I remember going up there to help him gather hickory nuts when I wasn't six years old. I couldn't have been six because mammy Betsey was with me, and she died before I was seven. I declare there were always more nuts on those trees than any I ever saw - "
But the general broke in upon her reminiscences, and she took up a fresh tomato and peeled it carefully with a sharp-edged knife.
"Some idiots got after him," said the general, "and told him if he went on living on my land he'd go back to slavery, and, bless your life, he has gone - gone to that little one-room shanty where his daughter used to live, between my place and Burr's - as if I'd have him," he concluded wrathfully. "I wouldn't own that fool again if he dropped into my lap straight from heaven!"
Miss Chris laughed merrily.
"It is the last place he would be likely to drop from," she returned; "but I'll call him up and talk with him. It is a pity for him to be moving off at his age."
So Uncle Ishmael was summoned up to the porch, and Miss Chris explained the error of his ways, but to no purpose.
"I ain' got no fault ter fine," he repeated over and over again, scratching his grizzled head. "I ain' got no fault ter fine wid you. You've been used me moughty well, en I'se pow'ful 'bleeged ter you - en
Marse Tom, he's a gent'mun ef ever I seed one. I ain' go no fault ter fine."
The general lost his temper and started up.
"Then what do you mean by turning fool at your age?" he demanded angrily. "Haven't I given you a roof over your head all these years?"
"Dat's so, suh."
"And food to eat?"
"Dat's so."
"And never asked you to do a lick of work since you got the rheumatism?"
"Dat's es true es de Gospel."
"Then what do you mean by going off like mad to that little, broken-down shanty with half the roof gone?"
Uncle Ishmael shuffled his heavy feet and scratched his head again.
"Hit's de trufe, Marse Tom," he said at last. "Hit's de Gospel trufe. I ain' had so much ter eat sence I'se gone off, en I ain' had much uv er roof ter kiver me, en I ain' had nuttin' ter w'ar ter speak on - but, fo' de Lawd, Marse Tom, freedom it are er moughty good thing."
Then the general flew into the house in a rage and Uncle Ishmael left, followed by two small negroes, bearing on their heads the donations made by Miss Chris to his welfare.
On the day that Eugenia encountered Nicholas at school the general was sitting, as usual, in his rocking chair upon the front porch, when he saw the flutter of a blue skirt, and Eugenia emerged from the avenue and came up the walk between the stiff rows of box. It was two o'clock, and the general
was peacefully awaiting the sound of the dinner bell, but at the sight of Eugenia his peacefulness departed, and he called angrily:
"Eugie, where's Bernard?"
"Comin'."
"Coming!" returned the general indignantly. "Haven't I told you a dozen times not to walk along that road by yourself? Why didn't you wait for the carriage? Are you never going to mind what I say to you?"
Eugenia came up the steps and threw her books on one of the long green benches. Then she seated herself in a rocking chair and untied her sunbonnet.
"I wa'n't by myself," she said. "A boy was with me."
"A boy? Where is he?"
"He ran away."
The general's great head went back, and he shook with laughter. "Bless my soul! What did he mean by that? What boy was it, daughter?"
Eugenia sat upright in the high rocker, fanning her heated face with her sunbonnet.
"The Burr boy," she answered.
The general gasped for breath, and turned towards the hall.
"Come out here, Chris!" he called. "Here's Eugie been walking home with the Burr boy!"
In a moment Miss Chris's large figure appeared in the doorway, and she handed a brimming mint julep to the general.
"I don't know what Eugie can be made of," she remarked. "Amos Burr was overseer for the Carringtons before he got that place of his own, and I
remember just as well as if it were yesterday old Mr. Phil Carrington telling me once, when I was on a visit there, that the more his man Burr worked the less he accomplished. But, as for Eugenia, that isn't the worst about her. Just the other morning, when I was looking out of the storeroom window, I saw her with her arm round the neck of Aunt Verbeny's little Suke. I declare I was so upset I let the quart pot fall into the potato bin!"
"But there isn't anybody else, Aunt Chris," protested Eugenia, looking up from her father's julep, which she was tasting. "And I'm 'bliged to have a bosom friend."
The general shook until his face was purple and the ice jingled in the glass.
"Bosom friend, you puss!" he roared. "Why can't you choose a bosom friend of your own colour? What do you want with a bosom friend as black as the ace of spades?"
"O papa, she ain't black; she's jes' yellow-brown."
"You ought to be ashamed of yourself, Eugie," said Miss Chris severely. "Now go upstairs and wash your face and hands before dinner. It is almost ready. I wonder where Bernard is!"
"Can't I wait twell the bell rings?" Eugenia asked; but Miss Chris shook her head decisively.
"Eugenia, will you never stop talking like a darkey?" she demanded. "How often must I tell you that there's no such word as 'twell'? Now, go right straight upstairs."
Eugenia rose obediently and went into the hall. She had learned from her father and the servants not to dispute the authority of Miss Chris, though
she yielded to it with a mild surprise at her own docility.
"She don't really manage me," she had once confided to Delphy, the washerwoman, "but I jes' plays that she does."
When Eugenia came downstairs she found the family seated at dinner, Miss Chris and her father beaming upon each other across a dish of fried chicken and a home-cured ham. Bernard was on Miss Chris's right hand, and on the other side of the table Eugenia's seat separated the general from Aunt Griselda, who sat severely buttering her toast before a brown earthenware teapot ornamented by a raised design of Rebecca at the well. Aunt Griselda was a lean, dried-up old lady, with a sharp, curved nose like the beak of a bird, and smoothly parted hair brushed low over her ears and held in place by a tortoise-shell comb. There were deep channels about her eyes, worn by the constant falling of acrid tears, and her cheeks were wrinkled and yellowed like old parchment.
Twenty years ago, when the general had first brought home his young wife, before her buoyancy had faltered, and before the five little head-boards to the five stillborn children had been set up amid the periwinkle in the family graveyard, Aunt Griselda had written from the home of her sister to say that she would stop over at Battle Hall on her way to Richmond.
The general had received the news joyfully, and the best chamber had been made ready by the hospitable hands of his young wife. Delicate, lavender-scented
linen had been put on the old tester-bed and curtains of flowered chintz tied back from the window seats. Amelia Battle had placed a bowl of tea-roses upon the dressing table and gone graciously down to the avenue to welcome her guest. From the family carriage Aunt Griselda had emerged soured and eccentric. She had gone up to the best chamber, unpacked her trunks, hung up her bombazine skirts in the closet, ordered green tea and toast, and settled herself for the remainder of her days. That was twenty years ago, and she still slept in the best chamber, and still ordered tea and toast at the table. She had grown sourer with years and more eccentric with authority, but the general never failed to treat her crotchets with courtesy or to open the door for her when she came and went. To the mild complaints of Miss Chris and the protestations of Eugenia he returned the invariable warning: "She is our guest - remember what is due to a guest, my dears."
And when Miss Chris placidly suggested that the privileges of guestship wore threadbare when they were stretched over twenty years, and Eugenia fervently hoped that there were no visitors in heaven, the general responded to each in turn:
"It's the right of a guest to determine the length of his stay, and, as a Virginian, my house is open as long as it has a roof over it."
So Aunt Griselda drank her green tea in acrid silence, turning at intervals to reprove Bernard for taking too large mouthfuls or to request Eugenia to remove her elbows from the table.
To-day, when Eugenia descended, she was gazing
stonily into Miss Chris's genial face, and listening constrainedly to a story at which the general was laughing heartily.
"Yes, I never look at these forks of the bead pattern that I don't see Aunt Callowell," Miss Chris was concluding. "She never used any other pattern, and I remember when Cousin Bob Baker once sent her a set of teaspoons with a different border, she returned them to Richmond to be exchanged. Do you remember the time she came to mother's when we were children, Tom? Eugie, will you have breast or leg?"
"I don't think I could have been at home," said the general, his face growing animated, as it always did, in a discussion of old times; "but I do remember once, when I was at Uncle Robert's, they sent me eighteen miles on horseback for the doctor, because Aunt Callowell had such a queer feeling in her side when she started to walk. I can see her now holding her side and saying: 'I can't possibly take a step! Robert, I can't take a step!' And when I brought the doctor eighteen miles from home, on his old gray mare, he found that she'd put a shoe on one foot and a slipper on the other."
The general threw back his head and laughed until the table groaned, while Miss Chris's double chin shook softly over her cameo brooch.
Aunt Griselda wiped her eyes on the border of her handkerchief.
"Aunt Cornelia Callowell was a righteous woman," she murmured. "I never thought that I should hear her ridiculed in the house of her great-nephew. She scalloped me a flannel petticoat with
her own hands. Eugenia, in my day little girls didn't reach for the butter. They waited until it was handed to them."
Congo, the butler, rushed to Eugenia's assistance, and the general shook his finger at her and formed the word "guest" with his mouth. Miss Chris changed the subject by begging Aunt Griselda to have a wing of chicken.
"I don't believe in so much dieting," she said cheerfully. "I think your nerves would be better if you ate more. Just try a brown wing."
"I know my nerves are bad," Aunt Griselda rejoined, still wiping her eyes, "though it is hard to be accused of a temper before my own nephew. But I know I am a burden, and I have overstayed my welcome. Let me go."
"Why, Aunt Griselda?" remonstrated Miss Chris in hurt tones. "You know I didn't accuse you of anything. I only meant that you would feel better if you didn't drink so much tea and ate more meat - "
"I am not too old to take a hint," replied Aunt Griselda. "I haven't reached my dotage yet, and I can see when I am a burden. Here, Congo, you may put my teapot away."
"O Lord!" gasped the general tragically; and rising to the occasion, he said hurriedly: "By the way, Chris, they told me at the post-office to-day that old Dr. Smith was dead. It was only last week that I met him on his way to town with his niece's daughter, and he told me that he had never been in better health in his life."
"Dear me!" exclaimed Miss Chris, holding a
large spoonful of raspberries poised above the dish to which she was helping. "Why, old Dr. Smith attended me forty years ago when I had measles. I remember he made me lie in bed with blankets over me, though it was August, and he wouldn't let me drink anything except hot flax-seed tea. They say all that has been changed in this generation - "
"Leave me plenty of room for cream, Aunt Chris," broke in Bernard, with an anxious eye on Miss Chris's absent-minded manipulations. She reached for the round, old silver pitcher, and poured the yellow cream on the sugared berries without pausing in her soft, monotonous flow of words.
"But even in those days Dr. Smith was behind the times, and he has been so ever since. He used to say that chloroform was invented by infidels, and he would not let them give it to his son, Lawrence, when he broke his leg on the threshing machine. It was a mania with him, for, when I was nursing in the hospitals during the war, he told me with his own lips that he believed the Lord was on our side because we didn't have chloroform."
"He had a good many odd ideas," said the general, "but he is dead now, poor man."
"He raised up my dear father when he was struck down with paralysis," murmured Aunt Griselda.
When dinner was over the general returned to the front porch, and Eugenia and the puppy went with Bernard to the orchard to look for green apples.
They started out in single file; Bernard, a bright-faced, snub-nosed boy with a girlish mouth, a little in advance, Eugenia following, and the puppy at her heels. On the way across the meadow, where myriads
of grasshoppers darted with a whirring noise beneath the leaves of coarse mullein plants or the slender, unopened pods of milkweed, the puppy made sudden desperate skirmishes into the tangled pathside, pointing ineffectually at the heavy-legged insects, his red tongue lolling and his short tail wagging. Up the steep ascent of the orchard a rocky trail ran, bordered by a rail fence. From the point of the hill one could see the adjoining country unrolled like a map, olive heights melting into emerald valleys, bare clearings into luxuriant crops, running a chromatic scale from the dry old battle-fields surrounding Kingsborough to the arable "bottoms" beside the enrichening river.
After an unsuccessful search for cherries Bernard climbed a tree where summer apples hung green, and tossed the fruit to Eugenia, who held up her blue skirt beneath the overhanging boughs. The puppy, having dodged in astonishment a stray apple, went off after the silvery track of a snail.
"That's enough," called Bernard presently, and he descended and filled his pockets from Eugenia's lap. "They set my teeth on edge, anyway. Got any salt?"
Eugenia drew a small folded envelope from her pocket. Then she threw away her apple and pointed to the little brook at the foot of the hill. "There's that red-winged blackbird in the bulrushes again. I believe it's got a nest."
And they started in a run down the hillside, the puppy waddling behind with shrill, impertinent barks.
At the bottom of the hill they lost the blackbird
and found Nicholas Burr, who was lying face downwards upon the earth, a fishing line at his side.
"He's crying," said Eugenia in a high whisper.
Nicholas rolled over, saw them, and got up, wiping his eyes on the sleeve of his shirt.
"There warn't nobody lookin'," he said defiantly.
"You're too big to cry," observed Bernard dispassionately, munching a green apple he had taken from his pocket. "You're as big as I am, and I haven't cried since I was six years old. Eugie cries."
"I don't!" protested Eugenia vehemently. "I reckon you'd cry too if they made you sit in the house the whole afternoon and hem cup-towels."
"I'm a boy, Miss Spitfire. Boys don't sew. I saw Nick Burr milking, though, one day. What made you milk, Nick?"
"Ma did."
"I'd like to see anybody make me milk. You're jes' the same as a girl."
"I ain't!"
"You are!"
"I ain't!"
" 'Spose you fight it out," suggested Eugenia, with an eye for sport, settling herself upon the ground with Jim in her lap.
Nicholas picked up his fishing line and wound it slowly round the cork. "There's a powerful lot of minnows in this creek," he remarked amicably. "When you lean over that log you can catch 'em in your hat."
"Let's do it," said Eugenia, starting up, and they went out upon the slippery log between the reedy
banks. Over the smooth, pebbly bed of the stream flashed the shining bodies of hundreds of minnows, passing back and forth with brisk wriggles of their fine, steel-coloured tails. On the Battle side of the bank a huge, blue-winged dragonfly buzzed above the flaunting red and yellow faces of three tiger-lilies.
Jim sat on the brookside and watched the minnows, having ventured midway upon the log, to retreat at the sight of his own reflection in the water.
"He's a coward," said Bernard teasingly, alluding to the recreant Jim. "I wouldn't have a dog that was a coward."
"He ain't a coward," returned Eugenia passionately. "He jes' don't like looking at his own face, that's all. Here, Nick, hand me your hat."
Nick obediently gave her his hat, and Eugenia leaned over the stream, her bare arms and vivid face mirrored against the silvery minnows, when a shrill call came from the house.
"Nick! Who-a Ni-ck!"
"That's Sairy Jane," said Nicholas, reaching for his hat. "Ma wants me."
"Who is Sairy Jane? "
"Sister."
Eugenia handed him his dripping hat, and stood shaking her fingers free from the sparkling drops.
"Will you come and fish with me to-morrow?" she asked.
"If I ain't got to work in the field - "
"Don't work."
"Can't help it."
The call was repeated, and Nicholas sped over the
mossy log and across the ploughed field, while Bernard and Eugenia toiled up the hillside.
As they passed the Sweet Gum Spring they saw Delphy, the washerwoman, standing in her doorway, quarrelling with her son-in-law, Moses, who was hoeing a small garden patch in the rear of an adjoining cabin. Delphy was a large mulatto woman, with a broad, flat bosom and enormous hands that looked as if they had been parboiled into a livid blue tint.
" 'Tain' no use fer to hoe groun' dat ain' got no richness," she was saying, shaking her huge head until the dipper hanging on the lintel of the door rattled, "en 'tain' no use preachin' ter a nigger dat ain' got no gumption. Es de tree fall, so hit' gwine ter lay, en es a fool's done been born, so he gwine ter die. 'Tain' no use a-tryin' fer to do over a job dat de Lawd done slighted. You may ding about hit en you may dung about hit, but ef'n it won't, hit won't."
Moses, a meek-looking negro with an honest face, hoed silently, making no response to his mother-in-law's vituperations, which grew voluble before his non-resistance.
"Dar ain' no use er my frettin' en perfumin' over dat ar nigger," she concluded, as if addressing a third person. "He wuz born a syndicate en he'll die er syndicate. De Debbil, he ain' gwine tu'n 'm en de Lawd he can't. De preachin' it runs off 'im same es water off er duck's back. I'se done talked ter him day in en day out twell dar ain' no breff lef' fer me ter blow wid, an' he ain' changed a hyar f'om what de Lawd made 'im. Seems like he ain' got de sperit uv - "
"Why, Delphy!" exclaimed Bernard, interrupting the flow of speech. "What's the matter with Moses?"
Delphy snorted contemptuously and took breath for procedure, when the sharp cry of a baby came from Moses' cabin, and Eugenia broke in excitedly:
"Why, there's a baby in there, Delphy! Whose baby is that?"
"Git er long wid you, chile," said Delphy. "You knows er plum sight mo' now'n you ought ter." Then she added with a snort: "Hit's es black es er crow's foot."
"Is it Betsey's baby?"
"I reckon 'tis. Moses he says ez what 'tis, but he's de mos' outlandish nigger on dis yer place. Dar ain' no relyin' on him, noways."
"When did it come, Delphy? Who brought it? I saw Dr. Debs yesterday, an' his saddle-bag bulged mightily."
"De Lawd didn't brung hit," returned Delphy emphatically. "De Lawd wouldn't er teched hit wid er ten-foot pole. Dis yer Moses, he ain' wuth de salt dat's put in his bread. He's de wuss er de hull lot - "
"Why doesn't Betsey get rid of him?" asked Bernard, eyeing the shrinking Moses with disfavour. "I heard Aunt Chris say that Mrs. Willie Wilson in Richmond got a divorce from her husband for good and all - "
"Lawdy, chile! Huccome you think I'se gwine ter pay fer a dervoge fer sech er low-lifeted creetur ez dat? He ain' wuth no dervogin', he ain't. When
it come ter dervogin', I'll dervoge 'im wid my fis' en foot - "
Here the baby cried again, and the irate Delphy disappeared into Moses' cabin, while the meek-looking son-in-law hoed the garden patch and muttered beneath his breath.
The children passed the spring, crossed the meadow, and followed the grapevine trellis to the back steps, when Eugenia rushed through the wide hall with an impetuous flutter of short skirts.
"Papa!" she cried, bursting upon the general as he sat smoking upon the front porch. "What do you think has happened? There's a new baby came to Moses' cabin, an' Delphy says it's as black as -"
"Well, I am blessed!" groaned the general, knocking the ashes from his pipe. "Another mouth to feed. Eugie, they'll ruin me yet."
"I reckon they will," returned Eugenia hopelessly. She seated herself upon the topmost step and made a place for Jim beside her.
The general was silent for some time, smoking thoughtfully and staring past the aspens and the well-house to the waving cornfield. When he spoke it was with embarrassed hesitation.
"I say, daughter."
Eugenia looked up eagerly.
"Didn't that spotted cow of Moses' die last week?"
"That it did," replied Eugenia emphatically. "It got loose in your clover pasture and ate itself too full. Moses says it bu'st."
"Pish!" exclaimed the general angrily. "My
clover! I tell you, they won't leave me a roof over my head. They'll eat me into the poorhouse. But I'll turn them off. I'll send them packing, bag and baggage. My clover!"
"Moses ain't got much of a garden patch," said Eugenia. "It looks mighty poor. The potato-bugs ate all his potatoes."
The general was silent again.
"I say, daughter," he began at last, blowing a heavy cloud of smoke upon the air, "the next time you go by Sweet Gum Spring you had just as well tell Moses that I can let him have a side of bacon if he wants it. The rascal can't starve. But they won't leave me a mouthful - not one. And Eugie - "
"Yes, sir."
"You needn't mention it to your Aunt Chris - "
At that instant a little barefooted negro came running across the lawn from the spring-house, a large tin pail in his hand.
"Here, boy!" called the general. "Where're you off to? What have you got in that pail?"
"It's Jake," said Eugenia in a whisper, while Jim barked frantically from the shelter of her arms. "He's Delphy's Jake."
The small negro stood grinning in the walk, his white eyeballs circling in their sockets. "Hit's Miss Chris, suh," he said at last.
"Miss Chris, you rascal!" shouted the general. "Do you expect me to believe you've got Miss Chris in that pail? Open it, sir; open it!"
Jake showed a shining row of ivory teeth and stood shaking the pail from side to side.
"Miss Chris, she gun hit ter me, suh," he explained.
"Hit's Miss Chris herse'f dat's done sont me ter tote dish yer buttermilk ter Unk Mose."
"Bless my soul!" cried the general wrathfully. "Get away with you! The whole place is bent on ruining me. I'll be in the poorhouse before the week's up." And he strode indoors in a rage.
Twice a year, on fine days in spring and fall, Aunt Griselda's bombazine dresses were taken from the whitewashed closet and hung out to air upon the clothesline at the back of the house, while pungent odours of tar and camphor were exhaled from the full black folds. On these days Aunt Griselda would remain in her room, sorting faded relics which she took from a cedar chest and spread beside her on the floor. The door was kept locked at such times, but once Eugenia, who had gone with Congo to carry Aunt Griselda her toast and tea, had caught a glimpse of a yellowed swiss muslin frock and the leather case of a daguerreotype containing the picture of a round-eyed girl with rosy cheeks. Aunt Griselda had hidden them hastily away at the child's entrance - hidden them with that nervous, awkward haste which dreads a dawning jest of itself; but Eugenia had seen that her old eyes were red and her voice more rasping than usual.
Sixty years ago Aunt Griselda had had her romance, and she still kept her love-letters tied up with discoloured ribbons and laid away in the cedar chest. It was but the skeleton of a love story - the adolescent ardours of a high-spirited country girl and the high-spirited son of a neighbouring farmer. When the quarrel came the letters were overlooked when the ring went back. Griselda Grigsby had tossed them carelessly into the cedar chest and gone out to
forget them. Her heart had not been deeply touched and it soon mended. No other lovers came, and she lived her quiet life in her father's house, gathering garden flowers for the great, blue bowls in the parlour, teaching the catechism to small black slaves, and making stiff, old-fashioned samplers in crewels. The high-spirited lover had loved elsewhere and died of a fever, and, beyond a passing regret, she thought little of him. There were nearer interests, and she was still the petted daughter of her father's house - the eldest and the best beloved. Then the crash came. The old people passed away, the house changed hands, Aunt Griselda was stranded upon the high tide of hospitality - and crewel work went out of fashion.
In her sister's home she became a constant guest - one to be offered the favoured share and to be treated with tender, increasing tolerance - not to be loved. Since the death of her parents none had loved her, though many had borne gently with her spoiled fancies. But her coming in had brought no light, and her going out had left nothing dark. She was old and ill-tempered and bitter of speech, and, though all doors opened hospitably at her approach, all closed quickly when she was gone. Her spoiled youth had left her sensitive to trivial stings, unforgivable to fancied wrongs. In a childish oversight she detected hidden malice and implacable hate in a thoughtless jest. Her bitterness and her years waxed greater together, and she lost alike her youth and her self-control. When she had yearned for passionate affection she had found kindly tolerance, and the longings of her hidden nature, which
none knew, were expressed in rasping words and acrid tears. Once, some years after Bernard's birth, she had called him into her room as she sat among her relics, and had shown him the daguerreotype.
"It's pitty lady," the child had lisped, and she had caught him suddenly to her lean old breast, but he had broken into peevish cries and struggled free, tearing with his foot the ruffle of the swiss muslin gown.
"Oo ain't pitty lady," he had said, and Aunt Griselda had risen and pushed him into the hall with sharp, scolding words, and had sat down to darn the muslin ruffle with delicate, old-fashioned stitches.
It was only when all living love had failed her that she returned to the dead. She had gathered the letters of nearly sixty years ago from the bottom of the cedar chest, reading them through her spectacles with bleared, watery eyes. Those subtle sentimentalities which linger like aromas in a heart too aged for passion were liberated by the bundle of yellow scrawls written by hands that were dust. As she sat in her stiff bombazine skirts beside the opened chest, peering with worry-ravaged face at the old letters, she forgot that she was no longer one with the girl in the muslin frock, and that the inciter of this exuberant emotion was as dead as the emotion itself.
When the dresses were brought up to her she would put them on again and go down to flinch before kindly eyes and to make embittered speeches in her high, shrill voice. Outwardly she grew more soured and more eccentric. On mild summer evenings she would come down stairs with her head
wrapped in a pink knitted "nubia," and stroll back and forth along the gravelled walk, her gaunt figure passing into the dusk of the cedar avenue and emerging like the erratic shadow of one of the sombre trees.
Sometimes Eugenia joined her, but Bernard, her favourite, held shyly aloof. In her exercise she seldom spoke, and her words were peevish ones, but there was grim pathos in her carriage as she moved slowly back and forth between the straight rows of box.
After supper the family assembled on the porch and talked in a desultory way until ten o'clock, when the lights were put out and the house retired to rest. Eugenia slept in a great, four-post bedstead with Aunt Chris, and the bed was so large and soft and billowy that she seemed to lose herself suddenly at night in its lavender-scented midst, and to be as suddenly discovered in the morning by Rindy, the house-girl, when she came with her huge pails of warm water.
Those fresh summer dawns of Eugenia's childhood became among her dearest memories in after years. There were hours when, awaking, wide-eyed, before the house was astir, she would rise on her elbow and look out across the dripping lawn, where each dewdrop was charged with opalescent tints, to the western horizon, where the day broke in a cloud of gold. The song of a mocking-bird in the poplars of the little graveyard came to her with unsuspected melody - a melody drawn from the freshness, the loneliness, the half-awakened calls from hidden nests and the lyric ecstasy of dawn.
Then, with the rising of the sun, Aunt Chris would turn upon her pillow and open her soft, brown eyes.
"It is not good for little folks to be awake so early," she would say, and there would rush upon the child a sense of warmth and tenderness and comfort, and she would nestle closer to her sweet, white pillow. With the beginning of day began also the demands upon the time of Miss Chris. First the new overseer, knocking at her door, would call through the crack that a cow had calved, or that one of the sheep was too ill to go to pasture. Then Rindy, entering with her pails, would shake a pessimistic head.
"Lawd, Miss Chris, one er dem ole coons done eat up er hull pa'cel er yo' chickens." And Miss Chris, at once the prop and the mainstay of the Battle fortunes, would rise with anxious exclamations and put on her full black skirt and linen sacque.
When breakfast was over Miss Chris went into the storeroom each morning and came out with a basin of corn-meal dough, followed by Sampson bearing an axe and Aunt Verbeny jingling the hen-house keys. The slow procession then filed out to the space before the hen-house, the door of which was flung back, while Aunt Verbeny clucked at a little distance. Miss Chris scattered her dough upon the ground and, while her unsuspecting beneficiaries made their morning meal, she pointed out to Sampson, the executioner, the members of the feathered community destined to be sacrificed to the carnivorous habits of their fellow mortals.
"Feel that one with the black spots, Sampson,"
she said with the indifference of an abstract deity. "Is it fat? And the domineca pullet, and the two roosters we bought from Delphy."
And when Sampson had seized upon the victims of the fiat she turned to inspect the bunches of fowls offered by neighbouring breeders.
To-day it was Nicholas Burr who stood patiently in the background, three drooping chickens in each hand, their legs tied together with strips of a purple calico which Marthy was making into a dress for Sairy Jane.
Seeing that Miss Chris had delivered her judgments, he came forward and proffered his captives with an abashed demeanour.
"How much are they worth?" asked Miss Chris in her cheerful tones, while Aunt Verbeny gave a suspicious poke beneath one of the flapping wings, followed by a grunt of disparagement.
Nicholas stammered confusedly:
"Ma says the biggest ought to bring a quarter," he returned, blushing as Aunt Verbeny grunted again, "and the four smallest can go for twenty cents."
But when the bargain was concluded he lingered and added shamefacedly: "Won't you please let that red-and-black rooster live as long as you can? I raised it."
"Why, bless my heart!" exclaimed Miss Chris, "I believe the child is fond of the chicken."
Eugenia, who was hovering by, burst into tears and declared that the rooster should not die.
"Twenty cents is s-o ch-ea-p for a li-fe," she sobbed. "It shan't be killed, Aunt Chris. It shall
go in my hen-h-ou-se." And she rushed off to get her little tin bank from the top bureau drawer.
When the arrangements were concluded Nicholas started empty-handed down the box walk, the money jingling in his pocket. At the end of the long avenue of cedars there was a wide, unploughed common which extended for a quarter of a mile along the roadside. In spring and summer the ground was white with daisies and in the autumn it donned gorgeous vestments of golden-rod and sumach. In the centre of the waste, standing alike grim and majestic at all seasons, there was the charred skeleton of a gigantic tree, which had been stripped naked by a bolt of lightning long years ago. At its foot a prickly clump of briars surrounded the blackened trunk in a decoration of green or red, and from this futile screen the spectral limbs rose boldly and were silhouetted against the far-off horizon like the masts of a wrecked and deserted ship. A rail fence, where a trumpet-vine hung heavily, divided the field from the road, and several straggling sheep that had strayed from the distant flock stood looking shyly over the massive crimson clusters.
When Nicholas came out from the funereal dusk of the cedars the field was almost blinding in the morning glare, the yellow-centred daisies rolling in the breeze like white-capped billows on a sunlit sea. From the avenue to his father's land the road was unbroken by a single shadow - only to the right, amid the young corn, there was a solitary pesimmon tree, and on the left the gigantic wreck stranded amid the tossing daisies.
The sun was hot, and dust rose like smoke from the white streak of the road, which blazed beneath a cloudless sky.
The boy was tired and thirsty, and as he tramped along the perspiration rose to his forehead and dropped upon his shoulder. With a sigh of satisfaction he came upon the little cottage of his father and saw his stepmother taking the clothes in from the bushes where they had been spread to dry. It was Saturday, and ironing day, and he hoped for a chance at his lessons before night came, when he was so tired that the facts would not stick in his brain. He thought that it must be very easy to study in the mornings when you were fresh and eager and before that leaden weight centred behind your eyeballs.
When Marthy Burr saw him she called irritably:
"I say, Nick, did they take the chickens?"
Nicholas nodded, and, crossing the weeds in the garden, gave her the money from his pocket.
"They didn't say nothing 'bout wantin' more, I 'spose? Did you tell 'em I was fattenin' them four pairs of ducks?"
Nicholas shook his head. No, he hadn't told them.
"Well, your pa wants you down in the peanut field. You'd better get a drink of water first. You look powerful red."
An hour later, when work was over, he carried his book to the orchard and flung himself down beneath the trees. The judge had given him a biography of Jefferson, and he had learned his hero's life with lips and heart. The day that it was finished
he put the volume under his arm and went to the rector's house.
"I want to join the church," he said bluntly.
The rector, a kindly, middle-aged man, with a love for children, turned to him in half-puzzled, half-sympathetic inquiry.
"You are young, my child," he replied, "to be so zealous a Christian."
" 'Tain't that, sir," said the boy slowly. "I don't set much store by that. But I've got to go to heaven - because I can't see Thomas Jefferson no other way."
The rector did not smile. He was wiser than his generation, for he left the great man's own religion to himself and God. He said merely:
"When you are older we shall see, my boy - we shall see."
Nicholas left with a chill of disappointment, but as he passed along the street his name was called by Juliet Burwell, and she fluttered across to him in all her mystifying flounces and her gracious smile.
"I was at the rector's," she said, "and he told me that you wanted to be confirmed - and I want you to come into my Sunday-school class."
Nicholas met the kind eyes and blushed purple. Her beauty took away his breath and made his pulses leap. The slow, musical drawl of her speech soothed him like the runningrunning ofof clear water. He felt the image of Thomas Jefferson totter upon its pedestal, but it was steadied with a tremendous lurch. Jefferson was a man, after all, and this was only a woman.
"Will you come?" asked the soft voice, and he stammered an amazed and awkward assent.
On the Saturday after the day upon which Nicholas had pledged himself to attend Sunday-school Juliet Burwell asked him to come into Kingsborough and talk over the lesson for the following morning. At five o'clock in the afternoon he dressed himself with trembling hands and a perturbed heart; and for the first time in his life turned to look at his reflection in the small, cracked mirror hanging above the washstand in his stepmother's room.
As a finishing touch Marthy Burr tied a flaming plaid cravat beneath his collar.
"You ain't much on looks," she remarked as she drew back to survey him, "but you've got as peart a face as I ever seed. I reckon you'll be plenty handsome for a man. I was al'ays kind of set against one of these pink an' white men, somehow. They're pretty enough to look at when you're feelin' first-rate, but when you git the neuralgy they sort of turns yo' stomach. I've a taste for sober colours in men and caliky."
"I think he looks beautiful," said Sairy Jane, her eyes on the cravat, and Nicholas felt a sudden glow of gratitude, and silently resolved to save up until he had enough money to buy her a hair ribbon.
"I ain't sayin' he don't," returned Marthy Burr with a severe glance in the direction of her eldest daughter, who was minding Jubal in the kitchen
doorway. "Thar's red heads an' red heads, an' his ain't no redder than the reddest. But he came honestly by it, which is more than some folks can say as is got yellow. His father had it befo' him, an' thar's one good thing about it, you've got to be born with it or you ain't goin' to come by it no other way. I never seed a dyer that could set hair that thar colour 'cep'n the Lord Himself - an' I ain't one to deny that the Lord has got good taste in His own line."
Then, as Nicholas took up his hat, she added: "If they ask after me, Nick, be sure an' say I'm jes' po'ly."
Nicholas nodded and went out, followed to the road by Sairy Jane and Jubal, while his stepmother called after him to walk in the grass and try to keep his feet clean.
When he reached Kingsborough and crossed the green to the Burwell's house, which was in the lane called "Back Street," he fell to a creeping pace, held back by the fluttering of his pulses. Not until he saw Juliet standing at the little whitewashed gate did he brace himself to the full courage of approaching. When he spoke her name she opened the gate and gave him her hand, while all sense of diffidence fell from him.
"I've been looking at you for a long ways," he said boldly, "an' you were just like one of them tall lilies bordering the walk."
She blushed, turning her clear eyes upon him, and he felt a great desire to kiss the folds of her skirt or the rose above her left temple. He had never seen any one so good or so kind or so beautiful, and
he vowed passionately in his rustic little heart that he would always love her best - best of all - that he would fight for her if he might, or work for her if she needed it. There was none like her - not his stepmother - not Sairy Jane - not even Eugenia. She was different - something of finer clay, made to be waited upon and worshipped like the picture of the goddess standing on the moon that he had seen in the judge's study.
Juliet smiled upon his ardour, and, leading him to a bench beneath a flowering myrtle, made him sit down beside her, while she spoke pious things about Adam and the catechism and the salvation of the world - to all of which he listened with wide-opened eyes and a fluttering heart. He wondered why no one had ever before told him such beautiful things about God and the manifold importance of keeping a clean heart and loving your neighbour as yourself. It seemed to him that he had been living in sin for the twelve years of his life and he feared that he should find it impossible to purge his mind of evil passions and to love the coloured boy Boss who had stolen his best fishing line. He asked Juliet if she thought he would be able to withstand the assaults of Satan as the minister told him to do; but she laughed and said that there was no Satan who went about like a roaring lion - only cruelty and anger and ill-will, and that he must be kind to his brothers and sisters, and to animals, and not rob birds' nests, which was very wrong. Then she added as an afterthought, with a saintly look in her eyes, that he must love God. He promised that he should try to do so, though he wished in his heart that she had
told him to love herself instead. As he sat in the soft light, watching her beautiful face rising against a background of lilies, his young brain thrilled with the joy of life. It was such a glorious thing to live in a great, kind world, with a big, beneficent God above the blue, and to love all mankind - not harbouring an angry thought or an ill feeling! He looked into the kind eyes beside him and felt that he should like to be a saint or a minister - not a lawyer, which might be wicked after all. Then he remembered the waxen-faced, choleric clergyman of the church his stepmother attended, but he put the memory away. No, he would not be like that; he would not preach fire and brimstone from a white-pine pulpit. He would be large and just and merciful like God; and Juliet Burwell would come to hear him preach, looking up at him with her blue, blue glance. In the meantime he would not rob that marsh hen's nest which he had found. He would never steal another egg. He wished that he didn't have that drawerful at home. He would give them to Sairy Jane if she wanted them - all except the snake's egg, which he might keep, because serpents were an accursed race. Yes, Sairy Jane might have them all, and he wouldn't pull her hair again when he caught her looking at them on the sly.
Presently Juliet called Sally and took him into the quaint old dining-room and gave him cakes and jam on a table that shone like glass. There he saw Mr. Burwell - a pink-checked, little gentleman who wore an expansive air of innocence and a white pique waistcoat - and Mrs. Burwell, a pretty, gray-haired
woman, who ruled her husband with the velvet-pawed despotism which was the heritage of the women of her race and day. She had never bought a bonnet without openly consulting his judgment; he had never taken a step in life without unconsciously following hers.
"Really, my dear Sally," he had said when he heard of Nicholas's reception by his daughter, "Juliet must a - a - be taught to recognise the existence of class. Really, I cannot have her bringing all these people into my house. You must put a stop to it at once, my dear."
Mrs. Burwell had smiled placidly as she patted her gray fringe.
"Of course you know best, Mr. Burwell," she had replied with that touching humility which forbade her to address her husband by his Christian name. "Of course you know best about such matters, and I'll tell Juliet what you say. Poor child, she has such confidence in your judgment that she will believe whatever you say to be right; but she does love so to feel that she is exerting a good influence over the boys, and, perhaps, helping them to work out their future salvation. She thinks, too, that it is so well for them to have a chance of talking to you. I heard her tell Dudley Webb that he must take you for an example - "
"Ah! - ahem!" said Mr. Burwell, who worshipped the ground his daughter trod upon. "I suppose it would be a pity to interfere with her, eh, my dear?"
"Well, I can't help wishing myself, Mr. Burwell, that she would select children of her own class in
life, but, as you say, she has taken a fancy to that Burr boy, and he seems to be a decent, respectful kind of child. Of course I know it is your soft heart that makes you look at it in this way - but I love you all the better for it. I remember the day you proposed to me for the sixth time, I had just seen you bandage up the head of a little darkey that had cut himself - and I accepted you on the spot."
"Yes, yes, my love," Mr. Burwell had responded, kissing his wife as they left the room. "I am convinced that I am right, and I am glad that you agree with me. We won't speak of it to Juliet."
In the hall below they met Nicholas Burr, and greeted him with hospitable kindness.
"So this is your new scholar, eh, Juliet? You must do justice to your teacher, my boy."
Juliet laughed and went out into the yard to meet several young men who were coming up the walk, and Nicholas noticed with a jealous pang that she sat with them beneath the myrtle and talked in the same soft voice with the same radiant smile. She was not speaking of heaven now. She was laughing merrily at pointless jokes and promising to embroider a handkerchief for one and to make a box of caramels for another.
He knew that they all loved her, and it gave him a miserable feeling. He felt that they were unworthy of her - that they would not worship her always and become ministers for her sake, as he was going to do. He even wondered if it wouldn't be better, after all, to become a prize fighter and to knock them all out in the first round when he got a chance.
In a moment Juliet called him to her side and laid her hand upon his arm. "He has promised not to rob birds' nests and to love me always," she said.
But the young men only laughed.
"Ask something harder," retorted one. "Any of us will do that. Ask him to stand on his head or to tie himself into a bow knot for your sake."
Nicholas reddened angrily, but Juliet told the jester to try such experiments himself - that she did not want a contortionist about. Then she bent over the boy as he said good-bye, and he went down the walk between the lilies and out into the lane.
He recrossed the green slowly, turning into the main street at the court-house steps. As he passed the church, a little further on, the iron gate opened and the rector came out, jingling the heavy keys in his hand as he talked amicably to a tourist who followed upon his heels.
"Yes, my good sir," he was saying in his high-pitched, emphatic utterance, "this dear old churchyard is never mowed except by living lawn-mowers. I assure you that I have seen thirty heads of cattle upon the vaults - positively, thirty heads, sir!"
But the boy's thoughts were far from the church and its rector, and the words sifted rapidly through his brain. He touched his hat at the tourist's greeting and smiled into the clergyman's face, but his actions were automatic. He would have nodded to the horse in the street or have smiled at the sun.
As he passed the small shops fronting on the narrow sidewalk and followed the whitewashed fence of the college grounds until it ended at the Old Stage Road, he was conscious of the keen, pulsating
harmony of life. It was good to be alive - to feel the warm sunshine overhead and the warm dust below. He was glad that he had been born, though the idea had never formulated itself until now. He would be very good all his life and never do a wicked thing. It was so easy to be good if you only wanted to. Yes, he would study hard and become learned in the law, like those old prophets with whom God spoke as man with man. Then, when he had grown better and wiser than any one on earth, his tongue would become loosened, and he would go forth to preach the Gospel, and Juliet would listen to him for his wisdom's sake. Oh, if she would only love him best - best of all!
This evening the road through the wood did not frighten him, though the sun was down. He thought neither of the ghosts that Uncle Dan'l had seen, nor of the bug-a-boos that had chased Viney's husband home. He was too old for these things now. He had grown taller and stronger in a day. When he reached the pasture gate opposite the house he opened it and went in to look for the sheep.
The west was fast losing colour, like a bright-hued fabric that has been drenched in water, and a thick, blue mist, shot with fireflies, shrouded the wide common. A fresh, sharp odour rose from the dew-steeped earth, giving place, as he gained upon the flock, to the smell of moist wool. As he brushed the heavy, purple tubes of Jamestown weeds long-legged insects flew out and struck against his arm before they fell in a drunken stupor to the grass below.
The boy made his way cautiously, his figure becoming
coming blurred as the mist wrapped him like a blanket. The darkness was gathering rapidly. From the far-off horizon clouds of lavender were melting, and the pines had gone gray.
Presently a white patch glimmered in the midst of the pasture, and he began to call softly:
"Coo-sheep! Coo-sheep!"
A tremulous bleat answered, but as he neared the flock it scattered swiftly, the errant leaders darting shyly behind the looming outlines of sassafras bushes. Again he called, and again the plaintive cry responded, growing fainter as several fleeter ewes sped past him to the beech trees beside the little stream.
The space before the boy was suddenly spangled with fireflies, and the mist grew denser.
He broke off a branch of sassafras and started at a brisk run, rounding by some dozen yards the startled ewes. The scattered white blotches closed together as he ran towards them, and fled, bleating, to the flock where it clustered at the pasture gate.
In a moment he had driven them across the road and behind the bars of the cow-pen.
When he entered the house a little later he found that the family had had supper, a single plate remaining for himself. His stepmother, looking jaded and nervous, was putting salted herring to soak in an earthenware bowl, while she scolded Sairy Jane, who was patching Jubal's apron.
"It's goin' ten years sence I've stopped to draw breath," said Marthy Burr, "an' I'm clean wore out. 'Tain't no better than a dog's life, nohow - a woman en' a dog air about the only creeturs
as would put up with it, an' they're the biggest pair of fools the Lord ever made. Here I've been standin' at the tub from sunrise to sunset, with my jaw a'most splittin' from my face, an' thar's yo' pa a-settin' at his pipe as unconsarned as if I wa'nt his lawful wife - the more's the pity! It's the lawful wives as have the work to do, an' the lawfuller the wives the lawfuller the work. If this here government ain't got nothin' better to do than to drive poor women till they drop I reckon we'd as well stop payin' taxes to keep it goin'."
Nicholas wiped his heated brow on his shirtsleeve and hung his hat on the back of a bottomless chair. Jubal, who was rolling on the floor, gave a gurgle and made a grab at it, to be soundly boxed by his mother as she reseated him at Sairy Jane's feet. His gurgle wavered dolorously and rose into a howl.
"Have you been to supper, ma?" asked Nicholas cheerfully.
"Lord, Nick, it's a long ways past supper-time," answered Sairy Jane, relieved by the interruption. "The things air all washed up, ain't they, pa?"
Amos Burr scowled heavily upon the boy's head, his phlegmatic nature goaded into resentment by his wife's ill-temper and the lamentations of Jubal.
"I don't reckon you expect supper to keep waitin' till breakfast," he said. "You've given your ma trouble enough 'thout makin' her do an extra washin' up on your o'count. You've gone clean crazy sence you've been loafin' round with them Battles. I don't see as you air much o'count, nohow."
Nicholas raised his eyes to his father's face and
looked at him fixedly. For a moment he did not speak, and then he said slowly:
"I'm as good as a hand to you."
He was thinking doggedly that he had never hated any one so much as he hated his own father, and that he liked the sensation. He wished he could do him some real harm - hit him hard enough to hurt or make the peanuts rot in the ground. He should like also to choke Jubal, who never left off yelling.
Amos Burr spat a mouthful of tobacco juice through the open window, flinching before the boy's steady glance. He was a mild-natured man at best, whose chief sin was his softness. It would not have entered his slow-witted head to protest against the accusations of his wife. When they stung him into revolt he revolted in the opposite direction.
But his failures were faults in his son's eyes. To the desperate determination of the boy, weakness became as contemptible as crime. What was a man worth who worked from morning until night and yet achieved nothing? Of what account was the farmer whom the crows outwitted and the weather made a mockery? Did not the very crops cry out as they rotted that his father was a fool, and the unploughed land proclaim him a coward? Had he ever dared a venture in his life or risked a season? And yet what had ever returned at his bidding or brought forth at his planting?
"You've been mighty little use of late," repeated Amos Burr stubbornly when his wife placed the earthenware bowl on the shelf and came to the table - her arm outstretched.
"Now, you jes' take yourself right off, Amos Burr," she said. "If you can't behave decently to my dead sister's child you shan't hang round them as was her own flesh and blood kin. Sairy Jane, you bring that plate of hot corn pones from the stove. Here, Nick, set right down an' eat your supper! There's some canned cherries if you want 'em."
Nicholas sat down, but the cornbread stuck in his throat and the coffee was without aroma. He looked at the figured oilcloth on the table and thought of the shining glass and silver at Juliet Burwell's. The flavour of the cake she had given him seemed to intensify his distaste for the food before him. He felt that he cared for nobody - that he wanted nothing. He looked at his stepmother and thought that she was dried and brown like a hickory nut; I he looked at Sairy Jane and wondered why she didn't have any eyelashes, and he looked at Jubal and saw that he was all gums.
When he went up to his little attic room after supper he sat on his shucks pallet in the darkness and thought of all the evil that he should like to do. He should like to pull Sairy Jane's plait and to slap Jubal. He should even like to tell Juliet Burwell that he didn't want to keep a clean heart, and to call God names. No, he would not become a minister and preach the Gospel. He would be a thief instead and break into hen-houses and steal chickens. If his father planted watermelons he would steal them from the vines as soon as they were ripe. Perhaps Eugenia would help him. At any rate he would go halves with her if she would be his partner in wickedness.
He had just as soon go to hell, after all - if it were not for Thomas Jefferson.
He leaned his head on his hands and looked through the narrow window to where the peanut fields lay in blackness. From the stable came the faint neigh of the old mare, and he remembered suddenly that he had forgotten to put straw in her stall and to loosen her halter that she might lie down. He rose and stole softly downstairs and out of the house.
One evening in late autumn Nicholas went into Delphy's cabin after supper and found Eugenia seated upon the hearth, facing Uncle Ish and Aunt Verbeny. Between them Delphy's son-in-law, Moses, was helping Bernard mend a broken hare trap, while Delphy, herself, was crooning a lullaby to one of her grandchildren as she carded the wool which she had taken from a quilt of faded patchwork. On the stones of the great fireplace the red flames from lightwood splits leaped over a smouldering hickory log, filling the cabin with the penetrating odour of burning, resinous pine. From the wall above the hearth a dozen roasting apples were suspended by hemp strings, and as the heat penetrated the russet coats the apples circled against the yawning chimney like small globes revolving about a sun.
Eugenia was sitting silently in a low, split-bottomed chair, her hands folded in her lap and her animated eyes on the dark faces across from her, over whose wrinkled surfaces the dancing firelight chased in ruddy lights and shadows.
Uncle Ish had stretched his feet out upon the stones, and the mud adhering to his rough, homemade boots was fast drying before the blaze and settling in coarse gray dust upon the hearth. His gnarled old palms lay upward on his knees, and his grizzled head was bowed upon his chest. At intervals
he muttered softly to himself, but his words were inaudible - suggested by some far-off and disconnected vision Aunt Verbeny was nodding in her chair, arousing herself from time to time to give a sharp glance into the face of Uncle Ish.
"Huccome dey let you out tar-night, honey?" asked Delphy suddenly, turning her eyes upon Eugenia as she drew a fresh handful of wool from between the covers of the quilt.
"I ran away," replied the child gravely. "I saw Bernard with his hare trap, and Bernard shan't do nothin' that I can't do."
"Yes, I shall," rejoined Bernard without looking up from his trap. "You can't wear breeches."
"I like to know why I can't," demanded Eugenia. "I put on a pair of your old ones and they fit me just as well as they do you - only Aunt Chris made me get out of them."
"Sakes er live!" exclaimed Aunt Verbeny, awaking from her doze.
Uncle Ish stared dreamily into the flames. "Ole Miss wuz in her grave, she wuz," he muttered, while Delphy looked at him and shook her head mysteriously.
Then, as Nicholas entered, they made a place for him upon the hearthstones, treating him with the forbearing tolerance with which the well-born negro regards the low-born white man.
"Pa wants you all to help him in peanut-picking to-morrow," said Nicholas, addressing the group indiscriminately. "He's late at it this year, but he's been laid up with rheumatism."
"Dar ain' nuttin' ez goes on two foot er fo' ez
won' len' er hen' at a pickin'," remarked Uncle Ish as the boy sat down. "Dar ain' nuttin' in de shape er man er crow ez won't he'p demse'ves w'en day's lyin' roun' loose, nuther."
"Dar's gwine ter be er killin' fros' fo' mawnin'," said Moses, his teeth chattering from the draught let in by the opening door. "Hit kilt all Miss Chris' hop vines las' year, en it'll kill all ez ain't under kiver ter-night. Hit seems ter sort er lay holt er yo' chist en clean grip hit."
"You ain' never had no chist, nohow," remarked Delphy disdainfully. "Hit don't take mo'n er spit er fros'ter freeze thoo you. You de coldest innered somebody I ever lay eyes on. Dar mought ez well be er fence rail er roun' on er winter night fer all de wa'mth ez is in yo' bores."
"Dat's so," admitted Moses shamefacedly. "Dat's so. Dese yer nights, when de fire is all gone, is moughty near ter freezin' me out er house en home. I ain' never seed ne'r quilt ez wuz made fur er hull fambly yit. Wid me ter pull en Betsey ter pull en de chillun ter pull, whar de quilt?"
"Dar ain' no blankets dese days," said Uncle Ish sadly. "Dey ain' got mo'n er seasonin' er wool in dese yer sto' stuff. Dey wa'nt dat ar way in ole times, sis Verbeny. Bless yo' soul, sis Verbeny, dey wan's dat ar way."
"Ole Miss she use ter have eve'y stitch er her wool carded fo' her own eyes," said Aunt Verbeny. "What wa'nt good enough fer her wuz good enough fer de res', en we got hit. Ef'n de briars wouldn't come out'n it soon ez she laid her hen' on 'em, Ole Miss she turns up her nose en showed de wool on
ter de niggers' pile. Hit had ter be pisonous white en sof' fo' hit 'ud tech Ole Missusses skin. Noner yo' nappy stuff done come near her."
Uncle Ish chuckled and hung his head on his breast.
"Doze wuz times!" he cried, "doze wuz times, en dese ain't times!"
Then he looked at Nicholas, who was watching the apples spinning in the heat.
"De po' white trash ain' set foot inside my do'," he added, "en de leetle gals ain' flirt roun' twell dar wa'nt no qualifyin' der legs f'om der arms."
"I don't care!" said Eugenia, looking defiantly at Uncle Ish.
"Lor', chile, don't teck on dat way," remonstrated Aunt Verbeny. "You ain't had no raisin' noways, en dar ain' been nobody ter brung you up 'cep'n yo' pa. Hit's de foolishness uv Miss Chris ez has overturnt de hull place."
"She's a-settin' moughty prim now," continued Uncle Ish, his eyes on the little girl. "She des' es prim es ef she wuz chiny en glass, but I'se had my eye on 'er afo' dis. I'se done tote 'er in dese arms when she wa'nt knee high ter Marse Tom's ole mule Jenny, en she ain't cut nairy er caper dat I ain't 'sperienced hit."
"I don't care," retorted Eugenia.
"Ain't I done see her plump right out whar sis Delphy wuz a-wallopin' her leetle nigger Jake, en holler out dat Jake ain' done lay hen's on her pa's watermillion - 'case she done steal 'em herself?"
"I don't care!" repeated Eugenia with tearful defiance.
"An' she ain' no mo' steal dat ar watermillion den I is," finished Uncle Ish triumphantly.
"It was just a lie," said Bernard. "Eugie, you know where liars go."
"Des' ez straight ter de bad place ez dey kin walk," added Aunt Verbeny severely. "Des' ez straight ez de Lord kin sen' 'em dar."
"It was a good lie," declared Nicholas, in manful defence of the weak. I don't believe she's goin' to be damned for a good lie and a little one, too."
"Well, dar's lies en dar's lies," put in Delphy consolingly, "an' I 'low dat dar's mo' in de manner uv lyin' den in de lie. Some lies is er long ways sweeter ter de tas' den Gospel trufe. Abraham, he lied, en it ain't discountenance him wid de Lord. Marse Tom, he lied when he wuz young, en it spar'd 'im er whoppin'. Hit's er plum fool ez won't spar' dere own hinder parts on er 'count uv er few words."
"George Washington didn't," said Bernard.
"I wish he had," added Eugenia. "Aunt Chris made me read about him and his old cherry tree when I told her the red rooster was setting, because I didn't want her to kill him."
"Ma asked me once if I had been fishin' when she told me to clean out the spring," said Nicholas thoughtfully, "an' I said yes."
"What did she say?" asked Bernard.
"Nothin'. She whacked me on the head."
Just then Betsey came in with her baby in her arms, and Moses shuffled aside to give place to her, cowed by an admonishing glance from his mother-in-law.
"Bless de Lord!" exclaimed Uncle Ish, lifting his
withered, old hands. "Ef afar ain' anur er Betsey's babies! How many is de, Mose?"
Moses scratched his head and shrank into the corner.
"I ain' done straighten 'em out yit, Unk Ish," he returned slowly. " 'Pears like soon es I done add 'em all up anur done come, an' I has ter kac'late f'om de bottom agin. I ain' got no head fer figgers, nohow. Betsey, she lays dat dar's ten uv 'em, but ter save my soul I can't mek out mo'n eight."
"Dar's nearer er dozen," rejoined Betsey with offended pride, "dar's nearer er dozen 'cordin' ter de way I count."
"Dar now!" cried Aunt Verbeny. "I ain' never trus' no nigger's cac'lations yit, en I ain' gwine ter now. When I wants countin', I want white folks' countin'."
"Dey tell me," said Delphy, glancing sternly at the head on Betsey's knee, "dat de quality don' set demse'ves up on er pa'sel er chillun no mo'. De time done gone by. My Mahaly, she went up ter some outlandish place wid er wild Injun name, like Philadelphy, en she sez de smaller de fambly de mo' stuck up is de heads er it. She sez ef Ole Miss had gone up afar a-puttin' on airs 'case er her fifteen chillun, she wouldn't never have heft up 'er head no mo'. Mahaly, she sent mah'ed no man, she ain't. She sez en ole maid in Philadelphy des' looks right spang over all de heads, she's so sot up."
" 'Tain' so yer," said Aunt Verbeny feelingly. " 'Tain' so yer. Hit seems like de 'oman nairy a man is laid claim ter ain' wuth claimin'. Ain' dat so, bro' Ish? "
But Uncle Ish only grunted in retort, his head nodding drowsily. The tremulous tracery the woodfire cast upon his face gave it an expression of dumb intensity which adumbrated all the pathos and the patience of his race.
"Mahaly wuz er likely gal," went on Aunt Verbeny, "an' when she las' come home, she wuz a-warin' spike-heeled shoes en er veil uv skeeter nettin'. 'Tain' so long sence Rhody's Viney went to Philadelphy, too, but she ain' had no luck sence she wuz born er twin. Hit went clean agin 'er."
"Lord a-mercy, Aunt Verbeny, she ain't a-comin' back dis way?" asked Betsey, probing the apples with a small pine stick and giving the softest to Eugenia.
Aunt Verbeny shook her head.
"She ain' never had no luck on er 'count er bein' er twin," she said. "When she sot herse'f on a-gwine up ter de Yankees, Marse Tom, he tuck er goose quill en wrote out 'er principles * des' es plain es writin' kin be writ - which ain't plain enough fer my eyes - en he gun' 'em ter Viney wid his own han's. Viney tuck 'n put 'em safe 'way down in de bottom uv 'er trunk en went 'long ter de Yankees. But she ain' been afar mo'n er week when one night she went a-traipsin' out on de street en lef' er principles behint 'er, en, bless yo' life, oner dem ar Yankees breck right in en stole 'em smack 'way f'om 'er. Yo' trunk is a moughty risky place ter kyar yo' principles, but Viney, she wuz dat sot up."
A nod of assent passed round the group. The
children ate their apples silently, and Moses got
up
to put fresh wood on the fire. As the green log fell among the smouldering chips vivid tongues of flame shot up the smoked old mortar of the chimney, and the remaining apples burst their brown peels and sent out little rivulets of juice. The crackling of the fresh bark made a cheerful accompaniment to the chirping of a cricket hidden somewhere in the hearthstones.
"Dar now, bro' Ish!" exclaimed Aunt Verbeny, watching Eugenia as she sat in the dull red glare. "Ef dat chile ain't de patt'en er young Miss Meeley, I'se clean cracked in my head, I is. I 'members Miss Meeley des' ez well ez 'twuz yestiddy de day Marse Tom brung her home en de niggers stood a-bowin' en axin' howdy at de gate. She wuz all black en white en cold lookin' twell she smiled, en den it wuz des' like er lightwood blaze in 'er eyes."
Uncle Ish nodded dreamily.
"I use ter ride erlong wid Marse Tom ter co'te 'er," he said, "en de gent'men wuz a-troopin' ter see her in vayous attitudes. Dey buzzed roun' 'er de same ez bees, but she ain' had no eyes fer none 'cep'n Marse Tom."
At that instant the door opened, and Rindy rushed in, breathlesly pursuing Eugenia.
"Miss Chris is pow'ful riled," she announced, "an' Marse Tom is a-stampin' roun' same ez er bull. I reckon you'se gwine ter ketch it when dey once gits dere han's on you." Then, as her eye fell on Nicholas, she assumed an indignant air. "Dis ain't de place fer po' forks," she added.
Eugenia rose and put a roasted apple in her pocket.
"I ain't goin' to catch anything that Bernard doesn't catch," she said. "When he goes I'm goin' too."
And she went out, followed by Rindy and the boys.
The first breath of the chill atmosphere brought a glow to Nicholas's cheek, and he started at a brisk run across the fields. He had gone but a few yards when he was checked by Eugenia's voice.
"Nick!" she called.
Her small, dark shadow was falling on the ground beside him, and by the light of the pale moon he could see the fog of her breath.
As he went towards her she held out her hand.
"Here's an apple I saved for you," she panted. "And - and I don't mind about your being poor white trash!"
He took the apple, but before the reply left his lips she had darted from him and was speeding homeward across the glimmering whiteness of the frost.
Mrs. Jane Dudley Webb was a lady who supported an impossible present upon an important past. She had once been heard to remark that if she had not something to look back upon she could not live: and, as her retrospective view was racial rather than individual, the consolation attained might be considered disproportionate to the needs of the case. The lines of her present had fallen in a white frame house in the main street of Kingsborough; those of her past began with the first Dudley who swung a lance in Merry England, to end with irascible old William of the name, who slept in the family graveyard upon James River.
Mrs. Webb herself was straight and elegant, and inclined to the ironical, when, as Jane Dudley, the belle of the country-side, she fired the fancy of young Julius Webb, an officer in the cavalry of the United States. He danced a minuet with her at a ball in Washington, was heard to swear an oath by her eyes at punch before the supper was over; and proceeded the following week to spur his courtship upon old William as daringly as he had ever spurred his horse upon an Indian wigwam.
The last Dudley of the Virginian line withstood, through several stormy years, the united appeals of his daughter and her lover. In the end he yielded, subdued by opposition and gout, retaining the strength to insert but a single stipulation in the marriage contract, to the effect that his daughter should drop the name of Jane and be known as Dudley in her husband's household. To this the dashing bridegroom acquiesced with readiness, and when, within a year of the wedding, his wife presented him with a son, he called the boy, as he called the mother, by her maiden name.
He was a jovial young buck, who lived in his cards and his cups and loathed a quarrel as he loved a fight.
When the war between the States arose he went with Virginia, caring little for either cause, but conscious that his heart was where his home was. So he kissed the young mother and the boy at her side and rode lightly away with a laugh upon his lips, to fall as lightly in the mad charge of cavalry at Brandy Station.
When the news came Jane Dudley listened to it in silence, her hands clasping the worsteds she was winding. After the words were spoken she laid the worsteds carefully aside, stooping to pick up a fallen ball. Then she crossed the room and went upstairs.
She said little, refusing herself alike to consolation and to acquaintances, spending her days in the shuttered house with her boy beside her. When he fretted at the restraint she tied a band of crepe on his little jacket and sent him to play on the green, while she took up her worsteds again and finished
the muffler she had been crocheting. If she wept it was in secret, when the lights were out.
Some years later the house was sold over her head, but when she stood, penniless, upon the threshold it was to cross it as haughtily as she had done as a bride. The stiff folds of her black silk showed no wavering ripple, the repose of her lips betrayed no tremor. The smooth, high pompadour of her black hair passed as proudly beneath the arched doorway as it had done in the days of her wifehood and Julius Webb.
Her neighbours opened their wasted stores to her need, and out of their poverty offered her abundance, but she put aside their proffered assistance and undertook, unaided, the support and education of her child, maintaining throughout the struggle her air of unflinching irony. She moved into a small white frame house opposite the church, and let out her spare rooms to student boarders. Her pride was never lowered and her crepe was never laid aside. She sat up far into the night to darn the sleeves of her black silk gown, but the stitches were of such exquisite fineness that in the dim light of her drawing-room they seemed but an added gloss.
From behind the massive coffee urn at the head of her table she regarded her boarders as so many beneficiaries upon her bounty. When she passed a cup of coffee she seemed to confer an honour; when she returned a receipted bill it was as if she repulsed an insult. People said that she had been born to greatness and that she had never adapted herself to the obscurity that had been thrust upon her - but they said it when her back was turned. To her face
the subject was never broached, and her former prosperity was ignored along with her present poverty. Of her own sorrows she, herself, made no mention. When she spoke from the depths of her bitterness of the war and the ruin it had left, her resentment was general rather than personal. Above the mantel in her room hung the sword of Julius Webb, sheathed under the tattered colours of the Confederate States. At her throat she wore a button that had been cut from a gray coat, and, once, after the close of the war, she had pointed to it before a Federal officer, and had said: "Sir, the women of the South have never surrendered!" The officer had looked at the face above the button as he answered: "Madam, had the women of the South fought its battles, surrender would have been for the men of the North." But Jane Webb had smiled bitterly in silence. To her the Federal officer was but an individual member of a national army of invasion, and the rights of the victors, the wrongs of Virginia.
Her neighbours regarded her with almost passionate pride - rebuking their more generous natures by the sight of her unbowed beauty and her solitary revolt. When young Dudley grew old enough to attend school the general and the judge called together upon his mother and offered, with hesitancy, to undertake his education.
"He is only a year or two older than my Tom," began the judge, tripping in his usually steady speech. "I assure you it will give me pleasure to have the boys thrown together."
Mrs. Webb bowed in unaffirmative fashion.
"On my life, ma'am, I can't forget that Julius
Webb fell at Brandy Station," put in the general hotly. "Your husband died for Virginia, and your boy shall not want while I have a penny in my pocket. I'll send him to college with Bernard. and feel it to be a privilege!"
Mrs. Webb bowed again.
"A great privilege, ma'am," protested the general, uneasily.
Mrs. Webb smiled.
"The greatest privilege of my life, ma'am!" cried the general, his face flushing and his eyes growing round with agitation.
In the end they gained their point, and Mrs. Webb consented, but with a reluctance of reserve which caused the general to choke with embarrassment and the judge to become speechless from perplexity. When they rose to leave both thanked her with effusion and both bowed themselves out as gratefully as if it were a royal drawing-room and they had received the honours of knighthood.
"She is a remarkable woman!" exclaimed the general, wiping his eyes on his white silk handkerchief as they descended the steps. "A most unusual woman! Why, I feel positively unworthy to sit in her presence. Her manner brings all my past indiscretions to mind. It is an honour to have such a character in the community, sir!"
The judge acquiesced silently.
The interview had tried his Epicurean fortitude, and he was wondering if it would be necessary to repeat the call before Christmas.
"If Julius Webb had lived she would have made a man of him," continued the general enthusiastically,
the purple flush slowly fading from his flabby face. "A creature who could live with that woman and not be made a man of wouldn't be human; he'd be a hound. There is dignity in every inch of her, sir. I will allow no man to question my respect for our immortal Lee - but if Jane Webb had been the commander of our armies, we should be standing now upon Confederate soil - "
"Or upon the ashes of it," suggested the judge, adding apologetically, "she is indeed a woman in a thousand."
He held it to be a lack of courtesy to dissent from praise of any woman whose chastity was beyond impeachment, as he held it to be an absence of propriety to unite in admiration of one who was wanting in the supremest of the feminine virtues. His code was an obvious one, and he had never seen cause to depart from it.
"I hope the boy will be worthy of her," he said. "It is a good name that he bears."
The general took off his straw hat and mopped his brow.
"Worthy of her!" he exclaimed. "He's got to be worthy of her, sir. If he takes any notion in his head not to be, I'll thrash him within an inch of his life. Let him try it, the young scamp!"
The judge laughed easily, having regained his self-possession. "Well, well, there's no telling," he said; "but he's as bright as a steel trap. I wish Tom had half his sense." Then he turned past the church on his way home, and the general, declining an invitation to dinner, went on to the post-office, where he awaited his carriage.
From this time Dudley Webb attended classes at the judge's house and became the popular tyrant of his little schoolroom. He was a dark, high-bred looking boy, with a rich voice and a nature that was generous in small things and selfish in large ones. There was a convincing air of good-fellowship about him, which won the honest heart of slow-witted Tom Bassett, and a half-veiled regard for his own youthful pleasures, which aroused the wrath of Eugenia.
"I can't abide him," she had once declared passionately to Sally Burwell. "Somehow, he always gets the best of everything."
When, after the first few years, Nicholas Burr entered the schoolroom and took his place upon one of the short green benches, Mrs. Webb called upon the judge in person and demanded an explanation.
"My boy has been carefully brought up," she said; "he is a gentleman, and he will not submit to association with his inferiors. His grandfather would not have done so before him."
The judge quailed, but it was an uncompromising quailing - a surrender of the flesh, not the spirit.
"My dear lady," he began in his softest voice, "your son is a fine, spirited fellow, but he is a boy, and he doesn't care a - a - pardon me, madam - a continental whether anybody else is his inferior or not. No wholesome boy does. He doesn't know the meaning of the word - nor does Tom - and I shan't be the one to teach him. Amos Burr's son is a clever, hard-working boy, and if he will take an education from me, he shall have it."
The judge was firm, Mrs. Webb was firm also.
The judge assumed his legal manner; she assumed her hereditary one.
"It is folly to educate a person above his station," she said.
"Men make their stations, madam," replied the judge.
He sat in his great armchair and looked at her with reverent but determined eyes. His head was slightly bent, in deference to her dissenting voice, and his words wavered, but his will did not. In his attitude his respect for her sexually and individually was expressed, but he had argued the opposing interests in his mind, and his decision was judicial.
"I am deeply pained, my dear lady," he said, "but I cannot turn the boy away."
Mrs. Webb did not reply. She gathered up her stiff skirt and departed with folded lips.
After she had gone the judge paced his study nervously for a half-hour, giving uncertain glances towards the hall door, as if he expected the advent of an incarnate thunderbolt. In the afternoon he sent over a bottle of his best Madeira as a peace-offering. Mrs. Webb acknowledged the Madeira, not the truce. The following day General Battle called upon the judge and requested in half-hearted tones the withdrawal of Amos Burr's son. He looked excited and somewhat alarmed, and the judge recognised the hand of the player.
"My dear Tom Battle," he said soothingly, "you do not wish the poor child any harm."
" 'Fore God, I don't, George," stammered the general.
"He's a quiet, unoffending lad."
The general fingered his limp cravat with agitated plump fingers. "I never passed him on the road in my life that he didn't touch his hat," he admitted, "and once he took a stone out of the gray mare's shoe."
"He has a brain and he has ambition. Think what it is to be born in a lower class and to have a mind above it."
The general's great chest trembled.
"I wouldn't injure the little chap for the world George; on my soul, I wouldn't."
"I know it, Tom."
"My own great-grandfather Battle raised himself, George."
The judge waved the fact aside as insignificant.
"Of course, Mrs. Webb is a woman," he said with sexual cynicism, "and her views are naturally prejudiced. You can't expect a woman to look at things as coolly as we do, Tom."
The general brightened.
" 'Tisn't nature," he declared. "You can't expect a woman to go against nature, sir."
"And Mrs. Webb, though an unusual woman (the general nodded), is still a woman."
The general nodded again, though less emphatically.
"On my soul, she's wonderful!' he exclaimed. "Why, damme, sir, if I had that woman to brace me up I shouldn't need a julep."
And the judge, flinching from his friend's profanity, called Cæsar to bring in the decanters.
Some time later the general left and Mr. Burwell
appeared, to be met and dispatched by the same arguments.
"Naturally my instincts prompt me to side with an unprotected widow," said Mr. Burwell.
"No Virginian could feel otherwise," admitted the judge in the slightly pompous tone in which he alluded to his native State.
"But as I said to my wife," continued Mr. Burwell with convincing earnestness, "these matters had best be left to men. There is no need for our wives and daughters to be troubled by them. It is for us, who are acquainted with the world and who have had wide experience, to settle all social barriers."
The judge agreed as before.
"I am glad to say that my wife takes my view of it," the other went on. "Indeed, I think she has expressed what I have said to Mrs. Webb."
"Your wife is an honour to her sex," said the judge, bowing.
Then Mr. Burwell left, and the judge spent another half-hour walking up and down his study floor. He had gained the victory, but he would have felt pleasanter had it been defeat. It was as if he had taken some secret advantage of a woman - of a widow.
But the future of Amos Burr's son was sealed so far as it lay in the judge's power to settle with circumstances, and each morning during the school term Mrs. Webb frowned down upon his hurrying figure as it sped along the street and turned the corner at the palace green. Sometimes, when snow was falling, he would shoot by like an arrow, and Dudley would say with quick compassion, as he
looked up from his steaming cakes: "It's because he hasn't any overcoat, mother. He runs to keep warm."
But Mrs. Webb's placid eyes would not darken.
When the boys grew too old for school Tom and Dudley went to King's College for a couple of years, while Nicholas returned to the farm. The judge still befriended him, and the contents of Tom's class books found their way into his head sooner or later, with more information than Tom's brain could hold. One of the instructors at the college - a consumptive young fellow, whose ambitions had leaned towards the bar - gave the boy what assistance he needed, and when the work of the class-room and the farm was over, the two would meet in the dim old library of the college and plod through heavy, discoloured pages, while the portraits of painted aristocrats glowered down upon the intrusive plebeian.
Despite the hard labour of spring ploughing and the cold of early winter dawns, when he was up and out of doors, the years passed happily enough. He beheld the future through the visions of an imaginative mind, and it seemed big with promise. Sitting in the quaint old library, surrounded by faded relics and colourless traditions, he felt the breath of hushed oratory in the air, and political passion stirred in the surrounding dust. There was a niche in a small alcove, where he spent the spare hours of many a day, the words of great, long-gone Virginians lying before him; behind him, through the small square window, all the blue-green sweep of the college grounds ending where the Old Stage Road led on to his father's farm.
He plodded ardently and earnestly, the consumptive young instructor following his studies with the wistful eyes of one who sees another striving where he has striven and failed. The students met him with tolerant hilarity, and Tom Bassett, who would have kicked the Declaration of Independence across the campus in lieu of a ball, watched him with secret mirth and open championship. There had sprung up a strong friendship between the two - one of those rare affections which bend but do not break. Dudley Webb, the most brilliant member of his class and the light of his mother's eyes, began life, as he would end it, with the ready grasp of good-fellowship. He had long since outgrown his artificial, childish distrust of Nicholas, and he had as long ago forgotten that he had ever entertained it. As for Nicholas himself, he had not forgotten it, but the memory was of little moment. He had a work to do in life, and he did it as best he might. If it were the ploughing of rocky soil, so much the worse; if the uprooting of dead men's thoughts, so much the better. He slighted neither the one nor the other.
As he grew older he became tall and broad of chest, with shoulders which suggested the athlete rather than the student. His hair had darkened to a less flaming red, his eyes had grown brighter, and the freckles had faded into a general gray tone of complexion.
"He will be the ugliest man in the State," said Mr. Burwell, inflating his pink cheeks, with a return of youthful vanity, "but it is the ugliness that attracts."
Nicholas had not heard, but, had he done so, the
words would have left a sting. He possessed an inherent regard for physical perfection, rendered the greater by his own tormented childhood. He was strong and vigorous and of well-knit sinews, but he would have given his muscle for Dudley Webb's hands and his brains for the other's hair.
Once, as a half-grown boy, in a fit of jealousy inspired by Dudley's good looks, he had called him "Miss Nancy," and knocked him down. When his enemy had lain at his feet on the green he had raised him up and made amends by standing motionless while Dudley lashed him with a small riding-whip. The jealousy had vanished since then, but the smart was still there.
At last the college days were over. Dudley was sent to the university of the State; Tom Bassett and Bernard Battle soon followed, and Nicholas, still plodding and still hopeful, was left in Kingsborough.
Then, upon his nineteenth birthday, the judge, who had left the bench and resumed his legal practice, sent for him and offered to take him into his office while he prepared himself for the bar.
When Nicholas descended the judge's steps he lingered for a moment in the narrow walk. His head was bent, and the books which he carried under his arm were pressed against his side. They seemed to contain all that was needed for the making of his future - those books and his impatient mind. His success was as assured as if he held it already in the hollow of his hand - and with success would come honour and happiness and all that was desired of man. It seemed to him that his lot was the one of all others which he would have chosen of his free and untrammelled will. To strive and to win; to surmount all obstacles by the determined dash of ambition; to rise from obscurity unto prominence through the sheer forces that make for power - what was better than this?
Still plunged in thought, he passed the church and followed the street to the Old Stage Road. From the college dormitories a group of students sang out a greeting, and he responded impulsively, tossing his hat in the air. In his face a glow had risen, harmonising his inharmonious features. He felt as a man feels who stands before a closed door and knows that he has but to cross the threshold to grasp the fulness of his aspiration. Yes, to-day he envied no one - neither Tom Bassett nor Dudley Webb, neither the general nor the judge. He held
the books tightly under his arm and smiled down upon the road. His clumsy, store-made boots left heavy tracks in the dust, but he seemed to be treading air.
It was three o'clock in the afternoon of a murky day in early November, and the clouds were swollen with incoming autumnal rains. The open country stretched before him in monotonous grays, the long road gleaming pallid in the general drab of the landscape. As he passed along, holding his hat in his hand, his uplifted head struck the single, high-coloured note in the picture - all else was dull and leaden.
A farmer driving a cow to market neared him, and Nicholas stopped to remark upon the outlook. The farmer, a thickset, hairy man, whose name was Turner, gave a sudden hitch to the halter to check the progress of the cow, and nodded ominously.
"Bad weather's brewin'," he said. "The wind's blowin' from the northeast; I can tell by the way that thar oak turns its leaves. It's a bad sign, and if thar ain't a-shiftin' 'fore mornin', we're likely to hev a spell."
Nicholas agreed.
"There hasn't been much rainfall lately," he added. "I reckon it has come at last and for a long stretch." His eyes swept the western horizon, where the clouds hung heavily above the pines.
"Yo' pa got his crops in?"
"Pretty much. The peanuts were harvested after the last frost."
"He ain't had much luck this year, I hear."
Nicholas shook his head.
"No less than usual. Last year he lost the brindle cow that was calving. This season the mare died."
"Well, well! He never was much for luck, no-how. Seems like he worked too hard to have Providence on his side. I allers said that Providence had ruther you'd leave a share of the business to Him. Got through school yet?"
"Yes; I'm reading law."
"Reading what?"
"I am going to study law in the judge's office - Judge Bassett, you know."
"So you can keep a tongue in yo' head when those plagued cusses come 'bout the mortgage?"
"So I can take cases to court and earn a living."
"Why don't you stick to the land and make yo' bread honest?"
"The law's honest."
Turner shook his hairy head.
"It cheated me out o' twelve bushels of 'taters las' year," he said. "Don't tell me 'bout yo' law. I know it."
Nicholas laughed.
"Come to me when I've set up, if you get in trouble," he rejoined, "and I'll get you out."
The cow gave a lunge at the ropes, and the farmer went on his way. When the man and cow had passed from sight Nicholas stopped and laughed again. He wondered if he could be really of one flesh and blood with these people - of one stuff and fibre. What had he in common with his own father - hard-working, heavy-handed Amos Burr? No, he was not of them and he had never been.
He had turned from the main road into the wood, when a girl on horseback dashed suddenly towards him from the gray perspective. She was riding rapidly, her short skirts flying, her hair blown darkly across her face. A brown-and-white pointer ran at her side.
As she caught sight of Nicholas she half rose in her saddle, giving a loud, clear call.
"Hello, Nick Burr! Hello!"
Nicholas stood aside and waited for her to come up, which she did in a moment, panting from her exercise, her face flushing into a glowing heat.
"I was looking for you," she said, waving a small willow spray in her brown hand. "I went by the farm, but you weren't there. So, you are nineteen to-day!" Her eyes shone as she looked at him. There was a singular brilliance of expression in her face, due partly to the exercise, partly to the restless animation of her features. She was at the unbecoming age when the child is merging into the woman, but her lack of grace was redeemed by her warmth of personality.
Nicholas laid his hand upon the bridle.
"Why, Genia, if I'd known you wanted me I'd have been hanging round somewhere. What is it?"
"Let me look at you."
Nicholas flushed, turning his face away from her.
"God knows, I'm ugly enough," he said.
She leaned nearer, shaking back her straight, black hair, which fell from beneath the small cap.
"I want to see if you have changed since yesterday."
He turned towards her.
"Have I?" he asked hopefully.
She regarded him gravely, though a smile played over her changeful lips.
"Not a bit. Not a freckle."
"Hang it all! I lost my freckles long ago."
"Then they've come back. There are one - two - three on your nose."
"Hold on! Let my looks alone, please."
Eugenia whistled softly, half grave, half gay.
"Down, darling!" she said to the pointer, and "be still, beauty!" to the horse. Then she turned to Nicholas again.
"I've really and truly got something to tell you, Nick Burr."
"Out with it, then. Don't worry."
She swung her long legs idly from the saddle. "Suppose I don't."
"Then don't."
"Suppose I do."
"I'll be hanged if I care!"
"Oh, you do, you story. You're just dying to know - but it's serious."
She patted the horse's neck, watching Nicholas with child-like eagerness.
"Well, I'm - I'm - there! I told you you were dying to know!"
"I'm not."
"Guess, anyway."
"Somebody coming on a visit?"
She shook her head.
"Try again, stupid."
"Miss Chris going to be married?"
"Oh, Lord, no. You aren't really a fool, Nick."
"Betsey got a baby?"
"Why, Tecumsey only came last June!"
"Then I give it up. Tell me."
"Say please."
"Please, Genia!"
"Say 'please, dear, good Genia.' "
"Please, dear, darling Genia."
"I didn't say 'darling.' I said 'good.' "
"It's the same thing."
She smiled at him with boyish eyes.
"Am I really a darling?"
"Do you really know something?"
"You bet I do."
"What is it?"
She laughed teasingly.
"It'll make you cry."
"Hurry up, Genia!"
"You'll certainly cry very loud."
"I'll shake you in a moment."
"It isn't polite to shake ladies."
"You aren't a lady. You're a vixen."
"Aunt Verbeny says I'm a limb of Satan. But will you promise not to weep a flood of tears, so I can't cross home?"
She leaned still nearer, resting her hand upon his shoulder.
"I'm going away."
"What?"
"I'm going away to-morrow at daybreak. I'm going to school. I shan't come back for a whole year. I'm - I'm going to leave papa and Aunt Chris and Jim and you."
She began to sob.
"Don't," said Nicholas sharply.
"And - and you don't care a bit. You're just a stone. Oh, I don't want to go to school!"
"I'm not a stone. I do care."
"No, you don't. And I may die and never come back any more, and you'll forget all about me."
"I shan't. Don't, I say. Do you hear me, Genia, don't."
She looked for a handkerchief, and, failing to find one, wiped her eyes on the horse's mane.
"What are you going to do when I am gone?"
"Work hard so you'll be proud of me when you come back."
"I shall be sixteen in two years."
"And I, twenty-one."
"You'll be a man - quite."
"You'll be a woman - almost."
"I don't think I shall like you so much then."
"I shall like you more."
"Why?" she asked quickly.
"Why? Oh, I don't know. Am I so awfully ugly, Genia?"
"Turn this way."
He obeyed her, flushing beneath her scrutiny.
"I shouldn't call you - awful," she replied at last.
"Am I so ugly, then?"
"Honour bright?"
"Of course," impatiently.
"Then you are - yes - rather."
He shook his head angrily.
"I didn't think you'd be mean enough to tell me so," he returned.
"But you asked me."
"I don't care if I did. You might have said something pleasant."
Her sensitive mouth drooped. "I never think of your being ugly when I'm with you," she said. "It's a good, strong kind of ugliness, anyway. I don't mind it."
He smiled again.
"Looks don't matter, anyway," she went on soothingly. "I'd rather a man would be clever than handsome;" then she added conscientiously, "only I'd rather be handsome myself."
He looked at her closely.
"I reckon you will be," he said. "Most women are. It's the clothes, I suppose."
Eugenia looked down at him for an instant in silence; then she held out her hands.
"I am going at daybreak," she said. "Will you come down to the road and tell me good-bye?"
"Why, of course."
"But we must say good-bye now, too. Did we ever shake hands before?"
"No."
"Then, good-bye. I must go."
"Good-bye, dear - darling."
She touched her horse lightly with the willow, but promptly drew rein, regarding Nicholas with her boyish eyes.
"Do you think it would make it any easier if we kissed?" she asked.
"Geriminy! I should say so!"
He caught her hands; she leaned over and he kissed her lips. She drew back with the same frank
laugh, but a flush burned his face and his eyes were sparkling.
"More, Genia," he said, but she laughed and let the bridle fall.
"No - no - but it made me feel better. There, good-bye, dear, dear Nick Burr, good-bye!"
Then she dashed past him, and a whirl of dust filled the solitary air.
He looked after her until she turned her horse into the Old Stage Road, and the clatter of the hoofs was gone. When the stillness had fallen again he went slowly on his way.
In the woods the pale bodies of the beeches seemed to melt into the cloudy atmosphere. There was no wind among the trees, and the pervading dampness had robbed the yellowed leaves of their silken rustle. They fluttered softly, hanging limp from the drooping branches as if attached by invisible threads. As he went on a deep bluish smoke issued from among some far-off poplars where a farmer was burning brush in a clearing. The smoke hung low above the undergrowth, assuming eccentric outlines and varied tones of dusk. Presently the fires glimmered nearer, and he saw the red tongues of the flames and heard the parched crackling of consuming leaves. The figures of the workers were limned grotesquely against the ruddy background with a startling and unreal absence of detail. They looked like incarnate shadows - stalking between the dim beeches and the blazing brush heaps. A few drops of rain fell suddenly, and the fires began slowly to die away. At the foot of the crumbling "worm" fence, skirting the edges of the
wood, deep wind-drifts of russet leaves stirred mournfully. Later they would be hauled away to assist in the winter dressing of the fallows; now they beat helplessly against the retarding rails like a vanquished army of invasion.
Nicholas left the wood and passed the field of broomsedge on his way to the house. Beyond the barnyard he saw the long rows of pine staves that had supported the shocks of peanuts, and from the direction of the field he caught sight of his father, driven homeward by the threatening rain.
Sairy Jane, who was bringing a string of dried snaps from the outhouse, called to him to hurry before the cloudburst. She was a lank, colourless girl, with bad teeth and small pale eyes. Jubal, at the churn in the hall, rested from his labours as Nicholas entered, and grinned as he pointed to his mother in the kitchen. Marthy Burr was ironing. As Nicholas crossed the threshold, she stopped in her passage from the stove and looked at him, a flash of pride softening her pain-scarred features.
"Lord, what a man you are, Nick!" she exclaimed with a kind of triumph. "When I heard yo' step on the po'ch I could have swo'ed it was yo' pa's."
Nicholas nodded at her abstractedly as he took off his hat.
"Where's pa?" he asked carelessly. "I thought he'd have got in before me. I saw him as I came up."
"I reckon he won't git in befo' he gits a drenchin'," responded his stepmother, glancing indifferently through the back window. "If he does it'll be the first time sence he war born. 'Twarn't nothin'
to be done in the fields, nohow, an' so I told him, but he ain't never rested yet, an' I don't reckon he's goin' to till I bury him."
As she spoke the rain fell heavily, and presently Amos Burr came in, shaking the water from his head and shoulders.
"I told you 'twarn't no use yo' goin' to the fields befo' the rain," began his wife admonishingly. "But you're a man all over, an' it seems like you're 'bliged to go yo' own way for the sheer pleasure of goin' agin somebody else's. If I'd been pesterin' you all day long to go down thar to look at that ploughin', you'd be settin' in yo' chair now, plum dry."
Amos Burr crossed to the stove and turned his dripping back to the heat.
"Gimme a rubbin' down, Sairy Jane," he pleaded, and his daughter took a dry cloth and began mopping off the water.
Marthy Burr placed an iron on the stove and took one off.
"Whar'd you git dinner, Nick?" she inquired suddenly.
"At the judge's."
"What did they have?" demanded Jubal from the hall, ceasing the clatter of the churn. "Golly! Wouldn't I like a bite of something!"
"I shouldn't mind some strange cookin', myself," said Marthy Burr, shaking her head at one of the children who had come into the kitchen with muddy feet. "I ain't tasted anybody else's vittles for ten years, an' sometimes I feel my mouth waterin' for a change of hand in the dough."
She took one of her husband's shirts from the
pile of freshly dried clothes, spread it on the ironing-board, and sprinkled it with water. Then she moistened her finger and applied it to the iron.
Amos Burr looked up from before the stove, where he still sat drying.
"You're a man now, Nick," he said slowly, as if the words had been revolving in his brain for some time and he had just received the power of speech.
"Yes, pa."
"Whatever he is, he don't git it from his pa," put in Marthy Burr as she bent over the shirt. "He ain't got nothin' of yo'rn onless it's yo' hair, an' that's done sobered down till you wouldn't know it."
Amos waited patiently until she had finished, and then went on heavily as if the pause had been intentional, not enforced.
"You've got as much schoolin' as most city chaps," he said. "Much good it'll do you, I reckon. I never saw nothin' come of larnin' yet, 'cep'n worthlessness. But you'd set yo' mind on it, an' you've got it."
"Thar warn't none of yo' hand in that, Amos Burr," cried his wife, checking him again before he had recovered breath from his last sentence. "Many's the night I've wrestled with you till you war clean wore out with sleeplessness, 'fo' you'd let the child keep on at his books."
"I ain't never seen no good come of it," repeated Burr stolidly; then he returned to Nicholas.
"I reckon you'll want to do somethin' for the family, now," he said, "seein' yo' ma is well wore out an' the brindle cow died calvin', an' Sairy Jane is a hard worker."
Nicholas looked at him without speaking.
"Yes?" he said inquiringly, and his voice was dull.
"I was talkin' to Jerry Pollard," continued his father, letting his slow eyes rest upon his son's, "an' he said you war as likely a chap as thar was roun' here, and he reckoned you'd be pretty quick in business."
"Yes?" said Nicholas again in the same tone.
Amos Burr was silent for a moment, and his wife filled in the pause with a series of running interjections. When they were over her husband took up his words.
"He wants a young fellow about his store, he says, as can look arter the books an' the business. He's gittin' too old to keep up with the city ways an' look peart at the ladies - he'll pay a nice little sum in cash every week."
"Yes?" repeated Nicholas, still interrogatively.
"An' he wants to know if you'll take the place - you're jest the sort of chap he wants, he says - somebody as will be bright at praisin' up the calicky to the gals when they come shoppin'. Thar's nothin' like a young man behind the counter to draw the gals, he says."
Nicholas shook his head impatiently, clasping the books tightly beneath his arm. His gaze had grown harsh and repellent.
"But I am going into the judge's office," he answered. "I am going - " Then he checked himself, baffled by the massive ignorance he confronted.
Amos Burr drew one shoulder from the fire and offered the other. A slow steam rose from his
smoking shirt, and the room was filled with the odour of scorching cotton.
"Thar ain't much cash in that, I reckon," he said.
Nicholas took a step forward, still facing his father with obstinate eyes. One of the books slipped from his arm and fell to the floor, with open leaves, but he let it lie. He was watching his father's jaws as they rose and fell over the quid of tobacco.
"No, there is not much cash in that," he repeated.
"Things have gone mighty hard," said Amos Burr. "It's been a bad year. I ain't sayin' nothin' 'bout the work yo' ma an' Sairy Jane an' me have done. That don't seem to count, somehow. But nothin' ain't come straight, an' thar ain't a cent to pay the taxes. If we can't manage to tide over this comin' winter thar'll have to be a mortgage in the spring."
Sairy Jane began to cry softly. One of the children joined in.
"Give me time," said Nicholas breathlessly. "Give me time. I'll pay it all in time." Then the sound of Sairy Jane's sobs maddened him and he turned upon her with an oath. "Damn you! Can't you be quiet?"
It seemed to him that they were all closing upon him and that there was no opening of escape.
Marthy Burr put down her iron and came to where he stood, laying her hand upon his sleeve.
"Don't mind 'em, Nick," she said, and her sharp voice broke suddenly. "Go ahead an' make a man of yo'self, mortgage or no mortgage."
Nicholas lifted his gaze from the floor and looked
into his stepmother's face. Then he looked at her hand as it lay upon his arm. That trembling hand brought to him more fully than words, more clearly than visions, the pathos of her life.
"Don't you worry, ma," he said quietly at last. "It'll be all right. Don't you worry."
Then he let her hand slip from his shoulder and left the room.
He passed out upon the back porch and stood gazing vacantly across the outlook.
It rained heavily, the drops descending in horizontal lengths like a fantastic fall of colourless pine needles. Overhead the clouds were black, impenetrable.
Through the falling rain he looked at the view before him, at the overgrown yard, at the manure heaps near the stable, at the grim rows of staves in the peanut field, at the sombre and deserted landscape. A raw wind blew in gusts from the northeast, and the distorted ailanthus tree in the yard moaned and wrung its twisted limbs. Sharp, unpleasant odours came from the pig-pen in the barnyard, where the rain was scattering the slops in the trough. A bull bellowed in a far-off pasture. Before the hen-house door several dripping fowls strutted with wilted feathers.
He saw it all in silence, with the dogged eyes of one whose gaze is turned inward. He made no gesture, uttered no exclamation. He was as motionless as the lintel of the door on which he leaned.
Suddenly a gust of wind whipped the rain into his face. He turned, reentered the house, closed the door carefully, and went upstairs.
The next morning Nicholas went into the judge's study and declined the offer of the day before.
"I shan't read law, after all," he said slowly. "There is a business opening for me here, and I'll take advantage of it." He spoke in set phrases, as if he had rehearsed the sentences many times.
"Business!" echoed the judge incredulously. "Why, what business is going on in Kingsborough?"
Nicholas flushed a deep red, but his glance did not waver.
"Jerry Pollard wants me in his store, sir."
The judge removed his glasses, wiped them deliberately on his silk handkerchief, put them on again, and regarded the younger man attentively.
"And you wish to go into Jerry Pollard's store?" he inquired.
"I think it is the best thing I can do."
"The best paying thing, I presume?"
"Yes, sir."
"Bless my soul!" exclaimed the judge testily. "What is the world coming to? I suppose Tom will be writing me next that he intends to keep a stall in market. Well, you know best, of course. You may do as you please; but may I ask if you are going to
bargain in Latin and multiply by criminal law in Jerry Pollard's store?"
"No, sir."
"Then, what in the - what in the - I really feel the need of a strong expression - what in the world did you take the trouble to educate yourself for?"
Nicholas was looking at the floor, and he did not raise his eyes. His face was hard and set.
"Because I was a fool," he answered shortly.
"And now, if I may ask?"
"A fool still - but I've found it out."
The judge leaned back in his chair and tapped the ledge of his desk meditatively.
"Have you fully decided?" he asked.
Nicholas nodded.
"I have thought it over," he said quietly.
"Then there's nothing to be done, I suppose. I hope the compensation will satisfy you. Jerry Pollard is said to be somewhat tight-fisted, but your business instincts may be equal to his acquirements. Now, I have a number of letters, so, if you don't mind, I will bid you good-day."
He bowed, and Nicholas left the study and went out of the house.
Rain was still falling, and small pools of water had formed on the palace green. Straight ahead the lane of maples stretched like a line of half-extinguished fires, and the ground beneath was strewn with wet, red leaves. The slanting sheets of rain gave a sombre aspect to the town - to the time-beaten buildings along the unpaved streets and to the commons, where the water stood in grassy hollows. Beneath the gray sky the scene assumed a
spectre-like suggestion of death and decay - the death of laughter that seemed still to echo faintly from the vanished stones - the decay of royal charters and of kingly grants. The very air was reminiscent of a yesterday that was perished; the red, wet leaves painted the brown earth in historic colours.
Nicholas turned the corner at the church and passed on to Jerry Pollard's store - a long, low structure fronting on the main street - and entered by a single step from the sidewalk. The show windows on either side the entrance displayed a motley selection from the varied assortment of a "general" store - cheap silks and high-coloured calicos, men's shirts and women's shoes, cravats and hairpins, suspenders and corsets. On the sidewalk near the doorway there was a baby carriage, a saddle, and a collection of farming implements. As Nicholas crossed the threshold a pink-cheeked girl passed him, her arms filled with bundles, and at the counter an old negro woman was pricing red flannel.
Jerry Pollard, a coarse-featured, full-bearded man of sixty years, was behind the counter. Nicholas caught his persuasive tones as he leaned over, holding the end of the bolt of flannel in his hands.
"Now, look here, Aunty, you ain't going to find such a bargain as this anywhere else in town. Take my oath on that. Every thread wool and forty-four inches wide. Only thirty cents a yard, too. I got it at an auction in Richmond, or I couldn't let it go at double that price. How much? All right."
The flannel was measured off with skilful manipulations of the yardstick and the scissors, the parcel
was handed to the old negro woman, and the change was dropped into the till. Then Jerry Pollard came from behind the counter and slapped Nicholas upon the shoulder.
"Hello, my boy!" he said. "So your pa has taken me at my word, and here you are. Well, Jerry Pollard's word's his bond, and he ain't going back on it. So, when you feel like it, you can step right in and get to business. When'll you begin? Today? No time like the present time's my motto."
"To-morrow!" returned Nicholas hastily. "I've got some things to wind up. I'll come to-morrow."
"All right. I'm your man. To-morrow at seven sharp?"
Then a purchaser appeared, and Jerry Pollard went forward, his business smile returning to his face.
The purchaser was Mrs. Burwell, and, as Nicholas passed out, she looked up from a pair of waffle-irons she was selecting and nodded pleasantly.
"I am glad to see you, Nicholas," she said. "Juliet was asking after you in her last letter. You were always a favourite of Juliet's. I was telling Mr. Burwell so only last night."
"She was very kind," returned Nicholas, and added: "Is Miss Juliet - Mrs. Galt well?"
Juliet Burwell had married five years before, and he had not seen her since.
Mrs. Burwell nodded cheerily. She was still fresh and youthful, her pink cheeks and bright eyes giving the gray of her hair the effect of powder sprinkled on her brown fringe.
"Yes, Juliet is well," she answered. "They are living in Richmond now. Mr. Galt had to give up his practice in New York because the climate did not suit Juliet's health. I told him she couldn't stand transplanting to the north, and I was right. They had to move south again. Yes, Mr. Pollard, the middle-size irons, please. I think they'll fit my stove. If they don't, I'll exchange them for the small ones. What did you say, Nicholas? Oh! good-morning."
She turned away, and Nicholas stepped over her dripping umbrella and went out into the rain.
When he was once outside he shook the water from his shoulders and walked rapidly in the direction of the old brick court-house, isolated upon the larger green. The door and windows were closed, but he ascended the stone steps and stood beneath the portico, looking back upon the way that he had come.
The street was deserted, save for a solitary oxcart rolling heavily through the mud. In the distance the gray drops made a sombre veil, through which the foliage of King's College showed in a blurred discolouration. From the branches of trees a double fall of water descended with a melancholy sound.
Presently the ox-cart neared him, and the driver nodded, eyeing him with apathetic interest.
When the cart had passed Nicholas came down the steps and started up the street at the same rapid walk. He was not thinking of his way, but the impulse of action had seized upon him, and he was walking down the ferment in his brain. He did not
formulate the thought that with bodily fatigue would come mental indifference; he merely felt that when he was tired - dead tired - he would go home and sit down to dinner and face his father and discuss Jerry Pollard's terms. He would do that when he was too tired to care - not before.
When he reached the heavy iron gate of the college he swung it open and entered the grounds. In the centre of the walk stood the statue of a great Colonial governor, and he paused before it for an instant, staring up into the battered features of the marble face. He realised suddenly that he had never looked at it before. Daily, for twelve years, he had passed the college campus, sometimes crossing it so that he might have brushed the effigy of the great Englishman with a careless hand - but he had never seen the face before. Then he looked through the falling rain at the deserted archway of the old brick building. For the first time those grim walls, which had been thrice overthrown and had arisen thrice from their ashes, impressed him with the triumphant service they had rendered in the culture of his kind. He saw it as it was - a sacred skeleton, an honourable decay. The long line of illustrious hands that had procured its ancient charter seemed to wave a ghostly benediction over its ancient learning. Clergy and burgesses, council and governor, planters of Virginia and bishops of London had stood by its birth. It was the fruit of the union of the old world and the new, and it had waxed strong upon the milk of its mother ere it turned rebel. Later, to its younger country, it had sent forth its sons as statesmen who gave glory to its name. And through
all its history it had overcome calamity and defied assault. Thrice it had fallen and thrice it had re-arisen.
He recalled next the sheltered alcove in the dim library, where he had studied with the consumptive young instructor, who was dead. The creepers upon the wall were encroaching stealthily upon the alcove window. Scarlet tendrils, like forked flames, licked the narrow ledge. Several wet sparrows fluttered in and out among the leaves.
He turned hastily away, passed the great Englishman with unseeing eyes, clanged the iron gate heavily behind him, and went on towards the house of his father.
The family were at dinner when he entered, and he took his seat silently in the empty chair at his stepmother's right hand.
As he sat down she reached out and felt his coat sleeve.
"I declar, Nick, you air soaked clean through," she said. "Anybody'd think you'd been layin' out in the rain all night. You go up and change your clothes an' I'll keep your dinner hot on the stove."
Nicholas went upstairs mechanically, and when he came down his father had gone to the stable and his stepmother was alone in the kitchen.
She brought him his dinner, standing beside the table while he ate it, watching him with an intentness that was almost wistful.
"Would you like some molasses on your corn pone?" she asked as he finished and pushed his plate away. Then, as he shook his head, she added hesitatingly, "It come from Jerry Pollard's store."
But he only shook his head again, following with his eyes the wave-like design on the mahogany-coloured oilcloth that covered the table.
Marthy Burr set the jug aside, nervously clearing her throat.
"I reckon Jerry Pollard has got one of the finest stores anywhar 'bouts," she said suddenly.
Nicholas looked up quickly and met her eyes. She was holding a dish of baked potatoes in one hand and the other was resting for support upon the edge of the table. Her face was yellow and interlined, and a faint odour of camphor came from the bandage about her cheek.
"Yes," he replied indifferently. "He does a very good business."
His stepmother put the dish of potatoes back upon the table and took up the pitcher of buttermilk. Her hand was trembling nervously. There was a slight gasp in her voice when she spoke.
"I don't know but what it's as big a thing to be in a fine store like that as 'tis to be a lawyer," she said.
For a moment Nicholas did not answer. His eyes grew darker as she stood before him, and a shadow closed upon his face. As in a frame, he saw the outline of her figure defined against the square of falling rain between the window sashes. Her shoulders, bent slightly forward as if crushed by the bearing of heavy burdens, reminded him of a domestic animal full of years and labour.
His face softened and he smiled into her eyes.
"Yes, I don't know but what it is just as well," he responded cheerfully.
The next day he went into Jerry Pollard's store and began his winter's work. He measured off un-bleached cotton cloth for a servant girl; sold a pair of shoes to a farmer, a cravat to a young fellow from the grocery shop next door, and a set of garden tools to an elderly lady who lived in the street facing the asylum and had a greenhouse. At odd times he looked over Jerry Pollard's books, and after dark he dunned several debtors for unpaid bills. He did it quietly and thoroughly, neither shirking nor over-elaborating the minutest detail. There are men who have an immense capacity for taking pains that is rarer than genius, and he was one of them. Whether he made a success or a failure of life, he would do it with a conscientious use of opportunities, good or bad. An eye that is trained to detect the values of circumstances, and a hand that is quick to adjust them, have produced the mental forces that make or unmake the race.
When the day was over he went home and ascended to his room in silence. The work had left him with a curious irritating sense of its distastefulness. The second day was as the first - the week was as the month. There were no variations, no difficulties, no advancement. With the round of monotony his irritation sharpened. When Jerry Pollard spoke he responded in monosyllables; when Jerry Pollard's pretty daughter, Bessie, smiled in from the doorway, he kept his eyes on the counter. At home he was even less responsive. The impulse which had prompted him to return a cheering falsehood to his stepmother passed quickly. He sacrificed himself to the family interests, but he sacrificed
himself begrudgingly. His face assumed lines of sullen repression; the tones of his voice were full of subdued resentment. He found satisfaction in meeting their overtures with irony, their constraint with callousness. Since he had given the one thing they required and he valued, he justified himself in a series of petty tyrannies. He met his stepmother with avoidance, his father with aversion. The children he swore at or ignored. Amos Burr, gathering his slow wits together, regarded him with a chuckle of self-congratulation. His sensibilities were not susceptible to slight friction, and his son's attitude seemed to him of small significance. He had got what he wanted, and that was sufficient unto the hour.
After the first two months, Nicholas underwent a dogged and indifferent adaptation. He ceased to think of the judge, of Juliet, of Eugenia. He laughed at Jerry Pollard's jokes and he winked at Jerry Pollard's daughter. His horizon narrowed to the four walls of the shop; he told himself that he had a roof above his head and fuel for his stomach - that Bessie Pollard had skin that was fairer than Eugenia's and lips as red. What did it matter, after all?
Sometimes Mrs. Webb entered the store, sweeping him, as she swept the counter, with her clear, cold glance, and once Sally Burwell ran in to do an errand for her mother and nodded with distant pleasantness as she met his eyes. At such times he flushed and ground his teeth, but after Mrs. Webb came farmer Turner, who shook his hand and said:
"Wall, I'm proud of you, Nick Burr."
And after Sally Burwell pretty Bessie Pollard threw him a kiss from the doorway. It was not that he was ashamed of his work. He knew that at the close of the war better men than he sought and accepted gratefully such a livelihood as he disdained - that women in whose veins ran good old English blood left their wasted homes to teach in public schools, or turned their delicate hands to the needle for support. He was ashamed of his past ambition - of his vaunted aspiration - and he was ashamed of Jerry Pollard and his service.
The winter wore gradually to spring. A brilliant April melted into a watery May. Nicholas, coming to Kingsborough in the early mornings, would feel the long spring rains in his face as he splashed through the puddles in the road. In the wood the white blossoms of dogwood showed through interlacing branches like stars in a network of closely wrought iron. On their hardy shrubs the pale pink clusters of mountain laurel were beaten into shapeless colour-masses by the wind-blown rains. Sometimes, up above, where the fiery points of redbud trees shot skyward, a thrush sang or a blue jay scolded - and the bird-notes were laden, like the air, with the primal ripeness of spring.
Underfoot the earth was fecundating in dampness. Chill blue violets emerged from beneath the spread of rotting leaves, and where the washed-out sunlight had last shone it had left rays of wandering dandelions straying from the open roadside to the edges of the wood.
And the spring passed into Nicholas also. The wonderful renewal of surrounding life thrilled
through the repression of his nature. With the flowing of the sap the blood flowed more freely in his veins. New possibilities were revealed to him; new emotions urged him into fresh endeavours. All his powerful, unspent youth spurred on to manhood.
At last the rains were over. The sun came out again, and with it the growth of the season burst into abundance. There were bird-notes on the air, fragrance in the stillness, bloom on the trees. In the thicket dogwood massed itself in clouds of dead white stars, like an errant trail from the Milky Way, lighting the wooded twilight. Wild azalea, so deeply rose that the hue seemed of the blood, wafted its sharp, unearthly scent across the underbrush to the road. The woods were vocal with the mating songs of their winged inhabitants. The music of the thrush welled from the sheer forceful joy of living. "It is good - good - good to be a lover!" he sang again and again with amorous repetition and a full-throated flourish of improvisation. In the pauses of the thrush sounded the cheery whistle of the redbird, the crying of the catbird, the liquid tones of the song sparrow, and the giddy exclamations of the pewee. Sometimes an oriole darted overhead in a royal flash of black and yellow, a robin stood in the road and delivered a hearty invitation, or a hawk flew past, pursued by martins.
With the spring planting came a chance of outdoor work, and Nicholas would sometimes rise at dawn and do a piece of ploughing before breakfast. He had driven the team out one morning across the brown, bare earth, which the plough had ripped open in a jagged track, when something in the
silence and the scents of nature smote him suddenly as with a vital force. Dropping the reins to the ground, he threw back his head and breathed a keen, quick sense of exaltation. A warm mist, sweet and fresh as the breath of a cow, overhung hill and field, road and meadow. In a black-browed cedar tree a mocking-bird was singing.
With a sudden shout Nicholas voiced the glorification of toil - of honest work well done. He felt with the force of a revelation that to throw up the clods of earth manfully is as beneficent as to revolutionise the world. It was not the matter of the work, but the mind that went into it, that counted - and the man who was not content to do small things well would leave great things undone. The beasts before him did not shirk their labour because it was clay and not gold dust that trailed behind the plough; why should he? And where was happiness if it sprung not from the soil? Where contentment if it dwelt not near to Nature? For what was better than these things - the clear air of sunrise, the keen, sweet smell of the fertile earth, the relaxation of tired muscles? Why should he, who had been born to the soil, struggle forth to alien ends as a sightless earthworm to the harrow's teeth?
On his way in from the fields he stopped an instant at the gate of the barnyard to look at the red-and-white cow that was licking her little, tottering calf. Some rollicking lambs were skipping near a dignified group of ewes, that looked on with half-fearful, half-disapproving faces.
At the pump he saw his stepmother filling a water bucket, and he took it from her hands.
"I reckon it is too heavy for you to carry," he said timidly.
" 'Tain't much to tote," returned Marthy Burr opposingly. "If I'd never had nothin' more'n that to bear I'd have as straight a back as yo' pa's got. 'Tain't the water buckets as bends a woman, nohow; it's the things as the Lord lays on extry."
She relinquished the bucket and followed Nicholas resentfully to the house.
"I never did care 'bout havin' folks come 'round interferin' with my burdens," she murmured half-aggrievedly. "I ain't done for yet, an' when I is I reckon I'll know it as soon as anybody - lessen it's yo' pa, who's got powerful sharp eyes at seein' the failin's of other people - en' powerful dull ones when it comes to recognisin' his own."
Then she set about preparing breakfast, and Nicholas flung himself into a chair on the porch. Nannie, a pretty, auburn-haired girl, was grinding coffee in a small mill, and he looked at her thoughtfully; then Jubal came out, whittling a stick, and he turned his gaze inquiringly upon him.
"What would you like to do in the world, Jubal?" he asked, "best of all?"
Jubal looked up in perplexity, his fat forehead wrinkling.
"You ain't countin' in eatin', I s'pose?" he replied doubtfully.
Nicholas shook his head.
"No, leave out eating," he said.
"An' the splittin' open of that durn livered Spike Turner?"
"Yes, that too."
Jubal whittled slowly, his forehead wrinkling more deeply.
"Then I don't know whether it's to give ma a rest or to own Billy Flinders's coon dog, Boss," he said.
Nicholas laughed for an instant, but the laugh softened into a smile.
At the table he asked his stepmother and Sairy Jane about the spring chickens, and they answered with surprised eagerness.
"I am going to mark the lambs to-morrow," he said. "They're a nice lot." And he added: "Some day I'll take the farm and make it pay."
"I don't see what you want to go steppin' in yo' pa's shoes for," put in Marthy Burr. "When toes have got p'inted down-hill they ain't goin' no other way. Don't you come back to raisin' things on this land. I ain't never seen nothin' thrive on it yet, cep'n weeds, en' the Lord knows they warn't planted."
Nicholas shook his head.
"Why, look at Turner," he said. "His land is as poor as this, and he makes an easy living."
"A Turner ain't a Burr," returned his stepmother with uncompromising logic, "an' a Burr ain't a Turner. Whar the blood runs the man follows, an' yours ain't runnin' towards the farm. Jeb Turner can fling a handful of corn in poor groun', an' thar'll come up a cornfield, an' yo' pa may plant with the sweat of his brow an' the groanin' of his spirit, an' the crows git it. A farmer's got to be born, same as a fool. You can't make a corn pone out of flour dough by the twistin' of it."
"That's so," admitted Amos Burr, laying down his knife and meeting his wife's eyes. "That's so.
You can't make a corn pone out of flour dough, noways you turn it."
"Perhaps I'll try some day," said Nicholas with a laugh; and he rose and went out of the house.
When he had reached the little gate he heard a voice behind him, and turned to find his half-sister Nannie, her cheeks flushed like a damp, wild rose above her faded dress.
"I want you to bring me something from the store, Nick," she stammered. "I want a blue ribbon for my hair, it's - it's so worrisome."
She shook her auburn locks, and Nicholas realised suddenly that she must be very good to look at - to men who were only in a Scriptural sense her brothers. He felt a vague pride in her.
"Why, of course I will," he answered. "Blue let it be."
And he opened the gate and went on his way, leaving Nannie, still flushed, in the path.
When he took down Jerry Pollard's shutters a half-hour later he stood for an instant looking thoughtfully down upon the assortment in the window. Then he leaned over and conscientiously set upright a blue-glass vase before going behind the counter to unpin the curtains hanging across the dry-goods shelves.
After breakfast Bessie Pollard came in and stood with her elbow resting on the showcase as she flirted a small feather duster. She had just released her hair from curl paper, and it hung in golden ringlets over her forehead. Her face was ripe and red, like a well-sunned peach, and the firm curves of her bosom swelled the gathers of her gown.
"You look real spry this morning," she said coquettishly; but he turned from her in sudden distaste. Her tawdry refinement irritated the more serious manner of his mood.
Presently she went back to her dusting, and he completed his daily setting to rights of the shop before he drew up to the desk and made out the bills that were due for the month. It was not until some hours later that he looked up upon hearing a step on the threshold. At first he stood up mechanically at the sight of a girl in a riding-habit. Then he started and drew back, for the girl lifted her head, and he saw that it was Eugenia Battle. In the same glance he saw also that there was a keen surprise in her face.
"Why, Nick Burr!" she said breathlessly. She tripped over her long riding-skirt and caught it hastily in one hand; in the other she carried a small switch. She had grown tall and straight, and her hair was gathered up from her shoulders.
For a moment they were both silent. In Eugenia's face the surprise gave place to gladness, and the warmth of her personality gathered to her eyes. She held out her ungloved hand.
"Why, Nick Burr!" she said again.
But Nicholas looked at her in silence. All the dogged bitterness of the last six months welled to his lips - all his new-found philosophy evaporated at the sting of wounded pride. He remembered with a start the gray road on the afternoon in November, the sullen cast of the sky, the hopeless trend of the wind among the trees, the leaping of the light into Eugenia's face. She laughed now as she had
laughed then - a hearty little burst of surprise in the suddenness of the meeting.
He turned quickly from the outstretched hand.
"What can I do for you?" he asked, and his tone was like Jerry Pollard's.
Eugenia's hand fell to her side, closing upon the folds of her skirt. She caught her lip between her teeth with a petulant twitch. Then she came forward and laid a small brown bit of cloth upon the counter.
"A spool of silk this shade," she said briskly. "Please match it very carefully."
Nicholas pulled open the small drawers containing the silk, and compared the sample with the row of spools. He made his selection, showing it to Eugenia before wrapping it in brown paper.
"Is that all?" he asked grimly.
Eugenia nodded. He gave her the spool, and she lifted her skirt and went out of the shop. A moment more, and she passed the door swiftly on the brown mare. Nicholas closed the drawer and laid the torn sheet of wrapping paper back in its place. A little girl came in for a card of hooks and eyes for her mother, a dressmaker, and he gave them to her and dropped the nickel in the till. When she went out he followed her to the door and stood looking out into the gray dust of the street.
Across the way a lady was gathering roses from a vine that clambered over her piazza, and the sunlight struck straight at her gracious figure. From afar off came the sound of children laughing. Down the street several mild-eyed Jersey cows were driven by a little negro to the court-house green.
In a near tree a wood-bird sang a score of dreamy notes. Gradually the quiet of the scene wrought its spell upon him - the insistent languor drugged him like a narcotic. On the wide, restless globe there is perhaps no village of three streets, no settlement that has been made by man, so utterly the cradle of quiescence. From the listless battlefields, where grass runs green and wild, to the little white-washed gaol, where roses bloom, it is a petrified memory, a perennial day dream.
The lady across the street passed under her rose vine, her basket filled with creamy clusters. The cows filed lazily on the court-house green. The wood-bird in the near tree sang over its dreamy notes. The clear black shadows in the street lay like full-length figures across the vivid sunlight.
The bitterness passed slowly from his lips. He turned, and was reentering the shop, when his name was called sharply.
"Why, Nick Burr!"
The words were Eugenia's, but the voice was Tom Bassett's. He had come up suddenly with the judge, and as Nicholas turned he caught his hand in a hearty grasp.
"Well, I call this luck!" he cried. "I say, Nick, you haven't grown bald since I saw you. Do you remember the time you shaved every strand of hair off your head so we'd stop calling you 'Carrotty'?"
"I remember you called me 'Baldy,'" said Nicholas, running his hand through his thick, red hair. Then he looked at the judge. "I hope you are well, sir," he added.
The judge bowed with his fine-flavoured courtesy. "As I trust you are," he returned graciously.
"Well, all I've got to say," put in Tom, as his father finished, "is that it's a shame - a confounded shame. What good will Nick's brains do him in old Pollard's store? Old Pollard's a skinflint, anyway, and he cuffed me once when I was a small chap."
Nicholas glanced back uncertainly into the shop.
"Oh, he isn't so bad when you know him," he said. "Most folks aren't."
"He seems to value Nicholas's services," added the judge politely.
Nicholas flushed. "I don't know about that," he returned awkwardly.
"I know one thing, though," said Tom with slow wrath, "and that is that I'm not green enough to be fooled by Nick Burr, if other people are. Father told me last night that it was Nick's own choice that took him to Jerry Pollard's. Choice, the Dickens! Why, it's those blasted people of his that put him here."
Tom was very red in the face, so was Nicholas. They looked at the judge, and the judge looked back at them with a humorous twinkle in his eyes.
"My dear Tom," he said at last, "I never gave you credit for being a Solomon, but some day your wit may put your father to shame."
Then he held out his hand to Nicholas.
"When you're a little older, my boy," he remarked, "you may learn that, though an old fool may be the biggest fool, he's not the only one. Come to see us when you feel like it, eh, Tom?"
They passed on together, and Nicholas stood
looking after them until a man came in to exchange a pair of shoes.
"They're a leetle too skimpy 'cross the toes," he said deprecatingly. "The heels air first-rate, but the toes sorter seem to be made fur a three-toed somebody. 'Tain't as if I could jest set aroun' in 'em, of course; then they'd be a fine fit, but when I go ter stan' up they pinches."
Nicholas gave him a larger size and put the box back upon the shelf. He was thinking of Tom Bassett and the twinkle in the judge's eyes, and he did not hear the man's rambling speech. It seemed to him that his friendship with Tom and his father had been restored - that he might once more go freely in and out of the judge's house.
When the day was over he walked slowly homeward along the deserted road, his mind still busy with recollections of the morning. Yes, life was decidedly endurable at worst. If he might not become celebrated, he might at least become content. He was not Tom Bassett, but he had Tom Bassett's friendship. He would live a simple life in his own class among his own people, and he would grow to be respected by those who were above him.
He had entered the wood, when he remembered suddenly that he had forgotten the ribbon for his sister Nannie. He turned quickly and retraced his steps through the thickening twilight.
So Nicholas's first fight for his manhood was fought and won. He went back to his books - went back because his intellect ordained it, and the ordinance of intellect is fate - but bitterness had gone out of him, and he had come into his own. From the stress of the last year he had found security in acceptance. His life might not be such as he had planned it - whose was? - his work might not be the thing he wanted - again, whose was? - but life and work were with him, and it remained for him to make the best of them. Fate might make him a shopkeeper; he would see to it that it made him a successful one. Success read backwards spelt work, and work was his inheritance - a heritage of sweat and labour.
He went to Jerry Pollard's an hour earlier that he might rearrange to advantage the shelves. His employer had secured, below cost, a supply of dry goods, and preparations were in the making for the first summer sale in Kingsborough. Nicholas conducted the arrangements as conscientiously as he might have conducted a legal argument. It was the thing before him, and it must not fail.
But at night he found his greater hour. When supper was over and he had helped his father with the odd jobs of the farm, he would take the smoky kerosene lamp to his room and plunge into the pages of "The Federalist." From his sharp, retentive
memory nothing passed. He held his knowledge with the same vital grip with which he held his friends.
He had the judge's library now and the judge's assistance. Evening after evening he sat in the dim, ghost-hallowed room, the shining calf-bound volumes girdling the walls, and absorbed the judge as the judge, in his own time, had absorbed the men who were gone. From that rich storehouse of high principles and simple deeds Nicholas's future was drawing nourishment. Judge Bassett had lived his life in a village, but he had lived it among statesmen. His book-shelves were green with their inspiration, his memory fresh from their impress. In his youth he himself had been one of the hopes of his State; in his age he was one of her consolations.
He treated the younger man with that quaint courtliness which knew not affectation. When he talked to him, as he often did, of the great legal minds, it was always with the courtesy of their titles. He spoke of "Mr. Chancellor Kent," of "Mr. Justice Blackstone," as he spoke of "President Davis" or of "General Lee." To have alluded to them more familiarly he would have held to be a breach of etiquette of unpardonable grossness.
One day he had started in Nicholas his old political dreams of Jeffersonian lustre.
"Virginia is not dead but sleepeth," the judge had said, as a prelude to denunciation of the Readjuster party then in power.
Nicholas was looking at a collection of autograph letters that lay on the judge's desk. He glanced up with an impulsive start.
"Oh, but I should like to have lived then!" he exclaimed.
The older man shook his head.
"It is not the times, but the man," he answered. "The time makes the man, the great man makes his time."
He leaned his massive old head against the carved back of his chair and looked at the other in his kindly, unambitious optimism. He had lost most that the world accounts of worth, but life had dealt gently by him, on the whole, since it had never infringed upon the sensitiveness of his self-esteem.
"It's rough on the man," Nicholas returned brusquely, and a little later he went out into the night. He had his periods of depression, when desire seemed greater than duty, as he had his periods of exaltation, when duty seemed greater than desire. Neither affected, to outward seeming, the course of his life, but each left its mark upon his mental forces. The chief thing was that he did the work he hated as thoroughly as he did the work he loved.
The spring ripened into summer and the summer chilled into autumn. He had kept rigidly to his way and to his resolutions. From neither had he swerved in one regard. His stepmother, fixing sharp, tired eyes upon him mentally drafted, "Arter all's said an' done, the Lord knows best." She believed him to be content, as she had reason to, for he gave no outward uneasy sign. When his small savings had paid off Amos Burr's little debt, and they started, un-handicapped, upon their shaky progress, it seemed to her that she was justified in commending, for the second time, the visible methods of Providence - a
commendation which faltered only before a threatening twinge of neuralgia.
Early in October the judge, whose practice was drawn largely from other sections of the State, left home for an absence of several weeks. Upon his return he sent for Nicholas in the early afternoon, an unusual happening. The young man, dropping in at two o'clock, found him at work in his library before the early dinner, a generous mint julep upon a silver tray on his desk. Cæsar was an acknowledged artist in the mixing of the beverage, and Mrs. Burwell had once exclaimed that "the judge was prouder of Cæsar's fame at the bar than of his own."
"It is an art that is becoming extinct, madam," the judge had replied sadly. "I should wager there are more men in the State to-day who can make a speech than can mix a julep. Cæsar's distinction is greater than mine."
To-day, as Nicholas entered, the judge greeted him hospitably and called for another concoction. When Cæsar brought it, frosted and clear and odorous, the judge raised his own goblet and bowed to his caller.
"To your future, my boy," he said graciously; then, as Nicholas blushed and stammered, he asked kindly:
"How are you getting on now?"
"Very well."
"So well that you wouldn't like a change?"
Nicholas threw a startled look upon him. His pulse beat swiftly, and his skin burned. By these physical reactions he realised the fluttering of his hopes.
"A change!" he said slowly, holding himself in hand. "Yes, I - should - like a change."
The judge sipped his julep, breathing with enjoyment the strong fragrance of the mint.
"I have just seen my friend, Professor Hartwell, of the University," he said, "and he mentioned to me that in the work of compiling his law-book he found great need of a secretary. It at once occurred to me that it was a suitable opening for you, and I ventured to suggest as much to him -"
He paused an instant, gazing thoughtfully into his glass.
"And he?" urged Nicholas hurriedly.
"He would like some correspondence with you, I believe; but, if the prospect pleases you, and you would care to undertake the works -"
"Care?" gasped the younger man passionately; "care! Why I - I'd sell my soul for the chance."
The judge laughed softly.
"Such extreme measures are unnecessary, I think. No doubt it can be arranged. I understand from your father that he has tided over his last failures."
But Nicholas did not hear him; the words of release were ringing in his ears.
The year that Nicholas Burr "worked" his way to a degree at the University of the State Tom Bassett returned to Kingsborough and took up that portion of the judge's practice which he termed "local"; and his fellow citizens, whose daily existence was proof of their belief in hereditary virtues, brought their legal difficulties to his door. He was a stout, flaxen-haired young fellow, with broad shoulders and honest
light-blue eyes, holding an habitual shade of perplexity. People said of him that his heart outran his head, but they loved him not the less for this - perhaps the more.
Upon his return to Kingsborough he applied himself conscientiously to his cases, paid a series of social calls, and fell over head and ears in love with Sally Burwell.
"There are two things which every respectable young man in Kingsborough goes through with," remarked the rector's wife as she sat at breakfast with her husband. "He becomes confirmed and he goes mad about Sally Burwell. For my part it does not surprise me. She's not pretty, but no man has ever found it out, and no man ever will. Did you notice that muslin she had on in church last Sunday - all frills and tucks -"
"My mind was upon my sermon, dear," murmured the rector apologetically.
"But we've eyes as well as minds, and those of every man in the congregation were on that dress of Sally's."
The rector meekly stirred his coffee.
"I have no doubt of it," he answered. "But what do you think of Tom's chances, my dear?"
"They aren't worth a candle," returned his wife with an emphasis which settled the question in the rector's mind.
Within a month Tom's chances were the topic of Kingsborough. They were discussed at the post-office, at sewing societies, at church festivals. Not a soul in the congregation but knew the number of times he had accompanied her to evening services;
not an inhabitant of the town but was aware of the hour and the afternoon upon which they had last walked through Lover's Lane.
When the state of affairs had gone the rounds of the community until they were worn threadbare, they effected a final lodgment in the mind of Mr. Burwell.
"I have made a little discovery," he announced one evening to his wife as she was brushing her hair for the night.
Mrs. Burwell was all delighted attention.
"Why, what can it be?" she murmured with gratifying feminine curiosity.
"You may have noticed, my dear," began Mr. Burwell with a nervous glance at Sally's chamber door across the hall, "that our friend Tom Bassett has called frequently of late."
His wife nodded smilingly.
"Well, it has occurred to me from something I observed this evening that it is Sally who attracts him."
Mrs. Burwell threw back her pretty head and laughed.
"Why, Mr. Burwell!" she exclaimed, "did you think that it was you - or I - or your grandfather's portrait?"
Her husband looked slightly abashed.
"So you have observed it?" he asked in an injured tone.
Mrs. Burwell laid her brush aside and crossed the room to where he stood.
"Everybody knows you are a very clever man, Mr. Burwell," she said. "I have never pretended
to have as much sense as a man, and I hope nobody has ever accused me of anything so unwomanly - but there are some things you can't teach your wife, with all your experience."
Mr. Burwell stroked the plump hand on his arm and smiled in returning self-esteem.
"And you are quite sure he fancies Sally?" he inquired.
"I know it," replied his wife decisively.
"Would it not be wise to prepare her, my dear?"
"Prepare Sally?" gasped Mrs. Burwell, and she went back to her mirror with dancing eyes.
"I have learned all they can teach me here," wrote Eugenia from school on her eighteenth birthday, "so I'll be home to-morrow."
"Bless my soul!" exclaimed the general, holding the letter above his cakes and coffee. "The child's mad - clean mad! We must put a stop to it."
"Write her to stay where she is," said Miss Chris decisively.
"I'll write her, the young puss!" returned the general angrily. "Giving herself airs at her age, is she? Why, she's just left her bottle!"
"What else does she say, Tom?" inquired his sister as she passed him the maple syrup.
The letter fluttered helplessly in the general's hand. "I can't stay away any longer from my dear, bad-tempered, old dad," he read in a breaking voice; then he added hesitatingly, "I don't reckon she's right about knowing enough, eh, Chris?"
"Certainly not," responded Miss Chris severely. "The child's as headstrong as a colt. Get that letter off in time for the train, and I'll let Sampson carry it to town."
The general finished his breakfast and went to the old secretary in the library to write his letter. When he had given it to Sampson he came back to Miss Chris, who was washing the teacups in the pantry.
"I s'pose we might as well get her room ready," he suggested. "She may come, anyway, you know."
Miss Chris looked up with a laugh from the delicate saucer she was wiping.
"I know it," she admitted; "and I'll see to her room. But your letter was positive, I hope?"
"Y-e-s," answered the general lamely, and he returned to the Richmond papers with an eager flush in his face.
The next day when Eugenia reached Kingsborough she found the dilapidated carriage awaiting her, with Sampson upon the driver's seat. With an impetuous flutter she threw her arms about the necks of the old horses. "Why, you dear things!" she cried; then she held out her hand to Sampson. "I'm glad to see you, Sampson," she said. "But why didn't papa come to meet me?"
Her animated eyes glanced joyously from side to side and her lips were brimming with the delight of homecoming.
Sampson turned the wheel for her as she got into the carriage, and gave her the linen lap-robe.
"You sho is growed, Miss Eugeny," he observed, and then in reply to her question, "Marse Tom hev got pow'ful stiff-jinted recentelly. Hit seems like he'd ruther sot right still den ease hisse'f outer his cheer. Sence Ole Miss Grissel done drop down dead uv er political stroke, he ain' step 'roun' mo'n he bleeged ter."
The carriage jolted through Kingsborough, and Eugenia bowed smilingly to her acquaintances. Once she stopped to shake hands with the rector
and again to kiss Sally Burwell, who flew into her arms.
"Why, Eugie! you - you beauty!" she cried. Eugenia laughed delightedly, her black eyes glowing.
"Am I good-looking?" she asked. "I'm so glad. But I'll never be as pretty as you, you dear, sweet thing. I'm too big."
They laughed and kissed again, and Eugenia stepped from the carriage to greet the judge, who was passing.
"This is a sight for sore eyes, my dear," said the judge, his fine old face wreathed in smiles. Then, as his gaze ran over her full, straight figure, "they make fine women these days," he added. "You're as tall as your father - though you're your mother's child. Yes, I can see Amelia Tucker in your eyes."
"Thank you - thank you," said the girl in a throaty voice. There was a glow, a warmth, a fervour in her face which harmonized the chill black and white of her colouring. Her expression was as a lamp to illumine the mask of her features.
"I couldn't stay away," she went on breathlessly. "I love Kingsborough better than the whole world."
"And Kingsborough loves you," returned the judge. "Yes, it is a good old town and well worth dying in, after all."
He assisted Eugenia into the carriage, shook hands again, and the lumbering old vehicle jogged on its way. In a moment another halt was called, and Mrs. Webb came from her gate to give the girl welcome.
"This is a surprise," she said as she kissed her.
"I dined at Battle Hall last week, and they didn't tell me you were coming."
"They didn't know it," laughed Eugenia. "I come like a bolt from the blue."
Mrs. Webb smiled coldly. She was just as the girl had known her in childhood - only the high black pompadour was now white. She still wore her stiff black silk gown, fastened at the throat by a Confederate button set in a brooch.
"You are like yourself and no one else," said Eugenia simply. "But tell me of Dudley - where is he?"
Mrs. Webb's face softened slightly.
"His practice is in Richmond now," she answered. "You know he studied law and took great honours at college. But his ambitions, I fear, are political. I don't like politics. They aren't for honest men."
Eugenia did not smile. She merely nodded assent and, saying good-bye pleasantly, jolted out of Kingsborough into the Old Stage Road.
"When did Mrs. Webb dine at home, Sampson?" she asked suddenly after a long silence.
"Hit wa'n' onc't en it wa'n' twice," said Sampson thoughtfully. "Mo' like hit wuz tree times. She done been dar monst'ous often dis yer winter, an' de mo' she come de mo' 'ristocratical she 'pear ter git. Dar wa'n' no placin' her, nohow. We done sot 'er by Ole Mis' Grissel w'en she wuz 'live, an' we done sot 'er by Miss Chris, an' we done sot 'er by Marse Tom hisse'f, an', fo' de Lawd, I ain' never seen 'er congeal yit."
But Eugenia was seeking other information. "Is
Uncle Ish well? And Aunt Verbeny, and the dogs? and did you bury Jim in the graveyard?"
"Dey's all well," replied Sampson, flicking at a horsefly on the sorrel's back, "an' Jim, he's well en buried. Marse Tom sot up er boa'd des' like you tell 'im."
A little later they turned into the cedar avenue, and Eugenia could see the large white pillars of the porch.
"There they are!" she cried excitedly, and before the carriage stopped she was up the narrow walk and in the general's arms.
"Well, daughter! daughter!" said the general. His eyes were watery, and when Eugenia fell upon Miss Chris, he blew his nose loudly with a nervous wave of his silk handkerchief.
"I was obliged to come," explained Eugenia. "When I got your letter saying I might, I was so happy."
"Tom!" murmured Miss Chris reproachfully, but her eyes were shining and she laid an affectionate hand on her brother's arm.
The general blushed like a boy.
"I told her if she'd fully made up her mind to come, I'd - I'd let her," he stammered shame-facedly.
"Oh, I was coming anyway!" announced Eugenia cheerfully as she was clasped upon the bosom of Aunt Verbeny.
"Ain't you des' yo' ma all over?" cried Aunt Verbeny enthusiastically. "Is you ever see anybody so w'ite en' so black in de same breff 'cep'n Miss Meeley? Can't I see her now same ez 'twuz
yestiddy, stannin' right afar in dis yer hall en' sayin', 'You b'longs ter me, Verbeny, en' I'se gwine ter take cyar you de tees' I kin.' "
Aunt Verbeny fixed her eyes upon the general and he quailed.
"Don't I take care of you, Aunt Verbeny?" he asked appealingly; but Eugenia, having greeted the remaining servants, drew him with her into the dining-room. When he sat down at last to the heavily laden table, he seemed to have grown twenty years younger. As Eugenia hung over him with domineering devotion, the irritable expression faded from his face and he grew almost jovial. When she weakened his coffee, he protested delightedly, and when she refused to allow him his nightly dole of preserved quinces, he stormed with rapture. "She wants to starve me, the tyrant," he declared. "She'll take the very bread from my mouth next."
Then his enthusiasm overcame him.
"That's the finest girl in the world, Chris! God bless her, her heart's as warm as her eyes. Why, she'd damn herself to do a kindness."
Miss Chris appeared to remonstrate.
"I am surprised, Tom," she said disapprovingly, though why she was surprised or what she was surprised at the general never knew.
When Eugenia went upstairs that night, she blew out her candle and undressed by the full light of the moon as it shone through the giant sycamore. Outside, the lawn lay like a sheet unrolled, rent by sharp black shadows. All the dear, familiar objects were draped by the darkness as by a curtain; the body of the sycamore assumed a spectral pallor, and the
small rookery near by was as mysterious as a tomb. From the dusk beneath the window the fragrance of the mimosa tree floated into the room.
Eugenia, in her long, white nightgown, fell upon her bed and slept.
The next day she went the rounds of the farm. "I'm coming back to take you for exercise," she remarked to the general as she stood before him in her sunbonnet.
The general, who was placidly smoking, groaned in protest.
"Then you'll kill me, Eugie," he urged. "Exercise doesn't suit me. I'm too heavy."
"You'll get lighter," returned Eugenia reassuringly. "You don't move about half enough, but I'll make you."
The general groaned again, and Miss Chris, pink and fresh in her linen sacque, came out upon the porch.
"Bless the child!" she exclaimed. "Where on earth did she lay hands on that bonnet? Don't stay out too long in the sun, Eugie, or you'll burn black."
The general caught at the straw.
"I wish you'd tell her she ought to sit in the house, Chris. She wants to drag me - me out in that heat." But Eugenia drew the sunbonnet over her dark head and disappeared across the lawn.
Having inspected the farmyard and the stables, she crossed the ragged field to the negro cabins, where she was received with hilarity.
"Ain't I al'ays tell you she uz de fines' lady in de
lan'?" demanded Delphy of the retreating Moses. "Ain't I al'ays tell you dar wa'n't her match in dese yer parts or outer dem? I ax you, ain't I?"
"Dat's so," admitted Moses meekly.
"Where's Betsey?" inquired Eugenia, twirling her sunbonnet." Aunt Verbeny told me the baby died. I am so sorry."
"De Lawd He give, en' de Lawd He teck," returned Delphy piously, "en' He done been moughty open-handed dis long time. He done give er plum sight mo'n He done teck, en' it ain' no use'n sayin' He ain'."
"So the others are well?" ventured Eugenia, and as a bow-legged crawler emerged from beneath the doorstep she added: "Is that the youngest?"
Delphy snorted.
"Dat ar brat, Miss Euginney? He ain' Betsey's, nohow. He's Rindy's Lije, en' he's de mos' out'n out pesterer sence Mose wuz born."
"Rindy!" exclaimed Eugenia in surprise, lightly touching the small black body with her foot. "Why, I didn't know Rindy was married. She's working at the house now."
Delphy seized the child and held him at arm's length while she applied a sounding box. "Go 'way f'om yer, honey," she said. "Rindy ain' mah'ed. He's des' an accident. Shet yo' mouth, you imp er darkness, fo' I shet hit fur you."
"Don't hurt him, Delphy," pleaded the girl. "Rindy ought to be ashamed of herself, but it isn't his fault. I'm going to send him some clothes. He looks fat enough, anyhow."
"He's fitten ter bus'," retorted Delphy sternly.
"He don't do nuttin' fur his livin' but eat all day, en' den when night come he don't do nuttin' but holler kaze de time ter leave off eatin' done come. He ain' no mo' use'n a weazel."
Eugenia promised to befriend the baby, and left with Delphy's pessimism ringing in her ears. "He ain' wuth yo' shoestring, he ain'," called the woman after her.
The girl was as popular among the negroes as she had been as a small tomboy in pinafores. Her impulsive generosity and, above all, her cordial kindness, had not abated with years. She was as ready to serve as be served, her heart was as open as her hand; and the shrewd, childish race received her as a benignant providence. Her sweetness of disposition became a proverb. "As sunshiny ez Miss Euginny," said Aunt Verbeny of a clear day - and the general raised her wages.
During the early summer Bernard came home on a vacation. For several years he had held a position in a bank in Lynchburg, and his visits to Kingsborough took place at uncertain intervals. He was a slight, insignificant young fellow, with complacent eyes and a beautiful, girlish mouth. His temper was quicker than Eugenia's, and he was in continual friction with the general, who had grown absentminded and irritable. He not only forgot his own opinions as soon as he expressed them, but, what is still more annoying, he was apt to offer them as some one's else in the course of a few hours.
"That young Burr's a scamp," he remarked one morning at breakfast, "a regular scamp. Here he's setting up as a lawyer under George Bassett's eye,
when I happen to know that Jerry Pollard wouldn't have him in his store if you paid him."
"My dear Tom," breathed the placid voice of Miss Chris, "I'm quite sure you're mistaken. Why, Judge Bassett -"
"Mistaken!" persisted the general angrily. "Am I the man to make a statement without authority? I tell you he's a scamp, ma'am - a regular scamp! If you please to doubt my word -"
"That's rather rough on a chap, isn't it?" put in Bernard indifferently. "He isn't a gentleman, but I shouldn't call him a scamp."
"Why should you call him anything, sir?" demanded the general. "It's no business of yours, is it? If I choose to call him a -"
"Now, father," said Eugenia, and at her decisive tones the general broke off and turned upon her round, inquiring eyes. "Now, father, you don't mean one word that you're saying, and you know it." And she proceeded to butter his cakes.
The general was suppressed, and after breakfast he got into the carriage beside his daughter and drove slowly into town. When he returned to dinner he met Miss Chris with triumphant eyes.
"By the way, Chris, you were mistaken this morning about that Burr boy. He's quite a decent person. I don't see how you got it into your head there was something wrong about him."
"I'm glad to hear it," responded Miss Chris good-humouredly. She had never uttered a harsh word about anybody in her life, but she was a long-suffering woman, and she philosophically accepted the accusation.
Twenty-four hours later the general had a passage at arms with Bernard.
"You can watch the threshing this morning, my boy," he remarked as he sat down to breakfast. "You won't go in to town, I suppose?"
Bernard shook his head.
"I thought of riding in for the mail," he answered; "there's a letter I'm looking for."
The general flushed and put out a preliminary feeler. "How are you going?" he inquired; "not on one of my horses, I hope?"
Eugenia shook her head at Bernard, but he went on recklessly:
"Why, yes, I thought I'd take the gray mare."
The general shook his head until his flabby face grew purple.
"The gray mare!" he thundered. "You mean to take out my gray mare, do you ? Well, I'd like to see you, sir. Not a step does the gray mare stir - not a step, sir."
"Oh, all right," agreed Bernard so quietly that the general's rage increased. "Keep her in the stables, for all I care." And, having finished his breakfast, he bowed to Miss Chris and left the table.
But an hour later, as he passed through the hall, he found the general waiting. "Aren't you ready?" he asked irascibly. "Are you going to waste the whole morning? Why aren't you in town?"
Bernard's temper was well enough as long as there was no reason it should be better; but he couldn't stand his father, and he knew it.
"I'm not going," he returned sullenly.
"Not going!" cried the general hotly, "not going after all the fuss you've raised? What do you mean by changing your mind every minute?"
Bernard took his hat from the old mahogany rack." I've nothing to ride," he replied irritably, "and I don't choose to walk - that's what I mean."
But his answer only exasperated his hovering parent.
"Damme, sir, do you want to make me lose my temper?" he demanded. "Isn't the stable full of horses? Where's the gray mare, I'd like to know, sir?"
"Eugie!" called Bernard angrily, "come here." And as the girl appeared he made a break from the house. He possessed an abiding faith in the endurance of Eugenia's clannish soul that was proof against even the suggestion that it might succumb. His father was unquestionably trying, but Eugie was unquestionably strong, and she loved her people with a passion which he felt to be romantically unsurpassable. Yes, Eugie was the hope of the family, after all.
As for the girl, she put her arm about the general and drew him to his chair. He was failing rapidly; this she saw and suffered at seeing. There were wrinkles crossing and recrossing his hanging cheeks, and swollen bluish pockets beneath his eyes. When he moved he carried his great weight uneasily. During the day she hung over him with multiplied caresses; as he sat upon the porch in the afternoon she read to him from the Bible and Shakespeare, the only books his library contained.
"After God and Shakespeare, what was left for
any man to write?" the general had once demanded of the judge.
Now he asked the question of Eugenia, and she smiled and was silent. Her eyes passed from the porch to the lawn and the walk and the immemorial gloom of the great cedars. Sunshine lay over all the warm, sleepy land, and sunshine lay across her white dress and across the senile droop of the general's mouth.
"For He maketh sore, and bindeth up," read the girl slowly. "He woundeth and His hands make whole."
"He shall deliver thee in six troubles; - yea, in seven there shall no evil touch thee."
"In famine He shall redeem thee from death: and in war from the power of the sword."
She stopped suddenly and looked up, for the general's eyes were full of tears.
On an October afternoon Nicholas Burr was walking along the branch road that led to his father's farm. He carried a well filled bag upon his shoulder, the musty surface of which betrayed that it contained freshly ground meal, but, despite the additional weight, his figure was unflinchingly erect. There was a splendid vigour in his thick-set frame and in the swinging strides of his hardy limbs. His face - the square-jawed, large-featured face of a philosopher or a farmer - possessed, with its uncompromising ugliness, a certain eccentric power. Rugged, gray, alert-eyed as it was, large-browed and over-hung by his waving red hair - it was a face to attract or to repel - not to be ignored.
Now, as he swung on vigorously in the October light, there was about him a joyousness of purpose which belonged to his age and his aspirations. It was an atmosphere, an emanation thrown off by respiring vitality.
Across the road the sunshine fell in long, level shafts. The spirit of October was abroad in the wood - veiling itself in a faint, bluish haze like the smoke of the greenwood when it burns. Overhead,
crimson and yellow ran riot among the trees, the flame of the maple extinguishing the dull red of the oak, the clear gold of the hickory flashing through the gloss of the holly. As yet the leaves had not begun to fall; they held tenaciously to the living branches, fluttering light heads in the first autumn chill. In the underbrush, where the deerberry showed hectic blotches, a squirrel worked busily, completing its winter store, while in the slanting sun rays a tawny butterfly, like a wind-blown, loosened tiger lily, danced its last mad dance with death.
To Nicholas the scene was without significance. With a gesture he threw off the spell of its beauty, as he shifted the "sack" of corn meal upon his shoulder. He had found Uncle Ish tottering homeward with the load, and he had taken it from him with a careless promise to leave it at the old negro's cabin door - then, passing him by a stride, he had gone on his kindly, confident way. He forgot Uncle Ish as readily as he forgot the bag he carried. His mind was busily reviewing the points of his last case and the possible facts of a more important one he believed to be coming to him. In this connection he went back to his first fight in the little courthouse, and he laughed with an appreciation of the humour of his success. It was Turner, after all, who had given it to him; Turner, who, having bought a horse that died upon the journey home, wanted revenge as well as recompense. He remembered his perturbation as he rose to cross-examine the defendant - the nervousness with which he drove his weapons home. It had all seemed so important to
him then - the court, his client, the great, greasy horse dealer forced into the witness stand.
He had proved his case by the defendant, and he had won as well a mild reputation among the farmers who had assembled for the day. Since then he had done well, and the judge's patronage had placed much in his hands that, otherwise, would have gone elsewhere.
Beyond the wood, the uncultivated wasteland sported its annual carnival of golden rod and sumach, and across the brilliant plumes a round, red sun hung suspended in a quiet sky. In the corn field, where the late crop was fast maturing, negro women chanted shrilly as they pulled the "fodder," their high-coloured kerchiefs blending, like autumn foliage, with the landscape. Around them the denuded stalks rose boldly row on row, reserving their scarred and yellow husks for the last harvest of the year.
When Nicholas reached his father's house he did not enter the little whitewashed gate, but kept on to the log cabin on the edge of General Battle's land, where Uncle Ish was passing his declining years in poverty and independence. The cabin stood above a little gully which skirted the dividing line of the pastures, facing, in its primitive nudity, the level stretch of the shadowless highway. It was a rotting, one-room dwelling, with a wide doorway opening upon a small, bare strip of ground where a gnarled oak grew. In the rear there was a small garden, denuded now of its modest vegetables, only the leafy foliage of a late pea crop retaining a semblance of fruitfulness.
Nicholas went up the narrow path leading from the road to the hut, and placed the bag on the smooth, round stone which served for a step. As he did so, the doorway abruptly darkened, and a girl came from the interior and paused with her foot upon the threshold. He saw, in an upward glance, that it was Eugenia Battle, and, from the light wicker basket on her arm, he inferred that, in the absence of Uncle Ish, she had been engaged in supplying his simple wants. That the old negro was still cared for by the Battles he was aware, though upon the means of his livelihood Uncle Ish, himself, was singularly reticent.
As Eugenia saw him she flushed slightly, as one caught in a secret charity, and promptly pointed to the bag of meal.
"Whose is that?"
He looked from the girl to the bag and back again, his own cheek reddening. At the-instant it occurred to him that it was a peculiar greeting after a separation of years.
"It belongs to Uncle Ish," he answered, with unreasonable embarrassment. "I believe your father gave it to him."
"He might have brought it home for him," was her comment, and immediately:
"Where is he?"
"Uncle Ish? He's on the road."
Her next remark probed deeper, and he winced.
"What were you doing with it?"
Her gaze was warming upon him. He met it and laughed aloud.
"Toting it," he responded lightly.
She was still warming. He saw the glow kindle in her eyes and illumine her sombre face; it was like the leaping of light to the surface. As she stood midway of the entrance, in a frame of unpolished logs, her white and black beauty against the smoky gloom of the interior, the red sunset before her feet, he recalled swiftly an allegorical figure of Night he had once seen in an old engraving. Then, before the charm of her smile, the recollection passed as it had come.
"You may bring in the bag," she said, with the authority of one accustomed to much service. "I found he had very little left to eat. We have to bring him things secretly, and he pretends the Lord feeds him as He fed the prophet."
She reentered the hut, and Nicholas, stepping lightly in the fear that his weight might hasten the fall of the logs, deposited the bag upon a pine table, where an ash cake lay ready for the embers. In a little cupboard he saw the contents of Eugenia's basket - a cold fried chicken and some coffee and sugar. Before the hearth there was a comfortable rocking chair, and a bright coloured quilt was upon the bed. As he turned away the girl spoke swiftly:
"It was good of you," she said.
"Good of me?" He met her approbation almost haughtily; then he impulsively added: "I always liked Uncle Ish - and he reminds me of old times."
She turned frankly to him. In the noble poise of her head she had seemed strangely far off; now she appeared to stoop.
"Of our old times?"
Her cordial eyes arrested him.
"Of yours and mine," he answered. "Do you remember the hare traps he set for us and the straw mats he taught us to plait? Once you said you had stolen a watermelon to save Jake a whipping, and he found you out - do you remember?"
He pressed the recollections upon her eagerly, almost violently.
Eugenia shook her head, half laughing.
"No, no," she said; "but I remember you carried me home once when I had hurt my foot, and you jumped into the ice pond to save my kitten, and -"
"You shared your lunch with me at school," he broke in.
"And you dug me a little garden all yourself -"
"And you bought me a Jew's harp on my birthday -"
"And you always left half the eggs in a bird's nest because I begged you to -"
"And you were an out and out angel," he concluded triumphantly.
"An angel, black-haired and a tomboy?"
He assented. "A little tyrannical angel with a temper."
Her confessions multiplied.
"I scratched your face once."
"Yes."
"I got mad and smashed your best hawk's egg."
"You did."
"I threw your fishing line into the brook when you wouldn't let me fish."
"I have never seen it since."
"I was horrid and mean."
"Such were your angelic characteristics."
She thoughtfully swung the basket on her arm, her white sleeve fluttering above her wrist. Her head, with its wave, from the clear brow, of dead-black hair, was bent frankly towards him.
"It has been so long since I saw you," she said suddenly, "and when I last saw you, you were horrid, not I."
He flushed quickly.
"I was a brute," he admitted.
"And you hurt me so, I cried all night."
"Not because you cared?" he asked breathlessly.
"Of course not - because I didn't care a - a rap. I cried for the fun of it."
He was sufficiently abashed.
"If I had known - " he began, and stopped.
"You might have known!" she flashed out.
He was at a disadvantage, which he admitted by a blank regard.
"But things were desperate then, and - "
"So were you."
"Not as desperate as I might have been."
In her equable unconsciousness she threw off the meaning of his retort.
"But I like desperateness."
She had crossed the threshold and stood now in the ambient glow, gazing across the quiet pasture, where a stray sheep bleated. She reached up and broke a bunch of red leaves from the oak, fastening them in her belt as they descended the narrow path.
In the road they came upon Uncle Ish, who was hobbling slowly towards them. He was wrinkled with age and bent with rheumatism, and his voice sounded cracked and querulous.
"Is de Lawd done sont dem vittles?" he demanded suspiciously. "Ef He ain', I dunno how I'se gwine ter git mo'n a'er ash cake fur supper. 'Pears like He's gittin' monst'ous ondependible dese yer las' days. I ain' lay eyes on er dish er kebbage sence I lef' dat ar patch on Hick'ry Hill, en all de blackeye peas I'se done seen is what I raise right dar behint dat do'. Es long es Gord A'mighty ondertecks ter feed you, He mought es well feed you ter yo' tase."
"There are some eggs in the cupboard," said Eugenia seriously. "You must cook some for supper."
Uncle Ish grunted.
"En egg's er wishwashy creeter es ain' got ernuff tase er its own ter stan' alont widout salt," he remarked contemptuously; after which he grew hospitable.
"Ain' you gwine ter step in es you'se passin'?" he inquired.
Eugenia shook her head.
"Not to-day, Uncle Ish," she responded cheerfully. "I know you're tired - and how is your rheumatism?"
"Wuss en wuss," responded the old negro gloomily. "I'se done cyar'ed one er dese yer I'sh tater in my pocket twell hit sprouted, en de rhematiks ain' never knowed 'twuz dar. Hit's wuss en wuss."
As they passed on, he hobbled painfully up the rocky path, leaning heavily upon his stick and grunting audibly at each rheumatic twinge.
Nicholas and Eugenia followed the highway an turned into the avenue of cedars. When the house was in sight, he stopped and held out his hand.
"May I see you sometimes?" he asked diffidently.
She spoke eagerly.
"Oh, do come to see us," she said. "Papa would enjoy talking about Judge Bassett. He half worships him."
"So do I."
She nodded sympathetically.
"I know - I know. He is splendid! And you are doing well, aren't you?"
"I have work to do, thank God, and I do it. I can't say how."
"What does Judge Bassett say?"
He laughed boyishly. "He says silence."
She was puzzled.
"I don't understand - but I must go - I really must. It is quite dark."
And she passed from him into the box-bordered walk. He watched her tall figure until it ascended the stone steps and paused upon the porch, whence came the sound of voices. Through the wide open doors he could see the swinging lamp in the centre of the great hall and the broad stairway leading to the floor above. For a moment he stood motionless; then, turning back into the avenue, he retraced his steps to his father's house.
In the kitchen, where the table was laid for supper, his half-sister, Nannie, was sewing on her wedding clothes. She was to be married in the fulness of the winter to young Nat Turner - one of the Turners of Nicholas's boyhood. By the light of the kerosene lamp she looked wonderfully fair and fresh, her auburn curls hanging heavily against her cheek as she bent over the cambric in her lap.
As Nicholas entered she looked up brightly, exclaiming: "Oh, it's you!" in disappointed accents.
Nicholas looked about the kitchen inquiringly.
"Where's ma?" he asked, and at the instant Marthy Burr appeared in the doorway, a pat of butter in her hand.
"Air you home, Nick?" was her greeting, as she placed the butter upon the table. Then she went across to Nannie and examined the hem on the cambric ruffle.
"It seems to me you might have done them stitches a little finer," she observed critically. "Old Mrs. Turner's got powerful sharp eyes for stitches, an' she's goin' to look mighty hard at yours. If thar's one stitch shorter'n another, it's goin' to stand out plainer than all the rest. It's the nater of a woman to be far-sighted at seeing the flaws in her son's wife, ant old Mrs. Turner ain't no better'n God made her, if she ain't no worse. 'Tain't my way to be wishin' harm to folks, but I al'ays said the only thing to Amos Burr's credit I ever heerd of is that he's an orphan - which he ain't responsible for."
"But the sewing's all right," returned Nannie in wounded pride. "Nat ain't marrying me for my sewing, anyway."
Her mother shook her head.
"What a man marries for's hard to tell," she returned; "an' what a woman marries for's past findin' out. I ain't never seen an old maid yet that ain't had a mighty good opinion of men - an' I ain't never seen a married woman that ain't had a feelin' that a few improvements wouldn't be out of place. I don't want to turn you agin Nat Turner - he's a man
an' he's got a mother, an' that's all I've got agin him. No talkin's goin' to turn anybody that's got their mind set on marryin', any more than it's goin to turn anybody that's got their mind set on drink. So I ain't goin' to open my mouth."
Here Amos Burr appeared, and as he seated himself beside Nannie she drew her ruffles away. "You're so dusty, pa," she exclaimed half pettishly.
He fixed his heavy, admiring eyes upon her, receiving the reproof as meekly as he received all feminine utterances. He might bully a man, but he would always be bullied by a woman.
"I reckon you're pretty near ready," he observed cheerfully, rubbing his great hairy hands. "You've got 'most a trunk full of finery. I reckon Turner'll know I ain't in the poorhouse yet - or near it."
It was a speech of unusual length, and, after making it, he slowly settled into silence.
"Nat wouldn't mind if I was in the poorhouse, so long as he could get me out," said his daughter, taking up the cudgels in defence of her lover's disinterestedness.
Amos Burr chuckled.
"Don't you set no store by that," he rejoined.
"An' don't you set about judgin' other folks by yourself, Amos Burr," retorted his wife sharply. " 'Tain't likely you'd ever pull anybody out o' the poorhouse 'thout slippin' in yourself, seein' as I've slaved goin' on twenty years to keep you from landin' thar at last. The less you say about some things the better. Now, you'd jest as well set down an' eat your supper."
The next day Nicholas went into Tom Bassett's office, where he met Dudley Webb, who was spending a dutiful week in Kingsborough. He was a genial young fellow, with a clear-cut, cleanly shaven face and a handsome head covered with rich, dark hair. His hands were smooth and white, and he gesticulated rapidly as he talked. It was already said of him that he told a poor story better than anybody else told a good one - a fact which was probably the elemental feature of his popularity.
As Nicholas looked in, he raised himself lightly from Tom's desk chair and gave him a hearty handshake.
"Hello, Burr! We were just talking of you. I was telling Tom a jolly thing I heard yesterday. Two farmers were discussing you at the post-office, and one of them said: ''Tain't that he's got so much sense - I had a sight more at his age - but he's so blamed sure of himself, he makes you believe in him.' How's that for fame?"
"Not so bad as it is for me," returned Nicholas with a laugh. "If you win one or two small cases, there's obliged to be undue influence of the devil."
"Which, occasionally, it is," added Tom seriously.
Dudley threw himself back into his chair and crossed his shapely legs. For a moment he smoked in silence, then he removed his cigar from his mouth and flecked the ashes upon the uncarpeted floor.
"Oh! the mystery to me is," he said, "that you exist down here and live to tell the tale - or at least that you earn enough crumbs to feed the crows."
"Kingsborough crows aren't high livers," remarked Nicholas as he threw himself into the remaining chair.
Dudley laughed softly - a humorous laugh that fell pleasantly on the ear.
"That reminds me," he began whimsically. "I met a tourist with spectacles walking along Duke of Gloucester Street. 'Sir,' he said courteously, 'I am looking for Kingsborough. I am told that it is a city.' 'Sir,' I responded, with a bow that did honour to my grandfather's ghost, 'it was once a chartered city; it is now only a charter.' "
Then he turned to Tom.
"We haven't got used to the railroad yet, have we?" he asked.
Tom shook his head.
"General Battle's still protesting," he replied. "He swears it makes Kingsborough common."
Dudley thoughtfully examined his cigar, an amused smile about his mouth.
"My mother doesn't want the cows turned out of the churchyard," he observed, "because it would abolish one of Kingsborough's characteristics. She's right, too, by Jove."
"They're having a fight over it now," put in Nicholas with the gravity he rarely lost. "The people who own cows call it an 'ancient right.' The people who don't, call it sacrilege. The rector leads one faction, and the congregation has split."
"And split we smash," added Dudley. "Well, these are exciting times in Kingsborough's history; it is almost as lively as Richmond. There we had a religious convention and an elopement last week. I don't suppose you come up to that?"
Nicholas ran his hand through his hair with a habitual gesture. He was idly watching the light of Dudley's cigar and noting the quality by the aroma. He could not afford cigars himself, and he wondered how Dudley managed to do so.
"We are a people without a present," he returned inattentively. "You've heard, I take it, that an old elm has gone near the court-house."
"My mother told me. I believe she knows every brick that used to be and is not. I'm trying to get her away with me, but she won't come."
"Sally Burwell was telling me," said Tom, a dawning interest in his face, "she had tried to persuade her."
"Yes, we tried and failed. By the way, is it true that Sally's engaged to Jack Wyth? I hear it at every turn."
"I - I shouldn't be surprised," gasped Tom painfully.
"I don't believe a word of it," protested Nicholas.
"He isn't much good, eh?"
"Why, he's a brick," said Nicholas.
"He's a cad," said Tom.
Dudley laughed and blew a cloud of smoke in the air.
"Well, she's a daisy herself, and as good as gold. She's the kind of woman to flirt herself hoarse and then settle down into dove-like domesticity. But
what about Eugie? Is she really grown up? My mother declares she's splendid."
Nicholas was silent.
"Oh, she's handsome enough," Tom carelessly replied.
"But not like Sally, eh?"
"Oh, no! not like Sally."
Dudley tossed the stump of his cigar through the open window, lit a cigarette, and changed the subject. He talked easily, relating several laughable stories, referring occasionally to himself and his success, illustrating his remarks by his experience at the bar, giving finally the exclamation of a fellow-lawyer at the close of an argument he had made: "You may be a muff of a jurist, Webb," he had cried, "but, by George! you're a devil of an advocate!"
He was, withal, so affable, so confident, so thoroughly a good fellow, that an hour passed before Nicholas remembered he had looked in only for a moment.
When he rose to go, Dudley gripped his hand again, slapped him on the shoulder, declared him to be a "first-rate old chap," and ended by pressing him to drop in on him when he ran up to Richmond.
Nicholas gave back the friendly grasp and pledged himself to the "dropping in." He resistingly succumbed before the inherent jovial charm.
The afternoon being Saturday, he left town earlier than usual and spent a couple of hours with his father in the fields. The peanuts were being harvested. Amos Burr, with a peanut "share" attached to the plough, was separating the yellowed
plants from the ripe nuts underground, and Nicholas, lifting the roots upon a pitchfork, shook them free from earth and threw them over the pointed staves which were the final supports of the "hocks." A negro hand went before him, driving the sticks into the sandy soil.
"I should say you might count on forty bushels an acre," remarked Nicholas cheerfully, as he lifted a detached root from a broken hill. "It's a fair yield, isn't it?"
Amos Burr shook his head and muttered that there was "no tellin'. Peanuts air one of the things thar's no countin' on," he added. "Wheat air another, corn air another, oats air another."
"Life is another," concluded Nicholas lightly. "Still we live and still we raise wheat and oats and corn. But I wish you'd look into market gardening. I believe it would pay you better."
" 'Tain't no use," returned Amos, with his accustomed pessimism. " 'Tain't no use my plantin' as long as the government ain't goin' to move, nohow. It's been promisin' to help the farmer ever since the war, an' it ain't done nothin' for him yet but tax him."
But Nicholas, to avoid his father's political drift, fell to talking with one of the negro workers.
Several hours later, when he had changed his farm clothes, he joined Eugenia in the pasture and walked with her to Battle Hall, where the general received him with ready, if condescending, hospitality. Eugenia had instructed her family upon the changed conditions of Nicholas's social standing, but her logic was powerless to convince her father
that Amos Burr's son was any better than Amos Burr had been before him.
"Pish! Pish!" he exclaimed testily, "the boy's not a lawyer - only gentlemen belong to the bar, but there's nobody too high or too low to be a farmer. Polite to him? Did you ever see me impolite in my own house even to a chimney sweep?"
"I never saw a chimney sweep in your own house," Eugenia retorted, whereupon he pinched her cheek and accused her of "making fun of her old father."
Now, when Nicholas sat down on one of the long green benches on the porch, the general conversed with him as he conversed with the chicken sellers who came of an afternoon to receive payment for their luckless fowls.
"This'll be a busy season for you," he observed cheerfully, in the slightly elevated voice in which he addressed his inferiors. "You'll be cutting your corn before long and seeding your winter crops. What are you planting this fall?"
He could not be induced to engage upon social topics with the young man or to allude in the most distant manner to his legal profession. He was a Burr, and a Burr was a small farmer, nothing more.
"We're ploughing for oats now, sir," responded Nicholas diffidently, "and we're going to seed a little rye with clover - if the clover's killed, the rye'll last."
"I should advise you to look after the land," said the general, stuffing the tobacco into the bowl of his
pipe and pressing it down with his fat thumb. "What you need is to plant it in cow-peas and turn them down. There's nothing like them for fertilising."
Nicholas, who was listening attentively, rose to shake hands with Miss Chris who appeared in the doorway.
"The fall comes earlier than it used to," she remarked, drawing a light crocheted shawl about her shoulders. "Why, I remember when it used to be summer up to the middle of November. I was talking to Judge Bassett about it yesterday, and he said he certainly thought the seasons had changed since he was a boy."
"I don't reckon your father has much opinion of fertilisers," broke in the general, reverting to his pleasant patronage.
Nicholas answered before Eugenia could interpose. "No, sir, he doesn't believe in them much," he replied.
"Well, you tell him it's lime he needs," continued the general. "The most successful peanut grower I ever knew put about a thousand pounds of lime to an acre, and he cleared -"
"Have you seen Dudley Webb?" asked Eugenia, shaking her head at the general's frown.
"For an hour this morning. He was in Tom Bassett's office. He told some good stories."
Miss Chris heaved a reminiscent sigh.
"That's poor Julius Webb all over again," she said. "He could keep a dinner table laughing for two hours and fight a duel at daybreak. I remember at his own wedding, when they drank his health,
he told such a funny story that old Judge Blitherstone, who was upwards of eighty, had to have cold bandages put to his head."
The general took his pipe from his mouth. "Dudley's a fine young fellow," he said. "I saw him yesterday when I went to the post-office. They tell me he's making a name for himself in Richmond."
Eugenia laughed lightly.
"Papa adores Mrs. Webb, so he thinks Dudley splendid," she said.
"That lady is one of the noblest of her sex," loyally asserted the general.
"And one of the most trying of either sex," added his daughter. "When I came home my last holiday, she asked me what I learned at school, and I danced a skirt dance for her."
"I always told you you spoiled Eugie to death, Tom," said Miss Chris in justification of her own responsibility. "In my day no young lady knew what a skirt dance was."
"But that's what I learned at school," protested Eugenia.
The general, feeling that the conversation excluded Nicholas, renewed his attack.
"What do you think of raising garden products?" he inquired affably. Then Eugenia rose, and he submissively retired.
"We aren't going to talk farming any more," said the girl. "Nick and I are going into the garden for roses," and she descended the steps, followed by Nicholas, who was beginning for the first time to breathe freely.
"Tell your father to look into the truck-growing," was the general's parting shot.
The garden was flushed with the riot of autumn. Over the little whitewashed fence double rows of hollyhocks and sunflowers nodded their heavy heads, and bordering the narrow walk were lines of chrysanthemums and dahlias: October roses, the richest of the year, bloomed and dropped in the quaint old squares where the long vegetable rows began. At the end of the straight, overgrown walk the hop vines on the fence threw out a pungent odour.
"Papa wants to have the garden ploughed," said Eugenia. "He says it takes too much time to hoe it. Give me your knife, please."
He opened the blade, and she stooped to cut off a crimson dahlia while the Indian summer sunshine slanted from the west upon her dark head and white dress. Over all was the faint violet haze of the season, hanging above the gay old garden like a delicate effluvium from autumns long decayed.
"There aren't many old-time gardens left," said Nicholas regretfully, "but I like this one best of all. I always think of you in the midst of it."
"Yes, we used to gather calacanthus blossoms and trade them for taffy at school. The bushes are almost all dead now. That is the only one left."
She laid the knife upon the grass and raised her arms to fasten a yellow chrysanthemum in her hair. As it lay against her ear it cast a clear, golden light upon her cheek, as warm as the late sunshine.
"Flowers suit you," he said.
"Do they?" she smiled in a quick, pleased way. "Is it because I love them?"
"It is because you are beautiful," he answered bluntly.
Some one had once called Eugenia's besetting vanity the love of giving pleasure; it was, perhaps, in reality, the pleasure of being loved. It was not the fact that she might be beautiful that now warmed her so gratefully, but the evidence that Nicholas was good enough to consider her so.
"You have seen so few girls," she remarked reasonably enough.
"I may see many, but it won't alter my view of you."
"How can you tell?"
He shook his head impatiently.
"I shan't tell. I shall prove it."
"And when you have proved it where shall I be? - old and toothless?"
"May be - but still beautiful."
There was a glow in her face, but she did not reply. His eyes and the last, long ray of sunshine were upon her. He was revoking from an old October a dark-haired, clear-eyed girl amid the dahlias, and it seemed to him that Eugenia had shot up in a season like one of the stately flowers. As she stood in the grass-grown walk, her skirt half-filled with blossoms, her white hands lifting the thin folds above her ruffled petticoat, she appeared to be the vital apparition of the place - a harbinger of the vivid sunlight and the dark shadows of the passing of the year.
"See how many!" she exclaimed, holding her
lapful towards him. "You may take your choice - only not that last pink papa loves."
He plunged his hands amid the confusion of colours and drew out a yellow chrysanthemum.
"I like this," he said simply.
She laughed. "But it doesn't suit your hair," she suggested.
He met her sally gravely.
"It is my favourite flower," he returned.
"Since when, pray?"
"Since - since a half-hour ago."
He stooped and picked up his knife from the grass.
"Are you going away?" he asked, "or shall you stay here always?"
"Always," she promptly returned. "I'm going to live here with this old garden until I grow to be an ancient dame - and you may walk over on autumn afternoons and I'll be sympathetic about your rheumatism. Isn't that a picture that delights your soul?"
"No," he said bluntly; "I see a better one."
"Tell me."
"I can never tell you," he replied gravely - "not even when you are an ancient dame and I rheumatic."
She was merry again.
"Then I fear it's wicked," she said, "and I'm amazed at you. But my day-dreams are all common ones. I ask only the country and my home and horses and cows and chickens - and a rheumatic friend. You see I must be happy, I ask so little."
"And you argue that he who demands little gets
it," he returned lightly. "On the other hand, I should say that he who is content with less gets nothing. I ask the biggest thing Fate has to give, and then stand waiting for -"
He paused for a breathless instant while he looked at her, and then slowly finished:
"For the skies to fall."
They swung open the gate into cattle lane, and stood waiting while the cows trooped by to the barnyard.
Eugenia called them by name, and they turned great stupid eyes upon her as they stopped to munch the hollyhocks.
"She was named after you," said the girl suddenly.
"She? Who?" he turned a helpless look upon the two small negroes who drove the cows.
"Why, Burr Bess, of course - that Jersey there. You know we couldn't name her Nick because she wasn't a boy, so Bernard called her Burr Bess. You don't seem pleased."
"She's a fine cow," observed Nicholas critically.
"Oh! she was the most beautiful calf! I thought you remembered it. One was named after me, but it died, and one was named after Bernard, but it went to the butcher. Bernard was so angry about it that he waylaid the cart on the road and let it out. But they caught it again. It was too bad, wasn't it?"
The garden gate closed behind them with a click, and they crossed the lane to the lawn.
Miss Chris, who stood shading her eyes in the back porch, was giving directions to Aunt Verbeny
in the smoke-house. When she saw Nicholas she broke off and asked him to stay to supper, but he declined hastily, and, with an embarrassed good-evening, turned back into the lane. The hollyhocks over the whitewashed fence brushed him as he passed, and the spices of the garden came to him like the essence of the eternal Romance.
Over all hung Indian summer and the happy sunshine. Eugenia, rising at daybreak for a gallop across country, would feel the dew in her face and the autumn in her blood. As she dashed over fences and ditches to the unploughed pasture, the morning was as desolate as midnight - not a soul showed in the surrounding fields and the long road lay as pallid as a streak of frost. The loneliness and the hour set her eyes to dancing and the glad blood to bounding in her veins. When a startled rabbit shied from the brushwood she would slacken her speed to watch it, and when, as sometimes chanced, she frightened a covey of partridges from their retreat, she went softly, rejoicing that no shot was near.
At this time she was possessed, perhaps, of a
spirit too elastic, of a buoyance almost insolent - she
turned, as it were, too round a cheek to Fate. In her
clear purity romanticism held no part, and her soul,
strong to adhere, was slow to conform. Her nature
was straight as an arrow that would not fall though
it overshot the mark. She dreamed scant dreams of
the future because she clove tenaciously to the
past - to the rare associations and the old
affections - to the road and the cedars and the Hall
as to the men and women whose blood she bore
and whose likeness she carried. She loved one and
all with a fidelity that did not swerve. Riding home
Then, pacing up the avenue to the gravelled walk,
she would call "good-morning" to the general and
leap lightly to the ground, fresh as the day, bright as
the autumn.
It was on one of these early rides that she saw
Nicholas again. She was returning leisurely through
the stretch of woodland, when, catching sight of him
as he swung vigorously ahead, she quickened her
horse's pace and overtook him as he glanced
inquiringly back.
"Divide the worm, early bird," she cried gaily.
He paused as she did, laying his hand on the
horse's neck.
"There wasn't but one and you got it," he
retorted lightly. "Have you been far?"
"Miles, and I'm as hungry as two bears. Have
you anything in your pocket?"
Her glowing face rose against a background of
maple boughs, which surrounded her like a flame.
The mist of the morning was on her lips and her
eyes were shining. He felt her beauty leap like wine to
his brain, and he set his teeth and looked blankly
down the road.
She laughed as she plunged her hand into the
pocket of his coat. "You used to have apples," she
complained, "or honeyshucks, at least - now there's
only this."
It was a worn little Latin text book, with frayed
edges and soiled leaves.
"Give it to me," he said quickly, but as he reached
to take it from her the leaves fell open and she saw
her own name written and rewritten across the
crumpled pages.
She closed it and gave it back to him.
"You used that long ago," she remarked
carelessly; "very long ago."
He replaced the book in his pocket, his steady
eyes upon her.
"That's what we get for rifling our neighbour's
pockets," he said quietly, "and what we deserve."
"No," she returned with equal gravity,
"sometimes we get apples - or even peanuts, which
we don't deserve."
He took no notice of the retort, but answered
half-absently a former question.
"Yes; I used that long ago," he said. "You don't
think I would write your name 'Genia' now, do
you?"
There was a dignity in his assumption of
indifference - in his absolute refusal to betray
himself, which bore upon her conception of his
manhood. There was strength in his face, strength
in his voice, strength in his quiet hand that lay upon
her bridle. She looked down on him with thoughtful
eyes.
"If you wrote of me at all," she returned. "It is
my name."
"But I am not to call you by it."
"Why not?"
"Why not?" He laughed with a touch of
bitterness, and held out his hand, fresh from the soil,
hardened by the plough. It was a powerful hand,
brown and sinewy, with distorted knuckles and
broken nails. "Oh, not that," he said. "I don't mean
that. That shows work, but I know you - Genia -
you will tell me work is manly. So it is, but is
ignorance and poverty and - and all the rest -"
She leaned over and touched his hand lightly with
her own. "All the rest is courage and patience and
pride," she said; "as for the hand, it is a good hand,
and I like it."
He shook his head.
"Good enough in its place, I grant you," he
answered; "good enough in the fields, at the plough,
or in the barnyard - good enough even to keep this
poor farm from collapse and to lift a few of its
burdens - but not good enough to -"
He raised her hand lightly, regarding it with
half-humorous eyes.
"How strong it is to be so light!" he added.
"Strong enough to hold fast to its friends,"
returned Eugenia gravely.
He let it fall and looked into her face.
"May its friends be worthy ones," he said.
She rode slowly through the wood, and he walked
with his hand on her bridle. The bright branches
struck them as they passed, and sometimes he
stopped to hold them aside for her. His eyes followed
her as she rode serenely above him, and he
thought, in his folly, of the lady in the old romance
who was, to the desire of her lovers, as "a distant
flame, a sword afar off."
"It was here that you told me good-bye when
you went off to school," he said recklessly.
"Was it?" she asked. "I was very miserable that
day and you gave me no comfort. You didn't even
come down to the road next morning to see me go
by."
"Yes, I know," he admitted.
"I thought you were asleep, and I was angry."
"No, I was not asleep. I was at work."
"But you might have come."
"Yes, I might have come," he repeated absently,
and quickly corrected himself. "No, I mean I
couldn't come, of course. If you were to go away to-morrow,
I couldn't come. Something would rise and
prevent. I have a presentiment that I shall never say
good-bye to you."
She dissented. "I've a feeling that I shall say
'God speed' to you when you go off to become a great man."
"A great man? Do you mean a rich man?" he
asked quickly.
"Oh, dear, yes," she mocked; "a great, gouty gentleman,
who owns a couple of railroads and wears an electric
light in his shirt-front."
His lips laughed, but his eyes were grave.
"And when I came back to you with such
trophies," he objected, "you would tell me that the
railroads belonged to the people and that the
electric light only served to illuminate my ugliness."
"And I should take it to wear on my forehead,"
she added. "What prophetic insight!"
"But 'going off' does not always mean railroads
and electric light," he went on half seriously.
"Suppose I came back poor, but honest, as they say?"
Laughter rippled on her lips. He watched the
humorous tremor of her nostrils.
"Then I should probably kill the fatted chicken
for you," she said.
There was a touch of bitterness in his answer.
"Only in that case I should stay away." As he spoke
he stopped to break off a drooping branch from a
sweet-gum tree that grew near the road.
"You once called this your colour," he said
quietly as he fastened the leaves on her horse's
head. " here is no tree that turns so clear and so
fiery."
Then, as she rode on with the branch waving like
a banner before her, he laughed with a keen delight
in the savage brilliance.
"You remind me of- who is it?" he asked -
"
'Clear as the sun and terrible as an army with
banners.' "
Her smile was warm upon him.
"But my banners fall before the wind," she said
as several loosened leaves fluttered to the road.
"So I am not terrible, after all." The glow of the
gum-tree was in her face. His eyes fell before it, and he
did not speak. The soft footfalls of the horse on the
damp ground sounded distinctly. Overhead the wind
rustled among the trees.
As they emerged from the wood and passed the
Burr farm they saw Amos leaning on his gate,
looking moodily upon the morning.
"Good-morning, Mr. Burr!" said Eugenia with
the pleasant condescension of the general in her
manner. "Fine weather, isn't it?"
He nodded awkwardly and admitted, with a
muttered reservation, that the weather might be
worse. Then he looked at Nicholas. "If you ain't got
nothin' better to do I reckon you might lend a hand
at the ploughin'," he surlily suggested.
"Why, so I might," assented Nicholas
good-humouredly. "I've a couple of hours free."
He fastened more securely the branch in the
horse's bridle; then, raising his hat, he turned and
vaulted the whitewashed fence, while Eugenia,
touching her horse into a gallop, vanished in the
distance of the open road, blazing her track with
scarlet gum leaves that scattered royally in the
wind.
As Nicholas passed the peanut field he nodded
pleasantly to the congregation of negroes assembled
for the annual festival called "a picking." They
ranged in degrees from Uncle Ish, the oldest
representative of his race, to Betsey's five-year-old
Jeremiah, who had already been detected in an
attempt to filch the nuts from an overturned shock,
and was being soundly admonished by his mother's
avenging palm. The ground was strewn with baskets
and buckets of varying dimensions, into which the
nuts were gathered before being consigned to the
huge hamper guarded by Amos Burr. A hoarse
clamour, like that produced by a flock of crows,
went up from the animated swarm as it settled to
work.
Nicholas crossed to the adjoining field and
ploughed deep furrows in the soil, going into
breakfast with the smell of the warm earth about him and
the glow of exercise in his blood. He ate heartily
and listened without remark to the political vagaries
of his father. Amos Burr had been "looking into
politics" of late, and his stubborn wits had been
fixed by a grievance. "If he was a fool befo' now
he's a plum fool now," Marthy Burr had observed
dispassionately. "I ain't never seen no head so level
that it could bear the lettin' in of politics. It makes a
fool of a man and a worse fool of a fool. The
government's like a mule, it's slow and it's sure; it's
slow to turn, and it's sure to turn the way you don't
want it."
"I tell you it's done promised to help the farmer,"
put in Amos heavily, bringing his large red hand
down upon the table. "Ain't it been helpin' the
manufacturer all these years? Ain't it been lookin'
arter the labourer, black an' white? Ain't it time for
it to keep its word to the farmer?"
"In the meantime I'd finish that piece of
ploughing, if I were you," suggested Nicholas. "The
more work in the fall the less in the spring - that's a
proverb for you."
"I don't want no proverb," returned Amos
sullenly. "I want my rights, an' I want the country
to give 'em to me."
"I ain't never seen no good come of settin' down
an' wishin' for rights," remarked his wife tartly. "It's
a sight better to be up an' plantin'."
Nicholas finished his breakfast, and a little later
walked in to town. He was in exuberant spirits and
his thoughts were high on the scaffolding where his
future was building. Success and Eugenia startled,
allured, delighted him. He was at the age
of sublime self-confidence, but his eyes were not
bandaged by it. He knew that without success -
such success as he dreamed of - there could be, for
him, no Eugenia. He believed in her as he believed in
the sun, and yet he was not sure of her - he could
not be until he possessed her and she bore his name.
That she might not love him he admitted; that she
might even love another he saw to be dimly possible;
but he was determined that so long as no other man
held her his arms should be open. In the first ardour
of his mood his relative position to that society of
which she formed a part was lost sight of, if not
obscured. Now he realised bitterly that he might
work for a lifetime in the class in which he was
born, and at the end still find Eugenia far from him.
He must rise above his work and his people, he must
cut his old name anew, he must walk rough-shod
where his mind led him - among men who were his
superiors only in the accident of a better birthright.
And if on that higher plane his ambitions did not
betray, he would bring honour to his State and to
Eugenia.
Here the two loves of the boy and the man stood
out boldly. The old romantic fervour with which he
had longed for the days of Marshall and Madison, of
Jefferson and Henry, still lingered on as an exotic
patriotism in an era of time-servers and unprofitable
servants. There was an old-fashioned democracy
about him - a pioneer simplicity - as one who had
walked from the great days of Virginia into her
lesser ones. A century ago he might have left his
plough to fight, and, having fought, might have
returned thereto; but the battle would have tingled in
his blood and the furrows have gone crooked. He
would have ploughed, not for love of the plough, but
because the time for the sowing of the grain had
come.
Now he walked rapidly to his work, seeing
Eugenia in the woods, in the sunshine, in the very
clouds lifted high above. The thought of her
surrounded him as an atmosphere.
As for the girl, she rode home and spent the long
day in the garden potting plants for the winter.
When she came into the hall in the early afternoon,
with her trowel in her hand and her sleeves rolled
back from her white arms, her father called her to
the porch, and, going out, she found Dudley Webb in
one of the cane chairs. He sprang to his feet as she
reached the threshold, and held out his hand, but she
laughed and showed the earth that clung to her
wrists. "Unclean! unclean!" she cried gaily. Her
face had flushed from its warm pallor and her hair
hung low upon her forehead. A long streak of clay
lay across her skirt where she had knelt in the
flower-bed.
He seized her protesting hand, admiration lighting
his eyes. "Why, little Eugie is a woman!" he
exclaimed. "Can you grasp it, General?"
The general shook his head.
"If she wasn't almost as tall as I, I shouldn't
believe it," he declared, "though she's as old as her
mother was when I married her."
Eugenia seated herself upon the bench, still
holding the trowel in her hand. She was watching
the interest in her father's face, and she realised,
half resentfully, that it was evoked by Dudley
Webb.
He had drawn the general's favourite anecdotes
from him, and they had plunged together into a
discussion of the good old days. After a few
light words she sat silent, listening with tender
attention to the threadbare stories on the one side
and the hearty applause of them on the other. She
wondered wistfully why Dudley and herself were
the only persons who understood as well as loved
the general. Why was it Dudley, and not Nicholas,
who brought that youthful look to his face and the
heartiness to his voice?
"Some one was telling me the other day - I think
it was Colonel Preston - that he fought beside you
at Seven Pines," Dudley was saying with that
absorption in his subject which won him a friend in
every man who told him a joke.
"Jake Preston!" exclaimed the general. "Why,
bless my soul! I've slept under the same blanket
with Jake Preston twenty times. I was standing by
him when he got that bullet in his thigh. Did he tell
you?"
Eugenia rose in a moment and went back to her
flowers. As she passed she threw a grateful glance
at Dudley, but when she reached the garden it was
of Nicholas she was thinking. There was a glow at
her heart that kept alive the memory of his eyes as
he looked at her in the wood, of his voice when he
called her name, of his hand when it brushed her
own.
She fell happily to work, and when Dudley came
out, an hour later, to find her, she was singing softly
as she uprooted a scarlet geranium.
He smiled and looked down on her with frank
enjoyment of her ripening womanhood, but it did not
occur to him to join in the transplanting as Nicholas
would have done. He held off and absorbed the
picture.
"You do papa so much good!" said Eugenia
gratefully. "I hope you will come out whenever you
are in Kingsborough."
She was kneeling upon the ground, her hands
buried in the flower-bed, her firm arms rising white
above the rich earth. The line of her bosom rose
and fell swiftly, and her breath came in soft pants.
There was a flush in her cheeks.
"If you wish it I will come," he answered impulsively.
"I will come to Kingsborough every week if you wish it."
His temperament responded promptly to the
appeal of her beauty, and his blood quickened as it
did when women moved him. There was about him,
withal, a fantastic chivalry which succumbed to the
glitter of false sentiment. He would have made the
remark had Eugenia been plain - but he would not
have come to Kingsborough.
"It would please your mother," returned the girl
quietly. She had the sexual self-poise of the Virginia
woman, and she weighed the implied compliment at
its due value. Had he declared he would die for her
once a week, she would have received the
assurance with much the same smiling indifference.
"I'll run down, I think, pretty often this winter,"
he went on easily. "It's a nice old town, after all -
isn't it?"
"It's the dearest old town in the world," said
Eugenia.
"Well, I believe it is - strange, I used to find it
dull, don't you think? By the way, will you let me
ride with you sometimes? I hear you are as great
a horsewoman as ever."
Eugenia looked up calmly.
"I go very early," she answered. "Can you get
up at daybreak?"
He laughed his pleasant laugh.
"Oh, I might manage it," he rejoined. "I'm not
much of an early riser, I never knew before what
charms the sunrise held."
But Eugenia went on potting plants.
During the following week Sally Burwell came to
spend the night with Eugenia, and the girls sat
before the log fire in Eugenia's room until they
heard the cocks crow shrilly from the hen-house.
The room was a large, old-fashioned chamber, full
of dark corners and unsuspected alcoves; and the
lamp on the bureau served only to intensify the
shadows that lay beyond its faint illumination.
Sally, her pretty hair in a tumble on her shoulders
and the light of the logs on her bare arms, was
stretched upon the hearth-rug, looking up at
Eugenia, who lay in an easy-chair, her feet almost
touching the embers. A waiter of russet apples was
on the floor beside them.
"This is my idea of comfort," murmured Sally
sleepily as she munched an apple. "No men and no
manners."
"If you liked it, you'd come often, chick,"
returned Eugenia.
"Bless you! I'm too busy. I made over two
dresses this week, trimmed mamma a bonnet, and
covered a sofa with cretonne. One of the dresses is
a love. I wore it yesterday, and Dudley said it
reminded him of one he'd seen on the stage."
"He says a good deal," observed Eugenia
unsympathetically.
"Doesn't he?" laughed Sally. "At any rate, he
said that he found you reading Plato under the trees,
and that any woman who read Plato ought to be
ostracised - unless she happens to be handsome
enough to make you overlook it. Is that your Plato?
What is he like?"
Eugenia savagely shook her head.
"It's no affair of his," she retorted promptly,
meaning not Plato, but Dudley.
"Oh! he said he knew it wasn't. I think he even
wished it were. You're too unconventional for him
- he frankly admits it - but he admits also that
you're good-looking enough to warrant the
unconventionality of a Hottentot - and you are, you
dear, bad thing, though your forehead's too high and
your chin's too long and your nose isn't all that a
nose should be."
"Thanks," drawled Eugenia amicably. "But
Dudley's a nice fellow, all the same. He gets on
splendidly with papa - and I bless him for it."
"He gets on well with everybody - even his
mother - which makes me suspect that he's a Job
masquerading as an Apollo. By the way, Mrs.
Webb wants you to join some society she's getting
up called the 'Daughters of Duty.' "
"Oh, I can't! I can't!" protested Eugenia
distressfully. "I detest 'Daughter' things, and I
have a rooted aversion to my duty. But if she
comes to me I'll join it - I know I shall! How did
you keep out of it?"
"I didn't. I'm in it. It seems that our duty is
confined to 'preserving the antiquities' of
Kingsborough - so I began by presenting a jar of
pickled cucumbers to Uncle Ish. I trust they won't be the
death of him, but he was the only antiquity in
sight."
She gave the smouldering log a push with her
foot, and it broke apart, scattering a shower of
sparks. "I don't know any other woman so much
admired and so little loved," she mused of Mrs.
Webb.
"Papa worships her," said Eugenia. "All men
do - at a distance. She's the kind of woman you
never get near enough to to feel that she is flesh.
Now, Aunt Chris is just the opposite. No one ever
gets far enough away from her to feel that she's a
saint - which she is."
"It's odd she never married," wondered Sally.
"She never had time to." Eugenia clasped her
hands behind her head and looked up at the high,
plastered ceiling. "She never happened to be in a
place where she could be spared. But you know her
lover died when she was young," she added. "It
broke her heart, but it did not destroy her happiness.
She has been happy for forty years with a broken
heart."
"I know," said Sally. "It seems strange, doesn't
it? But I've known so many like her. The happiest
woman I ever knew had lost everything she cared
for in the war. That war was fought on women's
hearts, but they went on beating just the same. I'm
glad I wasn't I then."
"And I'm sorry. I like stirring deeds and shot and
shell and tattered flags. They thrill one."
"And kill one," added Sally. "But you've got that
kind of pluck. You aren't afraid."
"Oh! yes, I am," protested Eugenia. "I'm
afraid of bats and of getting fat like my forefathers."
Sally shook a reassuring head.
"But you won't, darling. Your mother was thin,
and you're the image of her - everybody says so."
"But I'm afraid - horribly afraid. I don't dare eat
potatoes, and I wouldn't so much as look at a glass
of buttermilk. The fear is on me."
"It's absurd. Why, your grandma Tucker was a
rail - I remember her. I know your other
grandmother was - enormous; but you ought to
strike the happy medium - and you do. You're
splendid. You aren't a bit too large for your height."
Eugenia laughed as she twisted Sally's curls about
her fingers. "You're the dearest little duck that ever
lived on dry land," she said. "If I were a man I'd be
wild about you."
"A few of them are," returned Sally meekly,
casting up her eyes, "but I -"
"How about Gerald Smith?"
"He's too tall. I look like an aspiring grasshopper
beside him."
"And Jack Wyth?"
"He's too short."
"And Sydney Kent?"
"He's too stupid."
"And Tom Bassett?"
Sally yawned.
"He's too - everything. There's cock crow, and
I'm going to bed."
The next afternoon Eugenia drove Sally in to
town, and stopped on her outward trip to pay a visit
to Mrs. Webb. She found that lady serenely seated
in her drawing-room, as unruffled as if she had not
just dismissed a cook and cooked a dinner.
"Oh, yes, thank you, dear, all is well," she replied
in answer to the girl's question; for she held it to be
vulgarity to allude, in her drawing-room, to the trials
of housekeeping. She was not touched by such
questions because she ignored that she was in any
way concerned in them. She spent six hours a day
with her servants, but had she spent twenty-four she
would have remained secure in her conviction that
they did not come within the sphere of her life.
"I have wanted to see you to ask you to join my
society, the 'Daughters of Duty,' " she went on, her
eyes on a piece of fine white damask she was
hemstitching. "Its object is to preserve our old
landmarks, and when I spoke to your father he told
me he was quite sure you would care to become an
active member."
"I'm afraid I don't have much time," began
Eugenia helplessly, when Mrs. Webb interrupted
her, though without haste or discourtesy.
"Not have time, my dear?" she repeated with
her slow, fine smile. "If I can find time, with all my
other duties, don't you think that you might be able
to do so?"
Eugenia was baffled. "Of course I love
Kingsborough," she said, "and I'd preserve every
inch of it with my own hands if I could - but I can't
bear meetings - and - and things."
Mrs. Webb took a careful stitch in the damask.
"I thought you might care enough to assist us," she
remarked tentatively; and Eugenia succumbed.
"I'll do anything I can," she declared. "I will,
indeed - only you mustn't expect much."
In a few moments she rose to go, lingering with a
courteous appearance of being unwilling to depart,
which belonged to her social training. As she stood
in the doorway, her hand in Mrs. Webb's, the older
woman looked at her almost affectionately.
"I had a letter from Dudley this morning," she
said. "He is coming down next week for Sunday."
A flush crossed Eugenia's face, evoking an
expression of irritation.
"You must miss him," she observed
sympathetically.
"I do miss him, but he comes often. He is a good
son. He sent a message to you, by the way, but it
was not important."
"No, it was not important," repeated Eugenia
with a feeling that her carelessness appeared to be
assumed.
She lightly kissed Mrs. Webb and ran down the
steps and into the carriage, which was waiting in the
road. Her visit had left her with a curious sense of
oppression, and she breathed a long draught of the
invigorating air.
As she drove down the street she saw Nicholas
coming out of his office and offered him a "lift" to
his home. He said little on the way, and his
utterances were forced, but Eugenia talked lightly
and rapidly, as she always did when with him.
She told him of Sally Burwell, of the last letter
from Bernard - who was coming home soon - of
Mrs. Webb and the "Daughters of Duty."
"The truth is, I like her, but I'm afraid of
her dreadfully."
"She disapproves of your - your liking for me,"
he said bitterly. "But every one does that - even
the judge, though he doesn't say anything. And they
are right - I see it. You know from what I came
and what I am."
"Yes, I know what you are," she returned
defiantly, "and they shall all know some day."
He turned and looked at her as she sat beside
him, but he was silent, nor did he speak until he said
"good-bye" before his father's gate.
It was some days later that she saw him again.
She had gone out to gather goldenrod for the great
blue vases that stood on the dining-room
mantelpiece, and was standing knee-deep in the
ragged field, when he leaped the fence that divided
the farms and crossed to where she stood.
The sun was going down behind the blackened
branches of the dead oak, and the wide common,
spread with goldenrod and life-everlasting, lay like a
sea of flame and snow. Eugenia, standing in its
midst, a tall woman in a dress of brown, fell in richly
with the surrounding colours. Her arms were filled
with the yellow plumes and her dress was tinselled
with the dried pollen that floated in the air. As
Nicholas reached her she was seeking to free
herself from the clutch of a crimson briar that
crawled along the ground, and in the effort some of
the broken stalks slipped from her hold.
Without speaking, he knelt beside her and
released her skirt. "You have torn it," he said
quietly, but he was looking up at her, and there was
a quality in his voice which thrilled her.
"Have I?" she returned quickly. "Well, I can
mend it - but there! it's caught again. I've been
trying to get free for - hours."
He smiled.
"You came into the field only twenty minutes
ago. I saw you. But, hold on. I'll uproot this
blackberry vine while I'm about it."
He tore it from its tenacious hold to the earth and
flung it into the field. Then he examined the rent in
Eugenia's dress.
"If you had waited until I came you might have
spared yourself this - patch," he observed.
"I shan't patch it - and I didn't know you were
coming."
"Don't I always come - when there's a patch to
be saved?" he asked. "I hate to see things ruined."
"Then you might have come sooner. There, give
me my goldenrod. It's all scattered."
He began patiently to gather up the stalks,
arranging them in an even layer of equal lengths.
Eugenia watched him, laughing.
"How precise you are!" she said.
"Aren't they right?" He looked up for her
approval, and she saw that he had grown singularly
boyish. His face was less rugged, more sensitive.
He wore no hat, and his thick red hair had fallen
across his forehead. She felt the peculiar power of
his look as she had felt it before.
"No, they're wrong. They aren't Chinese
puzzles. Don't fix them so tight. Here."
She took them from him, and as his hands touched
hers she noticed that they were cold. "You're
shaking them all apart," he protested, "and I
took such a lot of trouble."
As she bent her head his eyes followed the dark
coil of hair to the white nape of her neck where her
collar rose. Several loose strands had blown across
her ear and wound softly about the delicate lobe.
He wanted to raise his hand and put them in place,
but he checked himself with a start. With his eyes
upon her he recalled the warmth of her woollen
dress, and he wished that he had put his lips to it as
he knelt. She would never have known.
Then, by a curious emotional phenomenon, she
seemed to be suddenly invested with the glory of the
sunset. The goldenrod burned at her feet and on her
bosom, and her fervent blood leaped to her face.
The next moment he staggered like a man
blinded by too much light - the field, with Eugenia
rising in its midst, flamed before his eyes, and he
put out his hand like one in pain.
"What is it?" she asked quickly, and her voice
seemed a part of the general radiance. "You have
been looking at the sun. It hurts my eyes."
"No," he answered steadily, "I was looking at
you."
She thrilled as he spoke and brought her eyes to
the level of his. Then she would have looked away,
but his gaze held her, and she made a sudden
movement of alarm - a swift tremor to escape. She
held the sheaf of goldenrod to her bosom and above
it her eyes shone; her breath came quickly between
her parted lips. All her changeful beauty was
startled into life.
"Genia!" he said softly, so softly that he seemed
speaking to himself. "Genia!"
"Yes?" She responded in the same still whisper.
"You know?"
"Yes, I know," she repeated slowly. Her glance
fell from his and she turned away.
"You know it is - impossible," he said.
"Yes, I know it is impossible."
There was a gasp in her voice. She turned to
move onward - a briar caught her dress; she
stumbled for an instant, and he flung out his arms.
"You know it is impossible," he said, and kissed
her.
The sheaf of goldenrod loosened and scattered
between them. Her head lay on his arm, and he felt
her warm breath come and go. Her face was
upturned, and he saw her eyes as he had never
seen them before - light on light, shadow on
shadow. He looked at her in the brief instant as a
man looks to remember - at the white brow - the
red mouth, at the blue veins, and the dark hair, at
the upward lift of the chin and the straight
throat - at all the perfect colouring and the
imperfect outline.
"You know it is impossible," he repeated, and put
her from him.
Eugenia gathered herself together like one
stunned. "I must go," she said breathlessly. "I must
go."
Then she hesitated and stood before him, her
hands on her bosom, a single spray of goldenrod
clinging to her dress.
He folded his arms as he faced her.
"I have loved you all my life," he said.
She bowed her head; her face had gone white.
"I shall always love you," he went on. "You may
as well know it. Men change, but I do not. I have
never really loved anybody else. I have tried to love
my family, but I never did. When I was a little, God-forsaken
chap I used to want to love people, but I
couldn't - I couldn't even love the judge - whom I
would die for. I love you."
"I know it," she said.
"If you will wait I will work for you. I will work
until they let me have you. I don't mean that I shall
ever be good enough for you - because I shall not
be. I shall always be a brute beside you - but if you
will wait I will win you. I swear it!"
She had not moved. She was as still as the dead
oak that towered above them. The sunset struck
upon her bowed head and upon the quiet bosom,
where her hands were clasped.
"I will wait," she answered.
He came nearer and kissed the hands upon her
breast. His face was flushed and his lips were hot.
"Thank you," he said simply as he drew back.
In a moment he stooped to pick up the scattered
goldenrod, heaping it into her arms. "This is enough
to fill the house," he protested. "You can't want so
much."
He had regained his rational tone, and she
responded to it with a smile.
"I never know when I'm satisfied," she said. "It
is my weakness. As a child I always ate candy until
it made me ill."
They crossed the field, the long plumes brushing
against them and powdering them with a feathery
gold dust. At the fence she gave him the bunch and
lightly swung herself over the sunken rails. It did not
occur to him to assist her; she had always been as
good as he at vaulting bars. Now her long skirts
retarded her, and she laughed as she came quickly
to the ground on the opposite side.
"One of the many disadvantages of my sex," she
said. "The best prisons men ever invented are
women's skirts. Our wings are clipped while we
wear them."
"It is hard," he returned as he recalled her
schoolgirl feats. "You were such a mighty jumper."
"Those halcyon days are done," she sighed. "I
can never stray beyond my 'sphere' again."
They had reached the end of the avenue, so he
left her and went homeward along the road. The
sun had gone slowly down and the western horizon
was ripped open in a deep red track. The charred
skeleton of the oak loomed black and sinister against
the afterglow, and at its feet the glory went out of
the autumn field. Straight ahead the sound of shots
rang out where a flock of bats circled above the
road. On the darkening landscape the lights began to
glimmer in farmhouses far apart, and to Nicholas
they seemed watchful, friendly eyes that looked
upon him. All Nature was watchful - all the
universe friendly. The glow which irradiated his
outlook with an abrupt transfiguration was to him
the glow of universal joy, though he knew it to be
but the vanishing beam of youth and the end
thereof age.
It seemed to him that he was singled
out - securely set apart by some beneficent hand for some
supreme good which, in his limited observation, he
had never seen put forth in the lots of others. His
own life lay so much nearer the Divine purpose than
did the lives of his neighbours - the purpose of
Nature, whose end is the happiness that conforms
to sane and immutable laws. His kiss on Eugenia's
lips was to him God-given; the answer in her eyes
had flamed a Scriptural inspiration. In the
tumultuous leaping of his thoughts it seemed to him
that the meaning of existence lay unrolled - a
meaning obscured in all religions, overlooked in all
philosophies - a meaning that could be read only by
the lamp that was lit in the eyes that loved.
So in his ignorance and his ecstasy he went on his
confident way, while passion throbbed in his pulses
and youth quickened in his brain.
From the far-off pines twilight came to meet him,
the lights glimmered clearer in distant windows, the
afterglow drifted from the west, and the shots
ceased where the black bats circled above the road.
Eugenia arranged the goldenrod in the great blue
vases and sat in the deserted dining-room thinking
of Nicholas. Where the damask curtains were
drawn back from the windows a gray line of twilight
landscape was visible, and a chill, transparent dusk
filled the large room. Outside she would see the box-walk,
a stretch of lawn, broken by flower-beds, and
the avenue of cedars leading to the highway. From
the porch floated the smoke of the general's pipe.
Her brow was on her hand and she sat so
motionless that the place seemed deserted, save for
an errant firefly that vainly palpitated in the gloom.
The glow that had flamed beneath Nicholas's kiss
still lingered in her face, and she was conscious of a
faint, almost hysterical impulse to weep. The fever
in her veins had given place to a still tremor which
ran through her limbs. At first she felt rather than
thought. She lapsed into an emotional reverie as
delicate as the fragrance of the October roses on
the table. There was a sensation of softness as
when one lies full length in sunshine or is caressed
by firelight. She felt it pervade her body even to the
palms of her hands. Then her quick mind stirred,
and she recalled the pressure of his arms, the light
in his eyes, the quiver of his lips as they touched her
hands. His strength had dominated her and it still
held her - the firm note in the voice that trembled,
the power in the hand that appealed, the almost
savage vigour in the arms that he folded on his
breast. She had succumbed less to his gentleness
than to the knowledge that it was she alone who
evoked that gentleness out of a nature almost
adamantine, wholly masculine. His faults she knew
to be the faults of one who had hewn his own road
in life - a rugged surface - a strain of rigidity
beneath - at worst a tendency to dogmatise - and
knowing as she did her own control over them, they
attracted rather than repelled her.
And yet in this pulsating recognition of his
manhood there was mingled with an emotion
half-maternal the memory of her own guardianship
of his stunted childhood. To a woman at once rashly
spirited and profoundly feminine the pathos of his
boyish struggle appealed no less forcibly than did
the virility of his manhood. She might have loved
him less had her thought of him been untouched by
pity.
She sat quietly in the twilight until Congo brought
in the lamp and a prospect of supper. Then she rose
and went to join her father on the porch.
"Why did you tell Mrs. Webb I would be a 'Daughter,'
papa?" she gaily demanded.
The general took his pipe from his mouth and
stared up at her.
"It's a good cause, Eugie," he replied, "and she's
a remarkable woman. Her executive ability is
astounding - absolutely astounding."
"I joined," said Eugenia. "I had to, after you said
that. You know, I called on her the day I took Sally
in."
The general lowered his eyes and thoughtfully
regarded the light that was going gray in his pipe.
"Did she happen to say anything
about - Dudley?" he inquired.
"Oh, yes. She said he sent me a message in a
letter."
"Did she tell you what 'twas?"
"No. I didn't ask her."
He put the stem of his pipe between his teeth and
hung on it desperately for a moment; then he took it
out again.
"He's a fine young fellow," he said at last. "I
don't know a finer - and, bless my soul! I'd see you
married to him to-morrow."
But Eugenia laughed and beat his shoulder.
"You don't want to see me married to anybody,"
she said, "and you know it."
At the end of the ensuing week Dudley came to
Kingsborough, and upon the first evening of his visit
he walked out to Battle Hall. He was looking
smooth and well groomed, and the mass of his thick
dark hair waving over his white brow gave him an
air of earnestness and ardour. Eugenia wondered
that she had never noticed before that he was like
the portrait of an old-time orator, and that his hands
were finely rounded.
His voice, with its suggestion of suavity, fell
soothingly on her nerves. She had never liked him
so much, and she had never shown it so plainly.
Once as she met his genial gaze she held her breath
at the marvel that he should grow to love her, and in
vain. Was it that beside his splendid shallows
the more luminous depths of Nicholas's nature
still showed supreme? Or was it a question of fate
- and of first and last? Had Dudley come upon her
in the red sunset, in the little shanty beside the road,
would she have gone out to him in the mere leaping
of youth and womanhood? Or was it something more
unerring still - more profound - the prophetic call of individual to
individual, despite the specious pleading of the race?
But she put the thought aside and returned
casually to Dudley.
His heartiness was a tonic, and her vanity
responded to the unaffected admiration in his eyes;
but his chief claim to her regard lay in the fact that
it was the general, and not herself, whom he
endeavoured to propitiate.
"Well, my dear General!" he exclaimed cordially
as he threw himself upon the worn horsehair sofa in
what was called the "sitting-room," "I find your
story about the fighting Texans capped by one
Major Mason was telling me last night about the
North Carolinians -" He got no farther.
"I've fought side by side with North Carolina
regiments, and I tell you, sir, they're the best fighters
God ever made!" cried the general. "Did you ever
hear that story about 'em when I was wounded?"
Dudley shook his head and leaned forward, his
hands clasped between his knees and an expression
of flattering absorption on his face.
"I can't recall it now, sir," he delightfully lied.
The general cleared his throat, laid his pipe aside,
and drew up his chair.
"It was in my last battle," he began. "You know
I got that ball in my shoulder and was laid up when
Lee surrendered - well, sir, I was propped up there
close by a company of those raw-boned
mountaineers from North Carolina, and they stood
as still as the pine wood behind 'em, while their
colonel swore at 'em like mad.
" 'Damn you for a troop of babies!' he yelled.
'Ain't you goin' into the fight? Can't you lick a
blamed Yankee?' And, bless your soul! those
scraggy fellows stood stock still and sung out:
" 'We ain't mad!'
"Well, sir, they'd no sooner yelled that back than
a bullet whizzed along and took off one of their own
men, and, on my oath, the bullet hadn't ceased
singing in my ears before that company charged the
enemy to a man - and whipped 'em, too, sir -
whipped 'em clean off the field!"
He paused, clapped his knee, and roared.
"That's your North Carolinian," he said. "He's a
God Almighty fighter, but you've got to make him
mad first."
Miss Chris brought her knitting to the lamp, and
Eugenia, sitting with her hands in her lap, followed
the conversation with abstracted interest.
It was not until Dudley rose to go that he came
over to her and took her hand.
"Good-night," he said, his ardent eyes upon her.
"I'm to have that ride to-morrow? You know I came
for it."
The unreasoning blood beat in her face as she
turned away, and she was conscious that he had
seen and misconstrued the senseless blush. It was
her misfortune to go red or pale without cause and to
show an impassive face above deep emotion.
The next morning she rode with Dudley, and the day
after he came out before returning to Richmond. She
experienced a certain pleasure in the contact with his
bouyant optimism, but it was not without a sensation of
relief that she watched him depart after his last visit. It
seemed to leave her more to herself - and to Nicholas.
That afternoon she walked with him far across the
fields, and they laid together phantasmal foundations of
their future lives. Perhaps the chief thing to be said of
their intercourse was that it was to each a mental
stimulant as well as an emotional delight. Eugenia's quick,
untutored mind, which had run to seed like an
uncultivated garden, blossomed from contact with his
practical, unpolished intellect. He taught her logic and a
little law; she taught him poetry and passion. He argued
his cases to her and swept her back into the days of his
old political dreams - dreams from which he had
awakened, but which still hovered as memories in his
waking hours. Sometimes he brought his books to Battle
Hall, and they read together beneath the general's unseeing
eyes; but more often they sat side by side in the pasture or
the wood, the volume lying open between them. He was
the first man who had ever spurred her into thought; she
was the first woman he had ever loved.
As they walked across the fields this afternoon they
drifted back to the question of themselves and their own
happiness. It was only a matter of waiting, she said, of
the patient passage of time; and
they were so sure of each other that all else was
unimportant - to be disregarded.
"But am I sure of you?" he demanded.
It was not a personal distrust of Eugenia that he
voiced; it was the hardened state of disbelief in his own
happiness which showed itself when the first intoxication
of passion was lived out.
"Why, of course you are," she readily rejoined. "Am I
not sure of you? You are as much mine as my eyes - or
my hand."
"Oh, I am different!" he exclaimed. "A beggar doesn't
prove faithless to a princess - but what do you see in
me, after all?"
She laughed. "I see a very moody lover."
They had reached a little deserted spring in the
pasture called "Poplar Spring," after the six great poplars
which grew beside it. Eugenia seated herself on a fallen
log beside the tiny stream which trickled over the
smooth, round stones, bearing away, like miniature floats,
the yellow leaves that fell ceaselessly from the huge
branches above.
"I don't believe you know how I love you," he said
suddenly.
"Tell me," she insatiably demanded.
"If I could tell you I shouldn't love you as I do. There
are some things one can't talk about - but you are life
itself - and you are all heaven and all hell to me."
"I don't want to be hellish," she put in provokingly.
"But you are - when I think you may slip from me,
after all."
The yellow leaves fluttered over them - over the
fallen log and over the bright green moss beside the
little spring. As Eugenia turned towards him, a single
leaf fell from her hair to the ground.
"Oh! You are thinking of Dudley Webb!" she
said, and laughed because jealousy was her own
darling sin.
"Yes, I am thinking -" he began, when she
stopped him.
"Well, you needn't. You may just stop at once.
I - love - you - Nick - Burr. Say it after me."
He shook his head. Her hand lay on the log
beside him, and his own closed over it. As it did so,
she contrasted its hardened palm with the smooth
surface of Dudley Webb's. The contrast touched
her, and, with a swift, warm gesture, she raised the
clasped hands to her cheek.
"I told you once I liked your hand," she said.
"Well - I love it."
He turned upon her a hungry glance.
"I would work it to the bone for you," he
answered. "But - it is long to wait."
"Yes, it is long to wait," she repeated, but her
tone had not the heaviness of his. Waiting in its
wider sense means little to a woman - and in a
moment she cheerfully returned to a prophetic
future.
A few days later Bernard came, and she saw
Nicholas less often. Her affection for her brother,
belonging, as it did, to the dominant family feeling
which possessed her soul, was filled with an almost
maternal solicitude. He absorbed her with a
spasmodic, half selfish, wholly insistent appeal. She
received his confidences, wrote his letters, and tied
his cravats. Upon his last visit home he had spent
the greater part of his time in Kingsborough; now
he rode in seldom, and invariably returned in a
moody and depressed condition.
"You're worth the whole bunch of them," he had
said to her of other girls, "you dear old Eugie."
And she had warmed and laid a faithful hand on
his arm. It was characteristic of her that no call for
affection went disregarded - that the sensitive
fibres of her nature quivered beneath any caressing
hand.
"Do you really like me best?" she asked.
"Don't I?" He laughed his impulsive, boyish
laugh - "I'll prove it by letting you go in for the mail
this afternoon. I detest Kingsborough!"
"Oh! No, no, I love it, but I suppose it is dull for
you."
She ordered the carriage and went upstairs to put
on her hat. When she came down Bernard was not
in sight, and she drove off, wondering why he or
any one else should detest Kingsborough.
She performed her mission at the post-office, and
was mentally weighing the probabilities of Nicholas
having finished work for the day, when, in passing
along the main street, she saw him come to the door
of his office with a round, rosy girl, whom she
recognised as Bessie Pollard.
She had intended to take him out with her, but as
she caught sight of his visitor she gave them both a
condescending nod and ordered Sampson to drive
on. She felt vaguely offended and sharply irritated
with herself for permitting it. Her annoyance was
not allayed by the fact that Amos Burr stopped her
in the road to inform her that his wife was fattening
a brood of turkeys which she would like to deliver
into the hands of Miss Chris. As he stood before
her, hairy, ominous, uncouth, she realised for the
first time the full horror of the fact that he was
father to the man she loved. Hitherto she had but
dimly grasped the idea. Nicholas had been
associated in her thoughts with the judge and her
earlier school days; and she had conceived of his
poverty and his people only in the heroic measures
that related to his emancipation from them. Now
she felt that had she, in the beginning, seen him side
by side with his father, she could not have loved
him. She flinched from Amos Burr's shaggy exterior
and drew back haughtily.
"I have nothing to do with the housekeeping," she
said. "You may ask Aunt Chris."
He spat a mouthful of tobacco juice into the dust
and fingered the torn brim of his hat.
"I wish you'd jest speak to Miss Chris about
'em," he returned, "an' send me word by Nick." He
gave an awkward lurch on his feet.
The colour flamed in Eugenia's face.
"Aunt Chris will send for the turkeys," she said
hurriedly. "Drive on, Sampson."
She sat splendidly erect, but the autumn
landscape was blurred by a sudden gush of tears.
An hour later she remembered that she had
promised to let Nicholas join her in the pasture, and
she left the house with the grievance still at her
heart.
When she saw him it broke out abruptly.
"I am surprised that you keep up with such
people," she said.
He looked at her blankly.
"If you mean Bessie Pollard," he rejoined, "she
was in trouble and came to me for advice. I couldn't
help her, but I could at least be civil. She was kind
to me when I was in her father's store."
"I do not care to be reminded that you were ever
in such a position."
He flinched, but answered quietly:
"I am afraid you will have to face it," he said. "If
you become my wife, you will, unfortunately, have
to face a good deal that you might escape by
marrying in your own class - I am not in your class,
you know," he slowly added.
She was conscious of a cloudy irritation which
was alien to her usually beaming moods. The figure
of Amos Burr loomed large before her, and she
hated herself for the discovery that she was tracing
his sinister likeness in his son. No, it was only the
hair - that was all, but she loathed the obvious
colour.
Her lip trembled and she set her teeth into it.
"You might at least allow me to forget it," she
retorted.
"Why should you wish to forget it? I think I shall
be proud of it when I have risen far enough
above it to claim you. It is no small thing to be a self-made
man."
She resented the assurance of his tone.
"It is strange that you do not consider my
view of it."
"Your view - what is it?"
"That I do not wish the man I love to - to speak
to that Pollard girl," she gasped.
"Since you wish it, I will avoid her in future. She
is nothing to me; but I can't refuse to speak to her.
You are unreasonable."
She was regarding the hovering shade of Amos
Burr.
"If you think me unreasonable," she returned,
"we may as well -"
He reached her side by a single step and flung his
arm about her. Then he looked into her face and
laughed softly.
"May as well what - dearest?" he asked.
She shook an obstinate head.
"You don't love me," was her inevitable feminine
challenge.
He laughed again. "Do I love you?" he
demanded as he looked at her.
She did not answer, but the shade of Amos Burr
melted afar.
Nicholas bent over her with abrupt intensity and
kissed her lips until his kisses hurt her.
"Do I love you - now?" he asked.
"Yes - yes - yes." She freed herself with a laugh
that dispelled the lingering cloud. "You may
convince me next time without violence," she
affirmed radiantly.
As he watched her his large nostrils twitched
whimsically. "You were saying that we might as
well -"
"Go home to supper," she finished triumphantly.
"The sun has set."
When she left him a little later at the end of the
avenue she flew joyously up the narrow walk. She
was softly humming to herself, and as she stepped
upon the porch the song ran lightly into words.
she sang, and paused within the shadow of the
porch to glance through the long window that led
into the sitting-room. The heavy curtains obstructed
her gaze, and she had put up her hand to push them
aside, when her father's voice reached her, and at
his words her outstretched arm fell slowly to her
side.
"It's that girl of Jerry Pollard's," he was saying.
"She's gotten into trouble, and that Burr boy's mixed
up in it; the young rascal!"
Miss Chris's placid voice floated in.
"I can't believe it," she charitably murmured; and
Bernard, who was on the hearth rug, turned at the
sound.
"It's all gossip, you know," he said.
Eugenia pushed aside the curtains and stepped
into the room. Her hands hung at her sides, and the
animation had faded from her glance. Her face
looked white and drawn.
"It is not true," she said steadily. "Papa, it is not
true."
"I - I'm afraid it is, daughter," gasped the
general. There was an abashed embarrassment in
his attitude and his hands shook. He had hoped to
keep such facts beyond the utmost horizon of his
daughter's life.
Eugenia crossed to the hearth rug and stood looking
into Bernard's face. She made an appealing
gesture with her hands.
"Bernard, it is not true," she said.
He turned away from her and, nervously lifting the
poker, divided the smouldering log. A red flame shot
up, illuminating the gathered faces that stood out
against the dusk. The glare lent a grotesque irony to
the flabby, awe-stricken features of the general,
brightened the boyish ill-humour in Bernard's eyes,
and played peaceably over Miss Chris's tranquil
countenance.
"Bernard, it is not true," she said again.
The poker fell with a clatter to the hearth; and the
noise irritated her. Bernard put out a sudden,
soothing hand.
"It is what they say in Kingsborough," he
answered.
She turned from him to the window, pushed the
curtains aside, and went out again into the sunset.
She ran swiftly along the walk, into the gloom of
the avenue, and out again to the open road. The
sunset colours were flaming in the west, and above
them a solitary star was shining. The fields lay
sombre and deserted on either side, but straight
ahead, in the lighter streak of the road, she saw
Nicholas's figure swinging onward. She might have
called to him, but she did not; she sped like a
shadow in his path until, hearing her footfalls in the
dust, he looked back and halted.
"You!" he exclaimed.
She came up to him, her hand at her throat, her
face turned towards the sunset. For a moment her
breath failed and she could not speak; then all the
words that she had meant to say - the appeal to him
for truth, the cry of her own belief in him - rang
theatrical and ineffectual in her brain.
When at last she spoke, it was to voice the mere
tripping of her tongue - to utter words which belied
the beating of her thoughts.
"You must marry her," she said, and it seemed
to her that it was a stranger who spoke. She did not
mean that - she had never meant it.
He looked at her blankly, and made a sudden
movement forward, but she waved him off.
"For God's sake, whom?" he demanded.
She wished that he had laughed at her - that he
had laid bare the whole hideous farce, but he did
not; he regarded her gravely, with a grim inquiry.
"Whom do you mean?" he repeated.
A light wind sprang up, blowing across the
pasture and whirling the dead leaves of distant trees
into their faces. Overhead other stars came out,
and far away an owl hooted.
"Oh! you know, you know," she said, with a
desperate anger at his immobility. "When I saw
you with her to-day, I did not - I did not -"
"Do you mean Bessie Pollard?" he asked. His
voice was hard; it was characteristic of him that, in
the supreme test, his sense of humour failed him.
He met grave issues with a gravity that upheld them.
She bowed her head. At the same time she flung
out a despairing hand for hope, but he did not notice
it. She was softening to him - if she had ever
steeled herself against him - and a single summons
to her faith would have vanquished the feeble
resistance. But he did not make it - the inflexible
front which she had seen turned to others she now
saw presented to herself. He looked at her with an
austere tightening of the mouth and held off.
"And they have told you that I ruined her," he
said, "and you believe them."
"No - no," she cried; "not that!"
His eyes were on her, but there was no yielding
in them. The arrogant pride of a strong man, plainly
born, was face to face with her appeal. His
features were set with the rigidity of stone.
"Who has told you this?" he demanded.
"Oh, it is not true - it is not true," she answered;
"but Bernard - Bernard believed it - and he is your
friend."
Then his smouldering rage burst forth, and his
face grew black. It was as if an incarnate devil had
leaped into his eyes. He took a step forward.
"Then may God damn him," he said, "for he is
the man!"
She fell from him as if he had struck her. Her
spirit flashed out as his had done. The anger of her
race shot forth.
"Oh, stop! stop! How dare you!" she cried; "for
he tried to shield you - he tried to shield you - he
would shield you if he could."
But he crossed to where she stood and caught
her outstretched hands in a grasp that hurt her. She
winced, and his hold grew gentle; but his voice was
brutal in its passion.
"Be silent," he said, "and listen to me. They have
lied to you, and you have believed them - you I shall
never forgive - you are nothing to me nothing. As
for him - may God, in his mercy, damn him!"
He let her hands drop and went from her into the
silence of the open road.
When the thud of his footsteps was muffled by
the distance Eugenia turned and went back through
the cedar avenue. She walked heavily, and there
was a bruised sensation in her limbs as if she had
hurt herself upon stones. A massive fatigue
oppressed her, and she stumbled once or twice over
the rocks in the road. Her happiness was dead, this
she told herself; telling herself, also, that it had not
perished by anger or by disbelief. The slayer loomed
intangible and
yet inevitable - the shade that had arisen from the
gigantic gulf between separate classes which they
had sought, in ignorance, to abridge. The pride of
Nicholas was not individual, but typical - the pride
of caste, and it was against this that she had sinned
- not in distrusting his honour, but in offending it. It
was in the clash of class, after all, that their theories
had crumbled. He might come back to her
again - she might go forth to meet him - but the
bloom had gone from their dreams - in the reunion
she saw neither permanence nor abiding. The
strongest of her instincts - the one that made for the
blood she bore - had quivered beneath the onslaught
of his accusation, but had not bent. Wherever and
whenever the the struggle came she stood, as the
Battles had always stood, for the clan. Be it right or
wrong, true or false, it was hers and she was on its side.
As she went beneath the great cedars, their long
branches brushed her face, like the remembering
touch of familiar fingers, and she put up her cheek
to them as if they were sentient things. Long ago
they had soothed her as a troubled child, and now
their caresses cooled her fever. Underfoot she felt
the ancient carpet they had spread throughout the
century - and it smoothed the way for her heavy
feet. She was in the state of subjective passiveness
when the consciousness of external objects alone
seems awake. She felt a tenderness for the twisted
box bushes she brushed in passing, a vague pity for
a sickly moth that flew into her face; but for
herself she was without pity or tenderness - she
had not brought her mind to bear upon her own
hurt.
Indoors she found the family at supper. The
general, hearing her step, called her to her seat and
gave her the brownest chicken breast in the dish
before him. Miss Chris offered her the contents of
the cream jug, and Congo plied her with Aunt
Verbeny's lightest waffles; but the food choked her
and she could not eat. A lump rose in her throat,
and she saw the kindly, accustomed faces through a
gathering mist. She regarded each with a certain
intentness, a peculiar feeling that there were hidden
traits in the commonplace features which she had
never seen before - a complexity in the benign
candour of Miss Chris's countenance, in the
overwrought youthfulness of Bernard's, in the
apoplectic credulity of the general's. Familiar as
they were, it seemed to her that there were latent
possibilities - obscure tendencies, which were
revealed to her now with microscopic exaggeration.
The general put his hand to her forehead and
smoothed back the moist hair.
"Ain't you well, daughter?" he asked anxiously.
"Would you like a toddy?"
"It's nothing," said Miss Chris cheerfully. "She's
walked too far, that's all. Eugie, you must go to bed
early."
"I had her out all the morning in the sun," put in
Bernard, with an affectionate nod at Eugenia, "and
she's such a trump she wouldn't give out."
"You must learn to consider your sister," said his
father testily.
"Oh! I liked it, papa," declared Eugenia. "I'm
well and - I'm hungry."
Congo brought more waffles, and she ate one
with grim determination. The alert affection which surrounded
her - which proved sensitive to a change of
colour or a tremor of voice, filled her with a swift
sense of security. She felt a sudden impulse to
draw nearer in the shelter of the race - to cling
more closely to that unswerving instinct which had
united individual to individual and generation to
generation.
As they rose from the table, she slipped her arm
through her father's and went with him into the hall.
"I'm tired," she said, stopping him on his way to
the sitting-room, "so I'll go to bed."
The general held her from him and looked into
her face.
"Anybody been troubling you, Eugie?" he asked.
She shook her head.
"You dear old goose - no!"
He patted her shoulder reassuringly.
"If anybody troubles you, you just let me hear of
it," he said. "They'll find out Tom Battle wasn't at
Appomattox. You've got an old father and he's got
an old sword -"
"And he's hungry for a fight," she gaily finished.
Then she rubbed her cheek against his brown linen
sleeve, which was redolent of tobacco. The firm
physical contact inspired her with the courage of
life; it seemed to make for her a bulwark against
the world and its incoming tribulations.
She threw back her head and looked up into the
puffed and scarlet face where the coarse veins
were congested, her eyes seeing only the love
which transfigured it. She was his pet and his pride,
and she would always be the final reward of his
long life.
As she mounted the stairs, he blew his nose and
called cheerfully after her:
"Just remember, if anybody begins plaguing you,
that I'm ready for him - he rascal."
Once in her room she threw open the window and
sat looking out into the night, the chill autumn wind
in her face. Far across the fields a pale moon was
rising, bearing a cloudy circle that betokened rain. It
flung long, ghostly shadows east and west, which
flitted, lean and noiseless and black, before the
wind. Overhead the stars shone dimly, piercing a
fine mist. Eugenia leaned forward, her chin on her
clasped hands. Beyond the gray blur of the pasture
she could see, like benighted beacons, the lights in
Amos Burr's windows, and she found herself
vaguely wondering if Nicholas were at his books -
those books that never failed him. He had that
consolation at least - his books were more to him
than she had been.
She was not conscious of anger; she felt only an
indifferent weariness - a nervous shrinking from the
brutality of his rage. His face as she had seen it
rose suddenly before her, and she put her hand to
her eyes as if to shut out the sight. She saw the
clear streak of the highway, the gray pasture, the
solitary star overhanging the horizon, and she felt
the dead leaves blown against her cheek from
denuded trees far distant. And lighted by a glare of
memory she saw his face - she saw the convulsed
features, the furrow that cleft the forehead like a
seam, the heavy brows bent above the half-closed
eyes, the spasmodic working of the drawn mouth.
She saw the man in whom, for its brief instant, evil
was triumphant - in whom that self-poise, which
had been to her as the secret of his strength, was
tumultuously overthrown.
A great fatigue weighed upon her, as if she had
emerged, defeated, from a physical contest. Her
hands trembled, and something throbbed in her
temple like an imprisoned bird.
As she sat in the silence, the door opened softly
and Miss Chris came in, bearing a lamp in her hand.
"Eugie," she said, peering into the darkness, "are
you there?"
Eugenia lowered the window and came over to
the hearth rug, where she stood blinking from the
sudden glare of the lamp. There were some
half-extinguished embers amid the ashes in the
fireplace, and she threw on fresh wood, watching
while it caught and blazed up lightly over the old
brass and irons.
Miss Chris set the lamp on the table and came
over to the fire. She carried her key basket in her
hand, and the keys jingled as she moved. Her
smooth, florid face had a fine moisture over it that
showed like dew on a well-sunned peach.
"You aren't worrying about Nick Burr, Eugie,"
she said with the amiable bluntness which belonged
to her. "I wouldn't let it worry me if I were you."
Eugenia turned with a flash of pride.
"No, I am not worrying about him," she answered.
Miss Chris lifted a vase from the mantel-piece,
dusted the spot where it had stood, and replaced it
carefully.
"Of course, I know you've seen a good deal of
him of late," she went on; "but, as I told Tom, I
knew it was nothing more than your being
playmates together. He's a good boy, and I don't
believe that scandal about him any more than I would
about Bernard; but he's Amos Burr's son, after
all, though he has raised himself a long way above
him, and, as poor Aunt Griselda used to say, 'When
all's said and done, a Battle's a Battle.' "
Eugenia was looking into the fire.
"Yes," she repeated slowly, "a Battle's a Battle,
after all."
"That's right, dear. I knew you'd say so. I always
declared that you were more of a Battle than all the
rest of us put together - if you do look the image of
a Tucker. Tom was telling me only last week that
he'd leave you as free as air and trust the name in
your hands sooner than he would in his own - and
he has a great deal of family pride, you know,
though he was so wild in his youth. But I remember
my father once saying: 'A Battle may go a long way
down the wrong road, but he'll always pull up in time
to turn.' "
Her beautiful eyes shone in the firelight, and her
placid mouth formed a round hole above her
dimpled chin, giving her large face an expression
almost infantile. She took up the key basket, which
she had placed on the mantel-piece, cast a glance at
the pile of logs to see if it had been replenished, felt
the cover on the bed, after inquiring if it sufficed,
and, with a cheerful "good-night," passed out,
closing the door behind her.
Eugenia did not turn as the door closed. She
stood motionless upon the hearth rug, looking down
into the fire. Something in the huge old fireplace,
with its bent andirons supporting the blazing logs, in
the increasing bed of embers upon the bricks, in the
sharp odour of the knot of resinous pine she had
thrown on with the hickory, brought before her the
winter evenings in Delphy's little cabin, when they
sat upon three-legged stools and roasted early
winesaps. She saw the negro faces in the glow of
the hearth, and she saw Nicholas and herself sitting
side by side in the shadow. His childish face, with
its look of ancient care, came back to her with the
knotted boyish hands that had carried and fetched at
her bidding. The whole wistful little figure was
imaged in the flames, melting rapidly into the boy,
eager to act, ardent to achieve, who had bidden her
good-bye on that November afternoon, and,
dissolving again, to reappear as the strong man who
had come upon her in Uncle Ish's little shanty,
bearing the old negro's bag upon his shoulder.
She had loved him for his strength, his vigour, his
gentleness - and she still loved him.
Of the men that she had known, who was there
so ready to assist, so forgetful of services which he
had rendered? There was none so powerful and yet
so kind - so generous or so gentle. An impulse
stirred her to cross the fields to his door and fling
herself into the breach that divided them; but again
the phantom in the flames grew dim and then sent
out the face that she had seen that afternoon -
convulsed and quivering, with its flitting
sinister likeness to Amos Burr. A voice that seemed
to be the voice of old dead Aunt Griselda - of her
whole dead race that had decayed and been
forgotten, and come
to life again in her - spoke suddenly from the
silence:
"When all's said and done, a Battle's a Battle."
The resinous pine blazed up, the pungent odour
filled the large room, and from the lightwood sticks
tiny streams of resin oozed out and dripped into the
embers, turning the red to gray.
Mingling with the crackling of the flames there
was a noise as of the soughing of the wind in the
pine forests.
The hearth grew suddenly blurred before her
eyes; and a passion of grief rose to her throat and
clutched her with the grip of claws. For an instant
longer she stood motionless; then, turning from the
fire, she threw herself upon the floor to weep until
the daybreak.
When Nicholas left Eugenia it was to stride
blindly towards his father's gate. The rage which
had stunned him into silence before the girl now
leaped and crackled like flame in his blood. His
throat was parched and he saw red like a man who
kills.
Passing his home, he kept on to Kingsborough,
and once within the shadow of the wood, he broke
into a run, flying from himself and from the goad of
his wrath. As he ran, he felt with a kind of alien
horror that to meet Bernard Battle face to face in
this hour would be to do murder - murder too mild
for the man who had lied away his friend's honour
for the sake of the whiteness of his own skin. It was
the injustice that he resented with a holy rage - the
hideous fact that a clean man should be spotted to
save an unclean one the splashing he merited.
And Eugenia also - he hated Eugenia that he had
kept her image untarnished in his thoughts; that he
had allowed the desire for no other woman to
shadow it. He had held himself as a temple for the
worship of her; he had permitted no breath of
defilement to blow upon the altar - and this was his
reward. This - that the woman he loved had hurled
the first stone at the mere lifting of a Pharisaical
finger - that she had loved him and had turned from
him when the first word was uttered - as she would
not have turned from the brother of her blood
had he been damned in Holy Writ. It was for this
that he hated her.
The light of the sunset shining through the wood
fell dull gold on his pathway. A strong wind was
blowing among the trees, and the dried leaves were
torn from the boughs and hurled roughly to the
earth, when they sped onward to rest against the
drifts by the roadside. The sound of the wind was
deep and hoarse like the baying of distant hounds,
and beneath it, in plaintive minor, ran the sighing of
the leaves before his footsteps. Through the wood
came the vague smells of autumn - a reminiscent
waft of decay, the reek of mould on rotting logs, the
effluvium of overblown flowers, the healthful smack
of the pines. By dawn frost would grip the
vegetation and the wind would lull; but now it blew,
strong and clear, scattering before it withered
growths and subtle scents of death.
Out of the wood, Nicholas came on the highway
again, and turned to where the afterglow burnished
the windows of Kingsborough. He followed the
road instinctively - as he had followed it daily from
his childhood up, beating out the impression of his
own footsteps in the dust, obliterating his old, even
tracks by the reckless tramp of his delirium.
When he reached the college grounds he paused
from the same dazed impulse and looked back upon
the west through the quiet archway of the long brick
building. The place was desolate with the desolation
of autumn. Through the funereal arch he saw the
sunset barred by a network of naked branches,
while about him the darkening lawn was veiled with
the melancholy drift of the leaves. The only sound
of life came from a brood of turkeys settling to
roost in a shivering aspen.
He turned and walked rapidly up the main street,
where a cloud of dust hung suspended. Past the
court-house, across the green, past the little
white-washed gaol, where in a happier season roses
bloomed - out into the open country where the
battlefields were grim with headless corn rows - he
walked until he could walk no further, and then
wheeled about to retrace heavily his way. His rage
was spent; his pulses faltered from fatigue, and the
red flashes faded from before his eyes.
When he reached home supper was over, and
Nannie sat sewing in the little room adjoining the
kitchen.
"You're late for supper," she said idly as he
entered. "Sairy Jane's gone to bed with a headache
and ma's in a temper. I'll get you something as soon
as I've done this seam."
"I've had supper," he answered shortly, adding
from force of habit, "where's ma?"
Nannie motioned towards the kitchen and drew a
little nearer the lamp, while Nicholas left the room
in search of his stepmother.
Marthy Burr, a pile of newly dug potatoes on the
floor beside her, was carefully sorting them before
storing them for winter use. The sound ones she
laid in a basket at her right hand, those that were of
imperfect growth or showed signs of decay she
threw into a hamper that was kept in the kitchen
closet.
"You ought to make Jubal do this," said Nicholas
as he entered.
"I wouldn't trust the thickest skinned potato in
the field in his hands," returned Marthy sharply.
"He an' yo' pa made out to store 'em last year, an'
when I went to look in the first barrel, the last one
of 'em had rotted."
"Let them rot," said Nicholas harshly. "I be
damned if I'd care. You don't eat them, anyway."
"I reckon if I was a man I might consarn myself
'bout the things that tickle my own palate - an'
'taters ain't one of 'em," was his stepmother's retort.
"But, being a woman, it seems I've got to spend my
life slavin' for other folks' stomachs. But you're yo'
Uncle Nick Sales all over again; 'Don't you get up
befo' day to set that dough, Marthy,' he'd say, but
when the bread came on flat as a pancake, he'd
look sourer than all the rest."
"What was my Uncle Nick Sales like?" asked
Nicholas indifferently. He knew the name, but he
had never heard the man's story.
"All book larnin' an' mighty little sense - just like
you," replied his stepmother with repressed pride in
her voice. "Could read the Bible in an outlandish
tongue an' was too big a fool to come in out of the
rain. He used to sit up all night at his books - an' fall
asleep the next day at the plough He was the
wisest fool I ever see."
"Poor fool!" said Nicholas softly. It was the
epitaph over the unmarked grave of that other
member of his race who had blazed the thorny path
before him. A strange, pathetic figure rose suddenly
in his vision - a man with a great brow and a twisted
back, with brawny, knotted hands - an unlearned
student driving the plough, an ignorant philosopher
dragging the mire.
"Poor fool!" he said again. "What did his
learning do for him?"
"It killed him," returned his stepmother shortly.
She stood before him wiping her gnarled hands on
her soiled apron. His gaze fell upon her, and he
wondered angrily whence sprung her indomitable
energy - the energy that could expend itself upon
potatoes. Her face was sharpened until it seemed to
become all feature - there were hollows in the
narrow temples, and where the pale, thin hair was
drawn tightly over the head he could trace the
prominent bones of the skull.
As he looked at her his own petty suffering was
overshadowed by the visible tragedy of her life -
the sordid tragedy where unconsciousness was
pathos. He reached out quickly and took a corner of
her apron in his hand. It was the strongest
demonstration of affection he had ever made to her.
"I'll sort them, ma," he said lightly. "There's not
a speck in the lot of them too fine for my eyes."
And he knelt down beside the earthy heap.
But when he went up to his room an hour later
and lighted his kerosene lamp, it was not of his
stepmother that he was thinking - nor was it of
Eugenia. His stiffened muscles contracted in
physical pain, and his brain was deadened by the
sense of unutterable defeat. The delirium of his
anger had passed away; the fever of his skin had
chilled beneath the cold sweat that broke over
him - in the reaction from the madness that had
gripped him he was conscious
of a sanity almost sublime. The habitual
balance of his nature had swung back into place.
He got out his books and arranged them as usual
beside the lamp. Then he took up the volume he had
been reading and held it unopened in his hands. He
stared straight before him at the whitewashed wall
of the little room, at the rough pine bedstead, at the
crude washstand, at the coloured calendar above.
On the unearthly whiteness of the wall he beheld
the pictured vision of that other student of his race
- the kinsman who had lived toiling and had died
learning. He came to him a tragic figure in
mire-clotted garments - a youth with aspiring eyes
and muck-stained feet. He wondered what had
been his history - that unknown labourer who had
sought knowledge - that philosopher of the plough
who had died in ignorance.
"Poor fools!" he said bitterly, "poor fools!" for
in his vision that other student walked not alone.
The next morning he went into Kingsborough at
his usual hour, and, passing his own small office,
kept on to where Tom Bassett's name was hung.
It was county court day, and the sheriff and the
clerk of the court were sitting peaceably in
armchairs on the little porch of the court-house. As
Nicholas passed with a greeting, they turned from a
languid discussion of the points of a brindle cow in
the street to follow mentally his powerful figure.
"I reckon he's got more muscle than any man in
town," remarked the sheriff in a reflective drawl.
"Unless Phil Bates, the butcher, could knock him
out. Like to see 'em at each other, wouldn't you?"
he added with a laugh.
The clerk carefully tilted his chair back against
the wall and surveyed his outstretched feet. "Like
to live to see him stumping this State for Congress,"
he replied. "There goes the brainiest man these
parts have produced since before the war - the
people want their own men, and it's time they had
'em."
Nicholas passed on to Tom's office, and, finding it
empty, turned back to the judge's house, where he
found father and son breakfasting opposite each
other at a table bright with silver and chrysanthemums.
They hospitably implored him to join them, but he
shook his head, motioning away the plate which old
Cæsar would have laid before him.
"I wanted to ask Tom if he had heard this - this
lie about me," he said quickly.
Tom looked up, flushing warmly.
"Why, who's been such a blamed fool as to tell
you?" he demanded.
"You have heard it?"
"It isn't worth hearing. I called Jerry Pollard up
at once, and he swore he was all, wrong - the girl
herself exonerates you. Nobody believed it."
Nicholas crushed the brim of his hat in a sudden
grip.
"Some believe it," he returned slowly. He sat
down at the table, smiling gratefully at the judge's
protestations.
"They aren't all like you, sir," he declared. "I
wish they were. This world would be a little nearer
heaven - a little less like hell."
There was a trail of lingering bitterness in his
voice, and in a moment he added quickly: "Do you
know, I'd like to get away for a time. I've changed
my mind about caring to live here. If they'd send me
up to the legislature next year, I'd make a new
beginning."
The judge shook his head.
"I doubt the wisdom of it, my boy," he said. But
Tom caught at the suggestion.
"Send you," he repeated. "Of course; they'll send
you from here to Jericho, if you say so. Why, there's
no end to your popularity among men. Where the
ladies are concerned, I modestly admit that I have
the advantage of you; but they can't vote, God bless
them!"
"You're welcome to all the good they may bring
you, old boy," was Nicholas's unchivalrous retort.
"Oh, you're jealous, Nick!" twitted Tom gaily.
"They don't take kindly to your carrot locks. Now,
I've inherited a way with them, eh, dad?"
The judge complacently buttered his buckwheats.
There was a twinkle in his eyes and a quiver at the
corner of his classic mouth.
"It was the only inheritance I wasn't able to
squander in my wild oats days," he returned. "May
you cherish it, my boy, as carefully as your father
has done. It would be a dull world without the
women."
"And a peaceable one," added Nicholas
viciously.
"We owe them much," said the judge, pouring
maple syrup from the old silver jug. "If Helen of
Troy set the world at war, she made men heroes."
"You can't get the pater to acknowledge that the
fair things are ever wrong," put in Tom protestingly.
"He would have proved Eve's innocence to the
Almighty. If a woman murdered ten men before his
eyes he'd lay the charge on the devil and acquit
her."
The judge shook his head with a laugh.
"I might merely argue that the queen can do no
wrong," he suggested.
When Tom had finished his breakfast, Nicholas
walked with him to his office, and, seeing Bessie
Pollard, red-eyed and drooping in her father's door,
he lingered an instant and held out his hand. There
was defiant sympathy in his act - disdain of the
judgment of Kingsborough - and of General Battle,
who was passing - and pity for a bruised common
thing that looked at him with beautiful, mindless
eyes.
"You aren't looking bright to-day," he said kindly,
"but things will pull through, never fear - they
always do, if you give them time."
Then he responded coolly to the general's cool
nod, and, rejoining Tom, they went on arm in arm.
In his large-minded manhood it had not occurred to
him to connect the girl with the wrong done upon
him - he knew her to be more weak than wicked,
and, in her soft, pretty sadness, she reminded him of
a half-drowned kitten.
During the next few months he frequently passed
Eugenia in the road. Sometimes he did not look at
her, and again he met her wistful gaze and spoke
without a smile. Once he checked an eager
movement towards him because he had met
Bernard just ahead - and he hated him; once he had
seen the
carriage in the distance and had waited in a
passionate rush of remorse and love to hear her
laughter as she talked with Dudley Webb. They had
faced each other at last with resolute eyes and
unswerving wills. On his side was the pride of an
innocent man accused, the bitterness of a proud
man on an inferior plane; on hers, the recollection of
that wild evening in the road, and the belated
recognition of the debt she owed her race.
In the winter she went up to Richmond and he
slowly forced himself to renounce her. He began to
see his old dream as it was - an emotional chimera;
a mental madness. As the year grew on he watched
his long hope wither root and branch, until, with the
resurrection of the spring, it lay still because there
was no life left that might put forth. And when his
hope was dead he told himself that his unhappiness
died with it, that he might throw himself single-hearted
into the work of his life.
The year passed and was done with - leaves
budded, expanded, fell again. Eugenia watched their
growth, fulfilment, and decay as she had watched
them other seasons, though with eyes a thought
widened by experience, a shade darkened by tears.
At first she had suffered wildly, then passively, at
last resignedly. The colour rebloomed in her cheek,
the gaiety rang back to her voice, for she was
young, and youth is ever buoyant.
There was work for her to do on the place, and
she did it cheerfully. She studied farming with her
father and overhauled the methods of the overseer,
to the man's annoyance and the general's delight.
"She tells me Varly isn't scientific," roared the
general with rapturous enjoyment. "A scientific
overseer! She'll be asking for an honest politician
next."
"I'm sure Varly is a very respectable man,"
protested Miss Chris in her usual position of
defence. "The servants were always devoted to
him before the war - that says a good deal."
"There's not a better man in the county,"
admitted the general, "or a worse farmer. Here
I've let him go down hill at his own gait for more
than thirty years, to be pulled up in the end by a chit
of a girl. I wouldn't, if I were you, Eugie. He's old
and he's slow."
"Oh! I'll promise not to hurt him," returned
Eugenia. "I save him a lot of hard work, and he
likes it."
She drew on her loose dogskin gloves and went
out to overlook the shucking of the corn.
With the exercise in the open air she had gained
in suppleness and brilliancy. It was the outdoor
work that saved her spirit and her beauty - that
gave her endurance for the indoor monotony and
magnified the splendid optimism of her saddest
hour. She was a woman born for happiness; when
the Fates failed to accord it she defied them and found her
own.
In the autumn news came that Nicholas was
elected to the General Assembly. The judge brought
it, riding out on a bright afternoon to chat with the
general before the blazing logs.
"The lad has a future," said the judge with a
touch of pride. "Brains don't grow on blackberry
vines;" then he laughed softly. "Cæsar voted for
him," he added.
The general slapped his knee.
"Cæsar is a gentleman," he exclaimed. "He was
the first darkey in Kingsborough to vote the
Democratic ticket. I walked up to the polls with him
and the boys cheered him. You weren't there,
George."
The judge shook his head.
"They called it undue influence," he said; "but,
on my honour, Tom, I never spoke a political word
to Cæsar in my life. Of course he'd heard me talk
with Tom at dinner. He'd heard me say that the
man of his race who would dare to vote with white
men would be head and shoulders above his people,
a man of mind, a man that any gentleman in the
county would be proud to shake by the hand - but
seek to influence Cæsar! Never, sir!"
"Now, there's that Ishmael of mine," said the
general aggrievedly. "He no sooner got his vote
than he cast it just to spite me. I told the fool he
didn't know any more about voting than the old mule
Sairy did, and he said he didn't have to know
'nothin' cep'n his name.' He forgot that when they
challenged him at the polls, but he voted all the
same - voted in my face, sir."
They lighted their pipes and sang the praises of
that idyllic period which they called "before the
war," while Eugenia crept away into the shadows.
She was glad that Nicholas would go; glad, glad,
glad - so glad that she wept a little in the cold of a
dark corner.
A week later Dudley came down, and she met
him with a friendliness that dismayed and disarmed
him. Could a woman be so frankly cordial with a
man she loved? Could she face a passion that
inspired her with such serene self-poise? He
questioned these things, but he did not hesitate. He
was of a Virginian line of lovers, and he charged in
courtship as courageously as his father had charged
in battle. He was magnificent in his youthful ardour,
and so fitted for success that it seemed already to
cast a prophetic halo about his head.
"You are superb," Eugenia had said, half
insolently, looking up at him as he stood in the
firelight. "How odd that I never noticed it before."
"You are looking at yourself in my eyes," he
returned gallantly.
She shook her head.
"There are so many women who like handsome
men, it's a pity you can't fall in love with one," she
said coldly.
"Am I to infer that you prefer ugly men?" he
questioned.
"I - oh! I am too good-looking to care," she
replied.
She sprang up suddenly and stood beside him.
"We do look well together," she said with grave
audacity.
He laughed. "I am flattered. It may weigh with
you in your future plans. Come, Eugie, let me love
you!"
But her mood changed and she dragged him with
her out into the autumn fields.
In the last days of November a long rain came -
a ruinous autumnal rain that beat the white roads
into livid streams of mud and sent the sad dead
leaves in shapeless tatters to the earth. The glory of
the fall had brought back the glory of her love; its
death revived the agony of the long decay.
At night the rain throbbed upon the tin roof above
her. Sometimes she would turn upon her pillow,
stuffing the blankets about her ears; but, muffled by
the bedclothes, she heard always the incessant
melancholy sound. She heard it beating on the
naked roof, rushing tumultuously to the overflowing
pipes, dripping upon the wet stones of the gutter
below, sweeping from the earth dead leaves, dead
blossoms, dead desires.
In the day she watched it from the windows. The
flower beds, desolated, formed muddy fountains, the
gravel walk was a shining rivulet, the sycamore held
three yellow leaves that clung vainly to a sheltered
bough, the aspen faced her, naked - only the
impenetrable gloom of the cedars was
secure - sombre and inviolate.
On the third day she went out into the rain;
splashing miles through the heavy roads and
returning with a glow in her cheeks and the savour
of the dampness in her mouth.
Taking off her wet garments she carried them to
the kitchen to be dried. With the needed exercise,
her cheerful animation had returned.
In the brick kitchen a gloomy group of negroes
surrounded the stove.
"Dar's gwine ter be a flood an' de ea'th hit's
gwine ter pass away," lamented Aunt Verbeny,
lifting the ladle from a huge pot, the contents of
which she was energetically stirring. "Hit's gwine
ter pass away wid de men en de cattle en de crops,
en de black folks dey's gwine ter pass des' de same
es dey wuz white."
"I'se monst'ous glad I'se got religion," remarked a
strange little negro woman who had come over to
sell a string of hares her husband had shot. "De
Lawd He begun ter git mighty pressin' las' mont', so
I let 'im have His way. Blessed be de name er de
Lawd! Is you a church member, Sis Delphy?"
"Yes, Lawd, a full-breasted member," responded
Delphy, clamping the declivity of her bosom.
"I ain' got much use fur dis yer gittin' en ungittin'
er salvation," put in Uncle Ish from the table where
he was eating a late dinner of Aunt Verbeny's
providing. "Dar's too much monkeyin' mixed up
wid it fur me. Hit's too much de work er yo' j'ints ter
make me b'lieve hit's gwine ter salivate yo' soul.
When my wife, Mandy, wuz 'live, I tuck 'n cyar'ed
her long up ter one er dese yer revivals, en' ole Sis
Saphiry Baker come 'long gittin' happy, en fo' de
Lawd she rid 'er clean roun' de chu'ch. Naw, suh,
de religion I wanter lay holt on is de religion uv
rest."
"I ain' never served my Lawd wid laziness," put
in Aunt Verbeny reprovingly. "When He come
arter me I ain' never let de ease er my limbs stan' in
de way. Ef you can't do a little shoutin' on de ea'th,
you're gwine ter have er po' sho' ter keep de Lawd
f'om overlookin' you at Kingdom Come."
The strange little woman faced them proudly.
"My husband, Silas, got religion in de night time,"
she said, "an' he bruck clean thoo de slats. De bed ain't
heft stiddy sence."
Eugenia emerged from the dusk of the doorway,
where she had lingered, and Delphy rose to take the
dripping clothes.
"Des' look at her!" exclaimed Aunt Verbeny at
the girl's entrance. "Ain't she a sight ter mek a blin'
man see?" Then she added to the strange little
woman, "Dar ain' no lack er beaux roun' yer,
needer."
Uncle Ish grunted.
"I ain' seen 'em swum es dey swum roun' Miss
Meely," he muttered, while Aunt Verbeny shook
her fist at him behind the stranger's back. "De a'r
wuz right thick wid 'em."
"I reckon dis chile'll be mah'r'd soon es she sets
her min'on it," returned Delphy indignantly. "She
ain' gwineter have ter do much cuttin' er de eyelashes,
needer. De beaux come natch'ul."
"Dar's Marse Dudley, now," said Aunt Verbeny.
"I ain' so ole but my palate hit kin taste a gent'mun
a mile off. Marse Dudley ain' furgit de times I'se
done roas' him roas'in' years when he warn' mo'n er
chile. Hit's 'how's yo' health, Aunt Verbeny?'
des' de same es 'twuz den."
Eugenia laughed and flung the heap of garments
into Delphy's arms. "The rain's over," she said;
"but, Uncle Ish, you'd better get Congo to fix you up
for the night. It is too wet for your rheumatism," and
she ran singing upstairs to where the general was
dozing in the sitting-room. "Wake up, dad! it's going
to clear!"
The general started heavily from his sleep. There
was a dazed look in his eyes.
"Clear?" he asked doubtfully, "has it been
raining?"
Eugenia shook him into consciousness.
"Raining for three whole days, and I believe
you've slept through it. Now the clouds are
breaking."
"What is it the Bible says about 'the winter of
our discontent'? - that's what it is."
"Not the Bible, dear - Shakespeare."
"It's the same thing," retorted the general testily.
His speech came thickly as if he held a pebble in his
mouth, and the swollen veins in his face were livid.
Eugenia bent over him in sudden uneasiness.
"Aren't you well, papa?" she asked. "Is anything the
matter?"
The general laughed and pinched her cheek.
"Never better in my life," he declared, "but I'll
have to be getting new glasses. These things aren't
worth a cent. Find them, Eugie."
Eugenia picked them up, wiped them on his silk
handkerchief, and put them on his nose.
"You've slept too long," she said. "Come and
take a walk in the hall."
She dragged him from his chair, and he yielded
under protest.
"You forget that two hundred pounds can't skip
about like fifty," he complained.
But he followed her to the long hall, and they
paced slowly up and down in the afternoon
shadows. At the end of ten minutes the general
declared that he felt so well he would go back to his
chair.
"I'll get the 'Southern Planter' and read to you,"
said Eugenia. "Don't go to sleep."
She ran lightly upstairs and, coming down in a
moment, called him. He did not answer and she
called again.
The sitting-room was in dusk, and, as she entered,
the firelight showed the huge body of the general
lying upon the hearth rug. A sound of heavy snoring
filled the room.
She flung herself beside him, lifting the great
head upon her lap; but before she had cried out
Miss Chris was at her elbow.
"Hush, Eugie," she said quickly, though the girl
had not spoken. "Send Sampson for Dr. Bright,
and tell Delphy to bring pillows. Give him to me."
Her voice was firm, and there was no tremor
in her large, helpful hands.
When Eugenia returned, the general was still lying
upon the hearth rug, his head supported by pillows.
Miss Chris had opened one of the western
windows, and a cool, damp air filled the room. The
rain had begun again, descending with a soft,
purring sound. Above it she heard the laboured
breathing from the hearth rug, and in the firelight
she saw the regular inflation of the swollen cheeks.
The distended pupils stared back at her, void of light.
As she stood motionless, her hands clenched
before her, she followed the soft, weighty tread of
Miss Chris, passing to and fro with improvised
applications. The light fall of the rain irritated her;
she longed for the relentless downpour of the night.
At the end of an hour the roll of wheels broke the
stillness, and she went out to meet the doctor,
passing, with a shiver, the unconscious mass on the
floor.
They carried him to his bed in the chamber next
the parlour, and through the night and day he lay an
inert bulk beneath the bedclothes. Miss Chris and
Eugenia and the servants passed in and out of his
room. One of the dogs came and sat upon the
threshold until Eugenia put her arms about his neck
and drew him away. She had not wept; she was
white and drawn and silent, as if the shock had
dulled her to insensibility. During the afternoon of
the next day she persuaded Miss Chris to rest, and,
softly closing the door, sat down in a chair beside
her father's bed. It was the high white bed that had
known the marriage, birth, and death of a century of
Battles. In it her father was born; beside it, kneeling
at prayer, her mother had died. The stately tester
frame had seen generations come and go, and
had remained unchanged. Now its stiff
white curtains made a ghastly drapery above the
purple face.
Eugenia sat motionless, her thoughts vaguely
circling about the still figure before her. It was not
her father - this she felt profoundly - it was some
strange shape that had taken his place, or she was
held by some farcical nightmare from which she
should awake presently with a start. The half-used
glasses on the little table beside her; the candle
burned down in the socket, and overlooked; the
tightly corked phials of useless drugs; the strong
odour of mustard from the saucer in which a plaster
had been mixed - these things struck upon her
faltering consciousness with a shock of horrible
reality. The odour of the mustard was more real
than the breathing of the body on the bed.
As she sat there, she thought of her mother - the
pale, still woman who had lain beautiful and dead
where her father was dying now. She came to her
as from a faded miniature, wistful, holy, at rest -
blessed and above reproach. Her heart went out to
her as to one standing near, hidden by the long
white curtains - nearer than Aunt Chris asleep
upstairs, nearer than Bernard, who was coming to
her, nearer than the great form on the bed. Closer
than all other things was that spiritual presence.
Then she thought of her old negro mammy, who
had died when she was but a baby - her mother's
nurse and hers. She recalled the beloved black face
beneath the snowy handkerchief, the restful bosom
in blue homespun, the tireless arms that had rocked
her into slumber. Then of Jim, the dog, true friend
and faithful playmate. All the lives that she had loved
and had been bereft of gathered closer, closer in the
gray shadows.
Her gaze passed to the window, seeking in the sad
landscape the little graveyard where they were
lying. The rain came between her and the clouded
hill - descending softly and insistently between her
eyes and the end of her search. Against the panes
the dripping branches of the shivering mimosa tree
beat themselves and moaned. A chill seized her and,
rising, she went to the hearth, noiselessly piling wood
upon the charred and waning logs, which crumbled
and sent up a thin flame. She hurried to the bed and
sat down again, her eyes on the blanket that rose
and fell with the difficult breath. As she looked at
the large, familiar face, tracing its puffed outline and
gross colouring, it resolved itself into her earliest
remembrance - throughout her childhood he had
been her slave and she his tyrant. What wish of hers
had he ever ignored? With what demand had he
ever failed to comply? At the end of the long life
what had remained to him except herself - the single
compensation - the one reward? The pity of it smote
her as with a lash. He had lived with such fine
bravery, and he had had so little - so little, and yet
more than myriads of the men that live and die. That
live and die! About her and beyond her she seemed
to hear the rushing of great multitudes - the passing
of the countless souls through the gates of death.
With a cry she threw herself upon her knees,
beseeching the dull ears.
Six hours later he died, and when the rain ceased
and the sun came out they buried him beside his
wife in the little graveyard. For days after the
funeral Eugenia wandered like a shadow through
the still rooms. Bernard had come and gone,
carrying with him his short, sharp grief. Miss Chris
had put aside her own sorrow and gone back to the
management of the house; only the girl, worn, idle,
tragic, haunted the reminders of her loss. Coming
upon the general's old slouch hat on the rack, she
had grasped it in sudden passionate longing; at the
sight of his half-filled pipe she had rushed from the
room and from the house. The faint scent of
tobacco about the furniture was a continual torture
to her. In the great chamber next the parlour she
would sit for hours, staring at the cold white bed,
shivering before the tireless hearth. The place
chilled her like a vault; but she would linger
wretchedly until led away by Miss Chris, when she
would sob upon that broad, unselfish bosom.
December passed; the unsunned earth turned
itself for a winter rest. January came, swift and
changeful. With February a snowstorm swept from
the north, driving southward. At first they felt it in
the air; then the swollen clouds chased overhead; at
last the white flakes arrived, falling, falling, falling.
Through the night the storm made a glistening
mantle for the darkness; through the day it hid
sombre sky and sombre earth in a spotless veil. It
covered the far country to the distant forests; it
weighted the ancient cedars until their green
branches bent to earth; it wrapped the gravelled
walk in a winding sheet; it filled the hollows of the
box bushes until they hardened into hills of ice. The
snow was followed by cold winds. The ground
froze in the night. Long icicles formed on the naked
trees, the window panes bore a lacework of frost.
One afternoon, when the landscape was white
and hard, Eugenia went out into the deserted sheep
pasture where the dead oak stood. A winter sunset
was burning like a bonfire in the west, and as far as
the red horizon swept an unbroken waste of snow.
The rail fences shone silver in their coat of frost,
and from the blackened tree above her pendants of
ice were shot with light. Across the field a flock of
gaunt crows flew, casting purple shadows.
Eugenia leaned against the oak and stared
vacantly at the landscape - at the sunset, and at the
waste of snow, across which flitted the demoniac
shadows of the crows. Her eyes saw only the
desolation and the death; they were sealed to the
grandeur.
A sense of her own loneliness swept over her
with the loneliness of nature. Her own
isolation - the isolation of a strong soul in
pain - walled her apart as with a wall of ice. That
assurance of human companionship on which she
had based her future seemed suddenly annihilated.
She was alone and life was before her.
Then, as she turned her gaze, a man's figure
broke upon the field of snow, coming towards her.
It was Dudley Webb, and in the resolute swing of
his carriage, in the resistless ardour of his eyes, he
seemed to reach her from east and west, from north
and south, surrounding her with a warmth of summer.
As he looked at her he held out his arms.
"Eugie - poor girl! dear girl!"
In the desolation of her life he stood to her as the
hearth of home to a wanderer in the frozen North.
For an instant she held back, and then, with a sob,
she yielded.
"I must be loved," she said. "I must be loved or I
shall die."
Around them the winter landscape reddened as
the sunset broke, and above their heads the crows
flew, cawing, across the snow.
The Democratic State Convention had taken an
hour's recess. From the doors of the opera house of
Powhatan City the assembled delegates emerged,
heated, clamorous, out of breath. The morning
session, despite its noise, had not been interesting
- awaiting the report of the Committee on
Credentials, the panting body had fumed away the
opening hours. Of the fifteen hundred
representatives of absent voters, the favoured few
who had held the floor had been needlessly
discursive and undeniably dull. There had been
overmuch of the party platform, and an absence of
the wit which is the soul of political speaking; and,
though the average Virginia Convention is able to
breast triumphantly the most encompassing wave of
oratory, the present one had shown unmistakable
signs of suffocation. At the end of the third speech,
metaphor had failed to move it, and alliteration had
ceased to evoke applause. It had heard without
emotion similes that concerned the colour of
Cleopatra's hair, and had yawned through
perorations that ranged from Socrates to the Senior
Senator, who sat upon the stage. Attacks upon the
"cormorants and harpies
that roost in Wall Street" had roused no thrill in the
mind of the majority that knew not rhetoric. The
most patient of the silent members had observed
that "after all, their business was to nominate a
candidate for governor," while the unruly spirits, as
they brandished palm-leaf fans, had wished "that
blamed committee would come on."
Now, after hours of restless waiting, they emerged,
stiff-kneed and perspiring, into the blazing sunshine
that filled the little street. Once outside, they opened
their lungs to the warm air in an attempt to banish
the tainted atmosphere of the interior; but the original
motive of expansion was lost in a flow of words. On
the sidewalk the crowd divided into streams, pulsing
in opposite directions. Heated, noisy, pervasive, it
surged to dinners in hotels and boarding-houses, and
overflowed where Moloney's restaurant displayed its
bill of fare. It came out talking, it divided talking; still
talking, it swept, a roaring sea of flesh, into the far-off
buzz of the distance. In a group of three men
passing into the lobby of the largest hotel, there was
a slender man of fifty years, with a well-knit figure,
half closed, indifferent eyes, and an emphatic mouth.
In the insistent hum of words about him, his voice
sounded in a brisk utterance that carried a hint of
important issues.
"Oh, I don't think Hartley's much account," he
was saying. "I'd bet on a close shave between
Webb and Crutchfield, with Webb in the lead. Small
will get the lieutenant-governorship, of course.
Davis ought to be attorney-general, but he'll be
beaten by Wray. It's the party reward.
Davis is the better lawyer, by long odds, but Wray
has stuck to the party like a burr - I don't mean a
pun, if you please."
The younger of his two companions, a spirited
youth with high-standing auburn hair, laughed
uproariously.
"The trouble is they're afraid Burr won't stick to
the party," he protested. "Major Simms, who is
marshalling Crutchfield's forces, you know, said to
me last night - 'Oh, Burr's all right when you let
him lead, but he's damned mulish if you begin to pull
the other way.' "
The third man, a sunburned farmer, with a dogged
mouth overhung by a tobacco-stained mustache,
assented with a nod.
"There's not a better Democrat in Virginia than
Nick Burr," he said. "If the party's got anything
against him it had better out with it at once. He
made the most successful chairman the State ever
had - and he's honest - there's not a more honest
man in politics or out."
"Oh, I know all that," broke in the auburn-haired
young fellow, whose name was Dickson; "I'd back
Burr against any candidate in the field, and I'm
sorry he kept out of it. I hoped he'd come forward
with you to manage his campaign, Mr. Galt," he said
to the first speaker.
Galt waived the remark.
"Perhaps he thought his chances too slim for a
walkover," he said in non-committal fashion, as
Burr's best friend. "I hear, by the way, that the
delegation from his old home is instructed to vote
for him on the first ballot, whether or not."
"He has a great name down in my parts," put in
the farmer. "The people think he has the
agricultural interests at heart. They wanted to send
him to Congress in Webb's place, you know."
"Yes, I know," said Galt. "Hello, Bassett," as
Tom Bassett joined him. "Where've you been? Lost
sight of you this morning."
"Oh, I was out with the Committee on
Credentials. A member? I should say not. I wanted
to hear that Madison County case, so I got made
sergeant-at-arms. By the way, Dick," to Dickson,
"I hear you held the floor for five minutes this
morning and got off five distinct stories that landed
with Columbus."
"Nonsense. I didn't open my mouth - except to
call 'time' on the men who did. There's our orator
now."
He bowed to an elderly gentleman with a sharply
pointed chin beard and the type of face that was
once called clerical.
"Some one defined oratory the other day," said
Galt, "as the fringe with which the inhabitants of
the Southern States still delighted to trim their
politics - so I should call the gentleman of to-day 'a
political tassel.' He's ornamental and he hangs by a
thread."
And he passed into the lobby arm-in-arm with
Tom Bassett.
The place was swarming with delegates:
delegates from country districts, red-faced farmers
in flapping linen coats and wide-brimmed hats;
delegates from the cities, dapper, well-groomed,
cordial-voiced; delegates of the true political type,
shaven, obsequious,
alert; delegates of the cast that belongs at
home, outspoken, honest-eyed, remote; stout
delegates, with half-bursting waistbands, thin
delegates, with shrunken chests. In the animated
throng there was but one condition held in
common - they were all heated delegates. In one
corner a stout gentleman in a thin coat, with a
scarlet neck showing above his wilted collar, held a
half-dozen listeners with his eyes, while he plied
them with emphatic sentences in which the name of
Crutchfield sounded like a refrain. Moving from
group to group, portly, unctuous, insinuating, a man
with an oily voice was doing battle in the cause of Webb.
The throng that passed in and out of the lobby
was continually shifting place and principles. One
instant it would seem that Crutchfield triumphed in a
majority sufficient to overwhelm the platform; a
moment more and the Webb men were vociferously
in the ascendant. At the time it resolved itself into a
question of tongues.
"This is thick," said Ben Galt, dodging the straw
hat with which a perspiring politician was fanning
himself and gently withdrawing himself from the
arms of a scarlet individual in a wet collar to collide
with his double. "Let's go to dinner. Ah! there's the
Lion of Democracy - how are you, Judge?"
The Lion, a striking figure, with a graceful,
snow-white mane and a colossal memory, held out a
tireless hand. "Well met, Ben," he exclaimed in
effusive tones. "I've been on the outlook for you all
day. One moment - your pardon - one moment -
Ah, my dear sir! my dear sir!" to a countryman
who approached him with outstretched hand, "I am delighted.
Remember you? Why, of course - of
course! Your name has escaped me this instant; but
I was speaking of you only yesterday. No, don't tell
me! don't tell me. I remember. Ah, now I have
it - one moment, please - it was after the battle of
Seven Pines. You lent me a horse after the battle of
Seven Pines. Thank you - thank you, sir. And your
charming lady, who made me the delicious coffee.
My best regards to her."
The great man was surrounded, and Galt and
Bassett, leaving him to his assailants, passed into the
dining-room.
Glancing hastily down the long room filled with
small, overcrowded tables, they joined several men
who were seated near an open window.
"Hello, Major. Glad to see you, Mr. Slate! How
are things down your way, Colonel?"
A tired negro waiter, with a napkin slung over his
arm, drew back the chairs and deposited two plates
of lukewarm soup before the newcomers, after
which he lifted a brush of variegated tissue paper
and made valiant assault upon the flies which
overran the tables. Stale odours of over-cooked
food weighted the atmosphere, and waiters bearing
enormous trays above their heads jostled one
another as they threaded their difficult ways.
Occasionally the clamour of voices was lost in the
clatter of breaking dishes. Tom Bassett pushed his
plate away and mopped his large forehead. He
appeared to have developed without aging in the last
fifteen years - still presenting an aspect of
invincible respectability.
"It's ninety-two degrees in the shade, if it's anything,"
he declared, adding, "Has anybody seen
Webb to-day?"
The colonel, whose name was Diggs, nodded
with his mouth full, and, having swallowed at his
leisure, proceeded to reply, holding his knife and
fork poised for service. He was fair to the point of
insipidity, and his weak blue eyes bulged with
joviality.
"Shook hands with him at the train last night," he
said. "Hall was a day ahead of time. Great
politician, Hall. Working for Webb like a beaver.
Here, waiter! More potatoes."
"I went to sleep last night to the music of Webb's
men," said Galt, "and I awoke to the tune of
Crutchfield. I don't believe either side went to bed.
My wonder is whom they found to work on."
Slate, a muscular little man, with a nervous
affection about the mouth that gave him an
appearance of being continually on the point of a
surprising utterance, hesitated over, caught, and
finally landed his speech. "They're dead against
Webb down my way," he said. "Our delegation is
instructed to vote for anybody that favours
retrenchment, unless it's Webb - they won't have
Webb if he moves to run the State on the two-cent
system. If we'd cast a quarter of a vote for him
they'd drum us out of the district. It's all because he
voted for that railroad bill in Washington last winter.
We hate a railroad as a bull hates a red flag."
Major Baylor, a courtly gentleman, with a face
that bore traces of a survival of the old Virginian
legal type, spoke for the first time.
"Fauquier stands to a man for Dudley Webb," he
said. "He has a large following in my section,
and I understand, by the way, that if Hartley
withdraws after the first ballot, it will mean a clear
gain for Webb in the eighth district. He's safe, I
think."
"Oh, we're Crutchfield strong," laughed the
colonel good-humouredly, reaching for a toothpick
from the glass stand in the centre of the table. "We
think a man deserves something who hasn't missed
a convention for fourteen years."
There was a spirit of ridicule tempered with
good-humour about the group, which showed it to be,
in the main, indifferent to the result - an attitude in
vivid contrast to the effervescent partisanship of the
leaders. With the exception of the colonel, whose
heart was in his dinner, they appeared to be
unconcerned spectators of the events of the day.
"Hall was telling me a good story on Webb last
week," said Diggs, as he waited for his dessert. "It
was about the time he seconded the nomination of
Reed for attorney-general - ever hear it?"
"Fire away!" was Galt's reply, as he leaned back
in his chair. The colonel's stories were the platform
which had supported him throughout a not
unsuccessful social career.
"It was when Webb was a young fellow, you
know, just beginning to be heard of as an advocate.
He was at his first convention, eager to have his
say, hard to keep silent; and he was asked to
second the nomination of Reed, a boyish-looking
chap of twenty-six. He didn't know Reed from
Adam, but he was ambitious to be heard just
then - and he'd have spoken for the devil if they'd
have given him a chance. Well, he launched out on
his speech in fine style. He began with Noah - as
they all did in
those days - glided down the centuries to Seneca
and Caesar, touched upon Adam Smith and
Jefferson, and finally landed in the arms of Monroe
P. Reed. There he grew fairly ecstatic over his
subject. He spoke of him as 'the lawyer sprung,
fullarmed, from the head of learning,' as the
'nonpareil Democrat who clove, as Ruth to Naomi,
to the immortal principles of Virginia Democracy,'
and in a glorious period, he rounded off 'the
incomparable services which Monroe P. Reed had
rendered the deathless cause of the Confederacy!'
In an instant the house came down. There was a
roar of laughter, and somebody in the gallery sang
out: 'He was at his mother's breast!'
"For a moment Webb quailed, but his wits never
left him. He faced the man in the gallery like Apollo
come to judgment, and his fine voice rang to the
roof. 'I know it, sir, I know it,' he thundered, 'but
Monroe P. Reed was one of the stoutest
breastworks of the Confederacy. I have it from his
mother, sir!'
"Of course the house went wild. He was the
youngest man on the floor, and they gave him an
ovation. Since then, he's learned some things, and
he's become the only orator left among us."
The colonel finished hurriedly as his apple pie
was placed before him, and did not speak again
during dinner.
"He is an orator," said Galt. "He doesn't use
much clap-trap business either. I've never heard
him drag in the Medes and Persians, and I could
count his classical quotations on my fingers.
Personally, I like Burr's way better - it's saner and it's
sounder - but Webb knows how to talk, and he has
a voice like a silver bell - Ah, here he is."
As he spoke there was a stir in the crowd at the
doorway and Dudley Webb entered and took the
nearest vacant seat.
The first impression of him at this time was one
of extreme picturesqueness. A slight tendency to
stoutness gave dignity to a figure which, had it been
thin, would have been insignificant, and served to
accentuate a peculiar grace of curve which
prevented his weight from carrying any suggestion
of the coming solidity of middle age. His rich, rather
oily hair, worn longer than the fashion, fell in
affected carelessness across his brow and lent to
his candid eyes an expression of intensity and
eloquence. His clear-cut nose and the firm, fleshy
curve of his prominent chin modified the effect of
instability produced by his large and somewhat
loosely moulded lips. The salient quality of his
personality, as of his appearance, was an ease of
proportion almost urbane. His presence in the
overcrowded room diffused an infectious affability.
Though he spoke to few, he was at once, and
irrepressibly, the friend of all. He did not go out of
his way to shake a single hand, he confined his
conversation, with the old absorption, to the men at
his table - personal supporters, for the most part;
but there was about him a pacific emanation - an
atmosphere at once social and political, which
extended to the far end of the room and to men
whose names he did not know.
He talked rapidly in a vibrant, low-toned voice,
with frequent gestures of his shapely hands. His
laugh was easy, full, and inspiriting - the laugh of
a man with a vital sense of humour. As Galt
watched him, he smiled in unconscious sympathy.
"But for Burr, I think I'd like to see Webb
governor," he said. "After all, it is something to
have a man who looks well in a procession - and he
has a charming wife."
The gas light and electric light illuminating the opera
house fell with a curious distinction in tone upon the
crowd which filled the building and overflowed through
darkened doors and windows. Beneath the electric jets
the faces were focussed to a white hush of expectancy,
which mellowed into a blur of impatient animation where
the dim gas flickered against the walls.
Since the birth of Virginia Democracy, the people had
not witnessed so generous an outpouring of delegates.
In a State where every man is more or less a politician, the
convention had assumed the air of a carnival of
males - the restriction of sex limiting it to an expression of
but half the population.
The delegations from the congressional districts were
marshalled in line upon the floor and stage, their positions
denoted by numbered placards on poles, while in the
galleries an enthusiastic swarm of visitors gave vent to
the opinions of that tribunal which is the public. A
straggling fringe of feet, in white socks and low shoes,
suspended from the red and gilt railings of the boxes,
illustrated the peculiar privileges enjoyed in the absence
of the feminine atmosphere. From stage to gallery the play
of palm-leaf fans produced the effect of a swarm of
gigantic insects, and behind them rows of flushed and
perspiring faces were turned upon the gentleman who
held the floor.
A composite photograph of the faces would have
resulted in a type at once alarming and reassuring
- alarming to the student of individual endeavour,
reassuring to the historian of impersonal issues. It would
have presented a countenance that was unerringly Anglo-Saxon,
though modified by the conditions of centuries of
changes. One would have recognised instinctively the
tiller of the soil - the single class which has refused
concessions to the making of a racial cast of feature. The
farmer would have stamped his impress indelibly upon
the plate - retaining that enduring aspect which comes
from contact with natural forces - that integrity of type
which is the sole survival of the Virginian pioneer.
In the general face, the softening influences of society,
the relaxing morality of city life would have appeared
only as a wrinkle here and there, or as an additional
shadow. Beneath the fluctuating expression of political
sins and heresies, there would have remained the
unaltered features of the steadfast qualities of the race.
The band in a far corner rolled out "Dixie," and the
mass heaved momentarily, while a cloud of tobacco
smoke rose into the air, scattering into circles before the
waving of the palm-leaf fans. Here and there a man stood
up to remove his coat or to stretch his hand to the vendor of lemonade.
Sometimes the fringe of feet overhanging the boxes waved
convulsively as a howl of approbation or derision greeted
a fresh arrival or the remarks of a speaker. Again,
there would rise a tumultuous call for a party leader
or a famous story teller. It was a jovial, unkempt,
coatless crowd that spat tobacco juice as recklessly
as it applauded a fine sentiment.
As an unwieldy gentleman, in an alpaca coat,
made his appearance upon the platform, there was
an outburst of emotion from where the tenth
delegation was seated. The unwieldy gentleman
was the Honourable Cumberland Crutchfield, a
popular aspirant to the governorship.
When Galt entered the hall, an athletic rhetorician
was declaiming an eulogy which had for its theme
the graces of his candidate. "You came too soon,"
observed a man seated next a vacant chair, which
Galt took. "You should have escaped this infliction."
"My dear fellow, I never escaped an infliction in
my life," responded Galt serenely. "I cut my teeth
on them - but here's another," and he turned an
indifferent gaze on the orator, who had risen upon
the platform. "Good Lord, it's Gary!" he groaned.
"Now we're in for it."
"Mr. Chairman and gentlemen of the
convention," Gary was beginning, "it is my pleasant
duty to second the nomination of the Honourable
Cumberland Crutchfield of the gallant little county
of Botetourt. Before this august body, before this
incomparable assemblage of the intellect and
learning of the State, my tongue would be securely
tied ("I'd like that little job," grunted the man next to
Galt) did not the majesty of my subject loosen it to
eloquence. Would that the immortal Cicero ("Now
we're in for it," breathed Galt) in his deathless
orations had been inspired by the illustrious figure of
our fellow-countryman. Gentlemen, in the Honourable
Cumberland Crutchfield you behold one
whose public service is an inspiration, whose private
life is a benediction - one who has borne without
abuse the grand old title of the Caesar of
Democracy, and I dare to stand before you and
assert that, had Caesar been a Cumberland
Crutchfield, there would have been no Brutus.
Gentlemen, I present to you in the Honourable
Cumberland Crutchfield the Vested Virgin of
Virginia!"
The chairman's gavel fell with a thud. In the
uproar which ensued hats, fans, sticks filled the air.
The tenth delegation rose to a man and surged
forward, but it was howled down. "Go it, old man!"
sang the boxes, where the fringe of feet was wildly
swaying, and "He's all right!" screeched the
galleries. To a man who may be made fun of a
Virginia convention can be kind, but in the confusion
Gary had sauntered out for a drink.
After his exit the seconding motion flowed on
smoothly through several tedious speeches; and
when the virtues of Mr. Crutchfield had been
sufficiently exploited Major Baylor requested the
nomination of Dudley Webb. He spoke warmly
along the old heroic lines.
"The gentleman whom I ask you to nominate as
your candidate for governor stands before his
people as one of the foremost statesmen of his day.
The father fell while defending Virginia; the son has
pledged his splendid ability and his untiring youth to
the same service. From a child he has been trained
in the love of country and the principles of
Democracy. In his veins he carries the blood of a
race of patriots. From his mother's breast he has
imbibed the immortal milk of morality. He has
laboured for his people in a single-hearted service
that seeketh not its own. There is no man rich
enough to buy the good-will of Dudley Webb; there
is none so poor - "
"That he hasn't a vote to sell him!" called a
voice from the pit.
In an instant a chorus of yells rang out from stage
to gallery. The man who spoke was knocked down
by a Webb partisan, and assailant and assailed were
hustled from the house.
When the uproar was subdued, the thin voice of
Mr. Slate sounded from the platform.
"What he doesn't sell he buys," he cried in his
nervous, penetrant tones. "Twelve years ago he
was accused of lobbying with full hands in the
legislature. He was the lobbyist of the P.H. & C.
railroad. The charge was passed over, not
disproved. What do you say to this, Major?"
In the effort to restore order the chairman grew
purple, but the major turned squarely upon his
questioner.
"I say nothing, sir. It is unnecessary to assert
that a gentleman is not a criminal at large."
A burst of applause broke out.
"I repeat the charge," screamed Slate.
"It is false!" retorted the major.
"It's a damned lie!" called a dozen voices.
"Nick Burr knows it. Ask him!" answered Slate.
From a peaceable assemblage the convention had
passed into pandemonium. Two thousand throats
made, in two thousand different keys, a single gigantic
discord. The pounding of the chairman was a
faint accompaniment to the clamour. In the first lull,
a man's voice with a dominant note was heard
demanding recognition, and at the sight of his
towering figure upon the platform there was a short
silence.
"It's Nick Burr!" called a man from Burr's
district. "Let's hear Nick Burr."
There was a protest on the part of the Webb
faction. Burr and Webb were looked upon as rivals.
"He hates Webb like the devil!" cried a delegate,
and "It's pie for Burr!" sneered another. But as he
moved slightly forward and faced the chairman a
sudden hush fell before him.
Among the men surrounding him his powerful
figure towered like a giant's. His abundant red hair,
waving thickly from his bulging forehead, redeemed
by its single note of colour the rigidity of his
features. His eyes - small, keen, deeply set beneath
heavy brows - flashed from a dull opacity to an
alert animation. But in the first and last view of his
face it was the mouth that marked the man; the
straight, thin lips would close or unclose at their own
will, not at another's - the line of the mouth, like the
line of the hard, square jaw, was the physical
expression of his character. He was called ugly, but
it was at least the ugliness of individuality - the
ugliness of an unpolished force - of a raw, yet
disciplined energy. Now, as he stood at his full
height upon the stage, his personality was felt
before his words were uttered. He had but one
attribute of recognised oratory - a voice; and yet a
voice so little vibrant as to seem almost without inflections.
It was resonant, far-reaching, incisive; but it rang
abruptly and without mellowness.
"Mr. Chairman," he began, and his words were
heard from pit to gallery. "It is perhaps
unnecessary for me to state that I do not rise as an
advocate of Mr. Webb. I am neither his personal
friend nor his political supporter, but in the year
alluded to by the gentleman from Nottoway I was
upon a committee appointed to investigate the
charges which the gentleman from Nottoway has
seen fit to revive." A silence had fallen in which a
whisper might have been heard. Every eye in the
building was turned to where his outstanding mop of
hair shone red against the smoke-stained wall. "The
charges were thoroughly investigated and
emphatically withdrawn. The gentleman from
Nottoway has been misinformed or his memory has
misled him - since there was abundant evidence
brought before the committee to prove the
suspicions against Mr. Webb's methods as a
lobbyist to be absolutely without foundation.
"I have made this statement because I believe
myself to be in a better position to disprove this old
and forgotten charge than any man present. As I
am a recognised opponent of Mr. Webb's political
ambition my testimony to the integrity of his
personal honour may be of additional value."
In the thunder of applause that shook the building
he turned for the first time towards the house. The
cheers that went up to him brought the animation to
his eyes. The faces in the pit were hidden behind a
sea of handkerchiefs and hats - it was the response
which a Virginia audience makes to a brave or a
generous action. "Hurrah for honest Nick!" yelled
the floor, and "Go in and win yourself!" shouted a
delegate from his own district.
He spoke again, and they were silent.
"Men of Virginia, in the naming of your
governor, let us have neither subterfuge nor slander.
Better than the love of party is the love of honesty
- and the Democracy of Jefferson cannot thrive
upon falsehood. Fair means are the only means,
honest ends are the only ends. The party owes its
right to existence to the people's will; when its life
must be prolonged by artificial stimulants it is fit that
it should die. It is not the people's master, but the
people's servant; if it should usurp the oppressor's
place, it must die the oppressor's death.
"For fifteen years I have worked a Democrat
among you, and it is not needed that I should put in
words my love for the party I have served; but I say
to you to-day that if that party were doomed to
annihilation and a lie could save it, I would not speak
it."
He sat down and the uproar began again. Beyond
the party were the people, and he had touched
them. With the force of his personality upon it he
had become suddenly the hero of the house.
"Honest Nick! Honest Nick!" shouted the galleries,
and the cry was echoed from the pit. When order
was restored Major Baylor completed his speech; it
was seconded by a sensible young congressman,
and the oratory was cut short by a call for votes.
In a flash the chairmen of the different
delegations were stung into action. A buzz like that
of bees swarming rose from the pit and white slips of paper
fluttered from row to row. The Webb leaders were
whipping their faction into an enthusiasm that
drowned the roll call. At last, with the reading of the
ballot, there was silence, followed by applause.
Webb led slightly in advance of Crutchfield; Burr
came next, Hartley last. With the surprise of the
third name, round which there had been a rally of
uninstructed delegations, a cheer went up. In the
clamour Burr had risen to ask that his name be
withdrawn, but the chorus of his newly formed
followers howled him down. Then Hartley was
dropped from the race and a second ballot ordered.
The excitement in the building could be felt like
steam. The heat was rising and a nervous tension
weighted the atmosphere. Through the clouds of
tobacco smoke the records of changes sounded
distinctly. The Hartley delegation that Webb had
counted on divided and went two ways; the county
of Albemarle passed over to Burr; the city of
Richmond broke its vote into three equal parts.
Each change was received with a roar by the
opposing factions - while the clerks stumbled on,
making alteration upon alteration. On the floor and
the stage the chairmen thickened in the fight. Ben
Galt had sprung suddenly into life as Burr's
manager, and in the aisle Tom Bassett, in his shirt
sleeves, with a tally sheet in his hand, was inciting
his battalion to victory. About him the Webb men
were summing up the votes needed to bring in their
leader. The noise had a dull, baying sound, as if the
general voice were growing hoarse. The odour of
good and bad tobacco was dense and stifling. In the
midst of the clamour a drunken man rose to
move that the convention consider the subject in
prayer.
Upon the reading of the second ballot the
confusion deepened. The name of Crutchfield went
down, and Burr and Webb ran hotly neck to neck.
Then the Crutchfield party, which had held bravely
together, began to go over, and, as each change was
made, a shout went up from the successful force.
Hall and Galt had established themselves on
opposite sides of the stage and were working with
drawn breath. Galt, with a cigar in his mouth and a
fan in his hand, was the only cool man in the house.
He had caught the wave of popular enthusiasm
before it had had time to break, and he was giving it
no ground upon which to settle. Tom Bassett in the
centre aisle was cheering on his workers. He was
superb, but the Webb men were not behind him; it
was still neck to neck. Then, at last, with the third
ballot, Burr led off, and the voting was over.
There was a call upon the name of the successful
candidate, but before he stood up the Honourable
Cumberland Crutchfield rose to eulogise the wisdom
of the convention in nominating the man he had tried
to defeat. The Caesar of Democracy was beaming,
despite his disappointment - a persistent beam of
the flesh.
"Gentlemen, you have made your decision, and it
is for me to bow to its wisdom. In the Honourable
Nick Burr your choice has fallen upon the man who
will most incite to ardour each individual voter. His
record is a glorious one," - for an instant he
wavered; then his imagination took a blinded leap.
"He was born a Democrat, he lives a Democrat, he
will die a Democrat. In the life of his revered and
lamented father, the late Alexander P. Burr, he has a shining
example of unshaken conviction and unswerving
loyalty to principle. Gentlemen, you have chosen
well, and I pledge myself to uphold your nominee
and to be the foremost bearer of your banner when
it waves in next November from the line of
Tennessee to the Atlantic Ocean."
He sat down amid ecstatic cheers and Nicholas
Burr came forward.
His face was grave, but there was the light of
enthusiasm in his eyes and his head was uplifted.
"There's a man who has capitalised his
conscience," sneered a Webb follower with a smile.
Across the hall Ben Galt was lighting a cigar, the
tattered remains of his fan at his feet. "There's a
statesman that came a century too late," he
remarked to Tom Bassett. "He's a leader, pure and
simple, but he's out of place in an age when every
man's his own patriot."
The successful man was returning to
Kingsborough. He had spent the week in Richmond,
where he had lived for the past ten years, and he
was now going back to receive the congratulations
of the judge - as he would have gone twice the
distance.
It was the ordinary car of a Southern railroad,
and leaning his head against the harsh, bristly plush
of the seat, he had before him the usual examples
of Southern passengers.
Across the aisle a slender mother was holding a
crying baby, two small children huddling beside her. In
the seat in front of him slouched a mulatto of the new
era - the degenerate descendant of two races that mix
only to decay. Further off there were several men
returning from business trips, and across from them
sat a pretty girl, asleep, her hand resting on a gilded
cage containing a startled canary. At intervals she
was aroused by the flitting figure of a small boy on
the way to the cooler of iced water. From the rear of
the car came the amiable drawl of the conductor as
he discussed the affairs of the State with a local
drummer, whose feet rested upon a square leathern
case.
Nicholas Burr leaned back and closed his eyes,
crossing his long legs which were cramped by the
limited space. He had already exchanged
pleasantries with the conductor, and he had chatted for
twenty minutes with a farmer, who had gone back
at last to the smoking-car.
The low, irregular landscape was as familiar to
him as his own face. He knew it so well that he
could see it with closed eyes - could note each
change of expression where the daylight shifted,
could tell where the thin cornfields ended and the
meadows rolled fresh and green, could smell the
stretch of young pines above the smoke of the
engine, and could follow to their ends the
rain-washed roads that crawled with hidden heads into
the blue blur of the distance. He knew it all, but he
was not thinking of it now.
He was thinking of the day, fifteen years ago,
when he had left Kingsborough to throw himself and
his future into the service of his State. He had told
himself then, fresh from the influence of Jefferson
and the traditions of Kingsborough, that he had but
one love remaining - the love of Virginia. Now, with
the bitterer wisdom of experience, that youthful
romance showed half foolish, half pathetic. To the
man of twenty-three it had been at once the
inspiration and the actuality. His personal life had
turned to ashes in an hour, and he had told himself
that his public one, at least, should remain vital. He
had pledged himself to success, and it came to him
now that the cause had been won by his
single-heartedness - by the absolute oneness of his
desire. There had been a sole divinity before him,
and he had not wandered in the way of strange
gods. He had given himself, and after fifteen years
he was gaining his recompense - a recompense for
more work than most men put into a lifetime.
He smiled slightly as he thought of the beginning.
In the beginning his sincerity had been laughed at,
his ardour had met rebuff. He had gone to
Richmond to meet an assembly of statesmen; he
had found a body of well-intentioned, but
unprofitable servants. They were men to be led, this
he saw; and as soon as his vision was adjusted he
had determined within himself to become their
leader. The day when a legislator meant a
statesman was done with; it meant merely a man
like other men, to be juggled with by shrewder
politicians or to be tricked by more dishonest ones.
They plunged into errors, and lived to retrieve them;
they walked blindfold into traps, and with open eyes
struggled out again. For he found them honest and
he found them faithful where their lights led them.
He remembered, with a laugh, a New Englander
who, after a fruitless winter spent in scenting the
iniquities of the ruling party, had angrily exclaimed
that "if politicians were made up of knaves and
fools, Mason and Dixon's was the geographical line
dividing the species." Nicholas had retorted, "If to
be honest means to be a fool, we are fools!" and
the New Englander had chuckled homeward.
That was his first winter and he had been
nobody. Ah, it was hard work, that beginning. He
had had to fight party plans and personal prejudices.
He had had to fight the recognised leaders of the
legislature, and he had had to fight the men who
pulled the strings - the men who stood outside and
hoodwinked the consciences of the powers
within. He had had to fight, and he had fought well
and long.
He recalled the day of his first decisive victory -
the day when he had stood alone and the
people - the great, free people, the beginning and
the end of all democracies - had rallied to his
standard. He had won the people on that day, and
he had never lost them.
But he was of the party first and last. In his youth
he had believed in the divine inspiration of the
Jeffersonian principles as he believed in God. On the
Democratic leaders he had thought to find the
mantle of Apostolic Succession. He had believed as
the judge believed - with the passionate credulity of
an older political age. Time had tempered, but it had
not dissipated, his fiery partisanship. He sat to-day
with the honours of a party upon him - honours that
a few months would see ratified by a voice
nominally the people's. He laughed now as he
remembered that Galt had said that in five years
Dudley Webb would be the most popular man in the
State. "When Senator Withers stops delivering
orations, there'll be a call for an orator, and Webb
will arise," he had prophesied. "They don't need him
now because the senator gets off speeches like hot
cakes; but mark my words, the first time Webb is
asked to make an address at the unveiling of a
Confederate statue, there won't be a man to stand
up against him in Virginia. He's a better speaker
than Withers - only the public doesn't know it, and
there'll be hot times when it finds it out."
The train was slackening for a wayside station.
Outside a man was driving a plough across a field
where grain had been harvested. Nicholas followed
with his eyes the walk of the horses, the
purple-brown trail of the plough, the sturdy, independent
figure of the driver as he passed, whistling an air.
Over the Virginian landscape - the landscape of a
country where each ragged inch of ground wears its
strange, distinctive charm, where each rotting fence
"worm" guards a peculiar beauty for those who
know it - lay the warm hush of full-blown summer.
The man at the plough aroused in Nicholas Burr a
sudden exhilaration as of physical exertion. It
brought back his boyhood which had brightened as
he had passed farther from it, and he felt that it
would be good on such an afternoon to follow the
horses across fields that were odorous of the
upturned earth.
The train went on slowly, with the shiftless slouch
of Southern trains, the man at the plough vanished,
and Nicholas returned to his thoughts.
The years had been almost breathless in their
flight. He had put himself to a purpose, and he had
lost sight of all things save its fulfilment. The
success that men spoke of with astonished
eyes - the transformation of the barefooted boy into
the triumphant politician, had a firm foundation, he
knew, though others did not. It was his capacity for
toil that had made him - not his intellect, but his
ability to persevere - the power which, in the old
days, had successfully carried him through Jerry
Pollard's store. As chairman of the Democratic
Party, men had called his campaigns brilliant. He
alone knew the tedious processes, the infinite
patience front which these triumphs had
evolved - he alone knew the secret and the
security of his success.
The train stopped with a lurch.
"Kingsborough, sir!" said the conductor with a
friendly touch upon his arm.
He started abruptly from his reverie, lifted his bag,
and left the car. On the platform outside a group of
stragglers recognised him, and there was a hearty
cheer followed by frantic handshakes. The incident
pleased him, and he spoke to each man singly,
calling him by name. The sheriff was one of them,
and the clerk of the court, and the old negro sexton
of the church. There was a fervour in their
congratulations which brought the warmth to his
eyes. He was glad that the men who had known
him in his poverty should rise so cordially to
approve his success.
He left the station, walking rapidly to the judge's
house. He had frequently returned to Kingsborough,
but to-day the changes of the last fifteen years
struck him with a sensation of surprise. The wide,
white street, half in sunshine, half in shadow, trailed
its drowsy length into the open country where the
roads were filled with grass and dust. He noticed
with a pang that the ivy had been torn from the
church and that the glazed brick walls flaunted a
nudity that was almost immodest. He had
remembered it as a bower of shade - a gigantic
bird's nest. He saw that ancient elms were rapidly
decaying, and when he reached the judge's garden
he found that the syringa and the lilacs had vanished.
The garden had faced the destroyer in the plough,
and trim vegetables thrived where gaudy blossoms
had once rioted.
As he opened the gate he saw old Cæsar
bending above the mint bed, and he went over to him.
"Dar ain' nuttin better ter jedge er gent'mun by
den his mint patch," the old negro was muttering,
"an' dis yer one's done w'ar out all dose no 'count
flow'rs, des' like de quality done w'ar out de trash.
Hi! Marse Nick, dat you?" he shook the proffered
hand, his kindly black face wrinkling with hospitality.
"Marse George hev got de swelled foot," he said in
answer to a question, "an' he ain' tech his julep
sence de day befo' yestiddy. Dis yer's fur you," he
added, looking at the bunch in his hand.
"You're a trump, Cæsar!" exclaimed Nicholas
as he ascended the steps and entered the wide hall,
through which a light breeze was blowing.
The library door was open and he went in softly,
lightening instinctively his heavy tread. The judge
was sitting in his great arm-chair, his white head
resting against the cushioned back, his bandaged
foot on a high footstool.
"Is it you, my boy?" he asked, without turning.
Nicholas crossed the room and gripped the
out-stretched hand which trembled slightly in the air,
the usual rugged composure of his face giving place
to frank tenderness.
"I'm sorry to see the gout's troubling you again,"
he said.
The judge laughed and motioned to a chair
beside his desk. His fine dark eyes were as bright
as ever, and there was a youthful ring in his voice.
"I'm paying for my pleasures like the rest of us,"
he responded. "The truth is, Cæsar makes me live
too high, the rascal - and I go on a bread-and-milk
diet once in a while to spite him." Then his tone
changed; he pushed aside a slender vase of "safrano"
roses which shadowed Nicholas's face and
regarded him with genuine delight. "It's good news
you bring me," he exclaimed. "I haven't had such
news since they told me the Democratic Party had
wiped out Mahonism. And it was a surprise. We
thought Dudley Webb was too secure for the
chances of the 'dark horse.' Well, well, I'm sorry
for Dudley, though I'm glad for you. How did you
do it?"
Nicholas laughed, but his face was grave. "Ben
Galt says I worked up a political 'revival,' " he
replied. "He declares my methods were for all the
world the counterpart of those employed in a
Methodist camp meeting, but he's joking, of course.
It was a distinct surprise to me, as you know. I had
declined to offer myself as a candidate for the
nomination, because I believed Webb to be assured
of victory. However, the Crutchfield party proved
stronger than we supposed, and they came over to
my side. I was the 'dark horse,' as you say."
"It's very good," commented the judge. "Very
good."
"Galt is afraid that what he calls 'the political
change of heart' won't last," Nicholas went on, "but
he knows, as I know, that I am the choice of the
people and that, though a few of the leaders may
distrust me, the Democratic Party as a body has
entire confidence in me. You will understand that,
had I doubted that the decision was free and
untrammelled, I should not have accepted the
nomination."
The judge nodded with a smile. "I know," he said,
"and I also know that you were not born to
be a politician. You will bear witness to it some day.
You should have stuck to law. But have you seen
Dudley?"
The younger man's face clouded. When he spoke
there was a triumphant zest in his voice. His deeply-set
eyes, which had at times a peculiarly opaque
quality, were now charged with light. The thick red
locks flared above his brow.
"He spoke pleasantly to me after the convention,"
he answered. "It was a disappointment to him, I
know - and I am sorry," he finished in a forced,
exclamatory manner, and was silent.
The judge looked at him for a moment before he
went on in his even tones.
"His wife was telling me," he said. "She was
down here a week or two before the convention. It
seems that they are both anxious to return to
Richmond to live. She's a fine girl, is Eugie. It was a
terrible thing about that brother of hers, and she's
never recovered from it. I can't understand how the
boy came to commit such a peculiarly stupid forgery."
A flash of bitterness crossed the other's face; his
voice was hard.
"He has missed his deserts," he returned harshly.
"Oh, I don't know, poor fellow," murmured the
judge, flinching from a twinge of gout and settling
his foot more carefully upon the stool. "He has
been a fugitive from the State for years and a
stranger to his wife and children. There was always
something extraordinary in the fact that he escaped
after conviction, and I suppose there was a kind of
honour in his not breaking his bail. At
least, that's the way Eugie seems to regard it - and
it is such a pitiful consolation that we might allow
her to retain it. She tells me that Bernard's wife has
been in destitute circumstances. It's a pity! it's a
pity! I had always hoped that Tom Battle's boy
would turn out well."
The younger man met his eyes squarely and
spoke in an emotionless voice.
"I should like to see him serving his sentence," he
said.
An hour later he left the judge's house and
walked out to his old home. Since his father's death
the place had undergone repairs and improvements.
The lawn had been cleared off and sown in grass,
the fences had been mended, and the house had
been painted white. It could never suggest
prosperity, but it had assumed an appearance of
comfort.
In the little room next the kitchen he heard his
stepmother scolding a small negro servant, and he
broke in good-humouredly upon her discourse.
"All right, ma?" he called.
Marthy Burr turned and came towards him. She
had aged but little, and her gaunt figure and sharp
face still showed the force of her indomitable spirit.
"I declar' if 'tain't you, Nick!" she exclaimed.
He took her in his arms and kissed her
perfunctorily, for he was chary of caresses. Then
he lifted Nannie's baby from the floor and tossed it
lightly.
"Nannie's spending the day," explained his
stepmother with an attempt at conversation. "She
would name that child Marthy, an' it's the best
lookin' one she's got."
The baby, a pink-checked atom in a blue gingham
frock, made a frantic clutch at the vivid hair of
the giant who held her, and set up a tearful
disclaimer. Nicholas returned her to the rug, where
she attempted to swallow a string of spools, and
looked at his stepmother.
"Where's that dress I sent you?" he demanded.
Marthy Burr sat down and smoothed out the
creases in her purple calico.
"Laid away in camphor," she replied with a
diffidence that was rapidly waning. "Marthy, if you
swallow them spools, you won't have anything to
play with."
Nicholas looked about the common little room
- at the coarse lace curtains, the crude chromes,
the distorted vases - and returned to his question.
"You promised me you'd wear it," he went on.
"Wear my best alpaca every day?" she
demanded suspiciously. "I wouldn't have it on
more'n an hour befo' one of them worthless niggers
would have spilt bacon gravy all over it. There ain't
been no peace in this house since you sent those no
'count darkies here to help me. If yo' pa was 'live,
he'd turn them out bag an' baggage befo' sundown.
Lord, Lord, when I think of what yo' poor pa would
say if he was to walk in now an' find them creeturs
in the kitchen."
Her stepson smiled.
"Now, if you'll sit still a moment, I'll tell you a
piece of news," he said.
"You ain't thinkin' of gettin' married, air you?"
inquired Marthy Burr with sudden keenness.
"Married!" He laughed aloud. "I've no time
for such nonsense. Listen - no, let the baby alone,
she isn't choking. If the Powers agree, and the
Democratic Party triumphs in November, I shall be
Governor of Virginia on the first of January."
His stepmother looked at him in a dazed way, her
glance wandering from his face to the baby with the
string of spools. There was a pleased light in her
eyes, but he saw that she was striving in vain to
grasp the full significance of his words.
"Well, well," she said at last. "I al'ays told
Amos you wa'nt no fool - but who'd have
thought it!"
The Capitol building at Richmond stands on a
slight eminence in a grassy square, hiding its gray
walls behind a stretch of elms and sycamores, as if
it had retreated into historic shadow before the
ruthless advance of the spirit of modernism. In the
centre of the square, whose brilliant green slopes
are intersected by gravelled walks that shine silver
in the sunlight, the grave old building remains the
one distinctive feature of a city where Iconoclasm
has walked with destroying feet.
A few years ago - so few that it is within the
memory of the very young - the streets leading
from the Capitol were the streets of a Southern
town - bordered by hospitable Southern houses set
in gardens where old-fashioned flowers bloomed.
Now the gardens are gone and the houses are
outgrown. Progress has passed, and in its wake
there have sprung up obvious structures of red brick
with brownstone trimmings. The young trees leading
off into avenues of shade soften the harshness of an
architecture which would become New York, and
which belongs as much to Massachusetts as to
Virginia.
The very girls who, on past summer afternoons,
flitted in bareheaded loveliness from door to door,
have changed with the changing times. The
loveliness is perhaps more striking, less distinctive;
with the flower-like heads have passed the old grace and
the old dependence, and the undulatory walk has
quickened into buoyant briskness. It is all modern
- as modern as the red brick walls that are building
where a quaint mansion has fallen.
But in the Capitol Square one forgets to-day and
relives yesterday. Beneath the calm eyes of the
warlike statue of the First American little childen
chase gray squirrels across the grass, and infant
carriages with beruffled parasols are drawn in
white and pink clusters beside the benches.
Jefferson and Marshall, Henry and Nelson are
secure in bronze when mere greatness has
decayed.
To the left of the Capitol a gravelled drive leads
between a short avenue of lindens to the turnstile
iron gates that open before the governor's house.
Here, too, there is an atmosphere of the past and
the picturesque. The lawn, dotted with
chrysanthemums and rose trees, leads down from
the rear of the house to a wall of grapevines that
overlooks the street below. In front the yard is
narrow and broken by a short circular walk, in the
centre of which a thin fountain plays amid long-leaved
plants. The house, grave, gray, and old-fashioned
- the square side porches giving it a
delusive suggestion of length - faces from its stone
steps the thin fountain, the iron gates, beyond which
stretches the white drive beneath the lindens, and
the great bronze Washington above his bodyguard
of patriots. Between the house and the city the
square lies like a garden of green.
It was on a bright morning in January that Ben
Galt entered one of the iron gateways of the
square and walked rapidly across to the Capitol.
He ascended the steep flight of stone steps, and
paused for an instant in the lobby which divided the
Senate Chamber from the House of Delegates. The
legislature had convened some six weeks before,
and the building was humming like a vast beehive.
In the centre of the tesselated floor of the lobby,
which was fitted out with rows of earthenware
spittoons, stood Houdon's statue of Washington, and
upon the railing surrounding it groups of men were
leaning as they talked. Occasionally a speaker
would pause to send a mouthful of tobacco juice in
aimless pursuit of a spittoon, or to slice off a fresh
quid from the plug he carried in his pocket.
Galt, stopping behind a stout man with sandy hair,
tapped him carelessly on the shoulder.
"Eh, Major?" he exclaimed.
The major turned, presenting a florid, hairy face,
with small, shrewd eyes and an unpleasant mouth.
His name was Rann, and he was the most important
figure in the Senate. It was said of him that he had
never made a speech in his life, but that he was
continually speaking through the mouths of others.
He could command more votes in both branches
than any member of the Assembly, but his ambition
was confined to the leadership of the men about
him; he had been in the State Senate fifteen years,
and he had never tried to climb higher, though it was
reported that he had sent a United States senator to
Washington.
"Ah, we'll see you oftener among us now," he
said as he wheeled round, holding out a huge red
hand, "since your friend sits above." He laughed,
with a motion towards the ceiling, signifying the
direction of the governor's office. "By the way, I
was sorry about that bill you were interested in," he
went on; "upon my word I was - but we're skittish
just now on the subject of corporations. Charters
are dangerous things - you can't tell where they're
leading you, eh? - but, on my word, I was sorry."
"So was I," responded Galt with peculiar dryness
- adding, with the frankness for which he was liked
and hated, "I'd been dining that committee for
weeks. Seven of them swore to back me through,
and the eighth man said he'd go as the others went.
My mind was so easy I lost sight of them for six
hours, and every man John of them voted against
the bill. I believe you got in a little work in those six
hours."
Rann laughed and lowered one puffy eyelid in a
blandly unembarrassed wink. "Oh, we don't like
corporations," he replied, "I think I remarked as
much. How-de-do, Colonel? Where'd you dine last
night? Missed you at table."
The colonel was Diggs, and, after a curt nod in
his direction, Galt pushed his way through the
lobbyists and glanced into the House of Delegates,
where an animated discussion of an oyster bill was in
progress.
Owing to the absolute supremacy of the
Democrats, the body presented the effect of a party
caucus rather than a legislative branch of opposing
elements. The few Republicans and Populists were
lost in the ruling faction.
Galt was noting here and there to members who
recognised him, when his arm was touched by a
lank countryman who was standing near.
"Eh?" he inquired absently.
"I jest axed you if you reckoned we paid that
gentleman over yonder for talking that gosh about
oyschers?"
Galt bowed. "Why, I suppose so," he responded
gravely. "It's a good day's work. Am I to presume
that you are not interested in oysters?"
"An' he gits fo' dollars a day for saying them
things," commented the other shortly. "I tell you
'tain't wo'th fo' cents, suh."
He lifted his bony hand and gave a tug at his
scraggy beard. In a moment he spoke again.
"Can you p'int out the young fellow from
Goochland?" he inquired. "That's whar I come
from."
Galt pointed out the representative in question,
and smiled because it was a man who had dined
with him the evening before.
"That he?" exclaimed the countryman
contemptuously. "Why, I've been down here sence
Saturday, an' that young spark ain't opened his
mouth. I ain't heerd him mention Goochland sence I
come."
"Oh, there's time enough," ventured Galt
good-humouredly. "He's young yet, and Goochland
is immortal!"
"An' I reckon he gits fo' dollars same as the
rest," went on the stranger reflectively, "jest for
settin' thar an' whittlin' at that desk. I used to study
a good deal about politics fo' I come here, but they
air jest a blamed swindle, that's what they air."
He turned on his heel, and in a moment Galt
entered the elevator and ascended to the office of
the chief executive.
Reaching the landing he crossed a small gallery,
where hung portraits of historic
Virginians - governors in periwigs and lace ruffles
and statesmen of a later age in high neckcloths. At
the end of a short passage he opened the door of
the anteroom and faced the private secretary, who
was busy with his typewriter.
The secretary glanced up, recognised Galt, and
gave a cordial nod.
"The governor's got a gentleman in just now who
called about the boundary line between Virginia and
Maryland," he said as Galt sat down. "He wants to
see you, though, so you'd better wait. For a wonder
there's nobody else here. Two-thirds of the
legislature were up a while ago."
He spoke with an easy intimacy of tone, while the
click of the typewriter went on rapidly.
Galt nodded in response and, as he did so, the
door opened and the caller came out.
"You're the very man!" exclaimed a hearty
voice, and Nicholas Burr was holding out his hand.
"Come in. You're the only human being I know who
is always the right man in the right place. How do
you manage it?"
He sat down before his desk, pushing aside the
litter of letters and pamphlets. "I should like you to
glance over this list of appointments," he went on.
"It is what I dropped in about," responded Galt.
He flung himself into an easy chair and stretched
his long legs comfortably before him. He did not
take the list at once, but sat staring abstractedly at
the freshly papered green walls above the large
Latrobe stove whose isinglass doors shone like
blood-shot eyes.
It was a long cheerful room with three windows
which overlooked the grassy square. There was a
bright red carpet on the floor, and before the desk
lay a gaudy rug enriched with stiff garlands. In one
corner a walnut bookcase was filled with papers
filed for reference, and the shelves across from it
were lined with calf-bound "Codes of Virginia."
Among the pictures on the pale-green walls there
were several of historic subjects - Washington
among his generals and Lee mounted upon
Traveller. Over the mantel hung an engraving of the
United States Senate with Clay for the central
figure. Beside the desk a cracker box was filled
with unanswered letters.
"Yes, I dropped in about that," repeated Galt, his
gaze returning to the rugged features of the man at
the desk. "You're not looking well, by the way."
The other laughed. "The office seekers have
been at me," he replied; "but I'm all right. What
were you going to say?"
His large, muscular hand lay upon the desk, and
as he spoke he fingered an open pamphlet. His
penetrating eyes were on Galt's face.
Galt lifted the list of names and read it in silence.
"A-ahem!" he said at last and laid it down; then
he took it up again.
"I have given a good deal of attention to the
educational boards," continued the governor slowly.
"I do not think it is sufficiently realised that only
men of the highest ability should be placed in
control of institutions of learning."
"Ah, I see," was Galt's comment. In a moment
he spoke abruptly:
"I say, Nick, has it occurred to you to ascertain
the direction in which the influence of these men
will go in the next senatorial election?"
The other hesitated an instant. "Frankly, I have
done my best to put such questions aside," he
answered.
Galt squared round suddenly and faced him;
there was a decisive ring in his voice.
"The next election comes in two years," he said
quietly. "I have it on excellent authority that
Withers will not seek to succeed himself. His health
has given out and he is going to the country. Now,
remove Withers, and there are two men who might
take his place in the Senate. You know whom I
mean?"
"Yes, I know."
Galt went on quickly:
"You want the senatorship?"
"Yes, I want it."
"Very good. Now, Webb and yourself will run
that race, and one of you will lose it. It's going to be
a hot race and a hard winning. There'll be some
pretty unpleasant work to be done by somebody.
You've been in the business long enough to know
that the methods aren't exactly such as you can
see your face in."
"All the more need for clean men," broke in
Nicholas shortly.
"Just so. But the man who spends his days in
the bathtub doesn't walk about where mud is
flinging. I'm an honest man, please God. You're an
honest man, and that's why a lot of us are running
you with might and main and money. But there's an
honesty that verges on imbecility, and that's the kind
that talks itself hoarse when it ought to keep silent.
Save your talking until you get to the Senate, and
then let fly as much morality as you please; it won't
hurt anybody there, heaven knows. You are the
man we need, and a few of us know it, though the
majority may not. But for the next two years give up
trying to purify the Democratic Party. The party's
all right, and it's going to stay so."
"It has been my habit to express my convictions,"
returned the other quickly.
"Then drop the habit," replied Galt with an
affectionate glance that softened the shrewd
alertness of his look. "My dear and valued friend, a
successful politician does not have convictions; he
has emotions. Convictions were all right when
Madison was President, but that gentleman has
been in heaven these many years, and they don't
thrive under the present administration. A party man
has got to be a party mouthpiece. He may laugh and
weep with the people, but he has got to vote with
the party - and it's the party man who comes out on
top. Why, look at Withers! Hunt about in his
senatorial record and you'll find that he has voted
against himself time out of number. You and I may
call that cowardliness, but the party calls it honour
and applauds every time. That applause has kept
him the exponent of the machine and the idol of the
people, who hear the fuss and imagine it
means something. Now Webb is like Withers, only
smarter. He is just the man to become a sounding
brass reflector, and there's the danger."
"And yet I defeated him!" suggested the
governor.
Galt laughed, with a wave of his thin, nervous hand.
"My dear governor, you are the one great man in
State politics, but that unimportant fact would not
have landed you into your present seat had not the
little revivalistic episode befuddled the brains of the
convention."
Nicholas shook his head impatiently. "You make
too much of that," he said.
"Perhaps. I want to impress upon you that you
have a hard fight before you. The Webb men are
already putting in a little quiet work in the
legislature - and they have even been after the
guards at the penitentiary. Major Rann is your man,
and he tells me the Webb leaders are the quietest,
most insidious workers he has ever met. As it is, he
is your great card, and his influence is immense.
Webb would give his right hand for him."
The governor tossed the hair from his brow with
a quick movement.
"I have the confidence of the people," he said.
"The people! How long does it take a clever
politician to befuddle them? You aren't new to the
business, and you know these things as well as I do
- or better. I tell you, when Dudley Webb begins to
stump the State the people will begin to howl for
him. He'll win over the women and the old
Confederates when he gets on the Civil War, and the
rest will come easy. There won't be need of bogus
ballots and disappearing election books when the
members of the Democratic caucus are sent up
next session."
"What do you want?" demanded the governor
abruptly. He leaned forward, his arms on the desk.
Galt tapped the list of appointments significantly.
"As a beginning, I want you to scratch out a
good two-thirds of these names. The others will go
all right. The men I have cross marked are not all
Webb men to-day, but they will throw their
influence on Webb's side when the pull comes."
Nicholas took up the list and reread it carefully.
"The men I have named I believe to be best suited to
the positions," he returned. "One, you may observe,
is a Republican - that will call for hostile
criticism - but he was beyond doubt the best man. I
regret the fact that the majority of these men are
Webb partisans, but I wish to make these
appointments for reasons entirely apart from
politics."
Galt had risen, and he now stood looking down
upon the governor with a smile in his eyes.
"So it goes?" he asked, pointing to the sheet of
paper.
The other nodded.
"Yes, it goes. I am not a fool, Ben. I wish things
were different - but it goes."
"And so do I," laughed Galt easily. "You won't
mind my remarking, by the way, that you are a
brick, but a brick in the wrong road. However, you
hold on to Rann, and the rest of us will hold on to
you. Oh, we'll see you to-night at Carrie's coming-out
affair, of course. The child wouldn't have
you absent for worlds. If my wife and daughter
represented the community you might become
Dictator of Richmond. Good morning!"
As he crossed the little gallery where the portraits
hung there was an abstracted smile about the
corners of his shrewd mouth.
"Juliet!" called Galt as he swung open his house door.
It was his habit to call for his wife as soon as he
crossed the threshold, and she was accustomed to
respond from the drawing-room, the pantry, or the
nursery, as the case might be. This evening her
voice floated from the dining-room, and following
the sound he stumbled over a shadowy palm and
came upon Juliet as she put the last touches to a
long white table, radiant with cut glass and roses.
She wore a faded blue dressing-gown, caught
loosely together, and her curling hair, untouched by
gray, fell carelessly from its coil across her full, fair
cheek. She had developed from a fragile girl into a
rounded matron without losing the peculiar charm of
her beauty. The abundant curve of her white throat
was still angelic in its outline. As she leaned over to
settle the silver candelabra on the table, the light
deepened the flush in her face and imparted a
shifting radiance to her full-blown loveliness.
"How is it, little woman?" asked Galt as he put
his arm about the blue dressing-gown. "Working
yourself to death, are you?"
Since entering his home he had lost entirely
the air of business-like severity which he had worn
all day. He looked young and credulous. Juliet
laughed with the pettish protest of a half-spoiled
wife and drew back from the table.
"It is almost time to dress Carrie," she said, "and
the ice-cream hasn't come. Everything else is here.
Did you get dinner downtown?"
"Such as it was - a miserable presence. For
heaven's sake, let's have this over and settle down. I
only wish it were Carrie's wedding; then we might
hope for a rest."
"Until Julie comes out - she's nearly fourteen.
But you ought to be ashamed, when we've been
working like Turks. Eugenia cut up every bit of the
chicken salad and Emma Carr made the
mayonnaise - she makes the most delicious you
ever tasted. Aren't those candelabra visions? Emma
lent them to me, and Mrs. Randolph sent her
oriental lamps. There's the bell now! It must be
Eugie's extra forks; she said she'd send them as
soon as she got home."
"Good Lord! " ejaculated Galt feebly. "You are
as great at borrowing as the children of Israel."
His comments were cut short by the entrance of
Eugenia's silver basket, accompanied by an
enormous punch bowl, which she sent word she had
remembered at the last moment.
"Bless her heart!" exclaimed Juliet. "She forgets
nothing; but I hope that bowl won't get broken, it is
one somebody brought the general from China
fifty years ago. Eugie is so careless. She invited the
children to tea the other afternoon and I found her
giving them jam on those old Tucker Royal
Worcester plates."
She broke off an instant to draw Galt into the
reception rooms, where her eyes roved sharply
over the decorations.
"They look lovely, don't they?" she inquired,
rearranging a bowl of American Beauty roses. "I
got that new man to do them Mrs. Carrington told
me about - Yes, Carrie, I'm coming! Why, I
declare, I haven't seen the baby since breakfast.
Unnatural mother!"
And she rushed off to the nursery, followed by Galt.
An hour later she was in the drawing-room again,
her fair hair caught back from her plump cheeks,
her white bosom shining through soft falls of lace.
"I wonder how a man feels who isn't married to
a beauty," remarked Galt, watching her matronly
vanity dimple beneath his gaze. He was as much
her lover as he had been more than twenty years
ago when pretty Juliet Burwell had put back her
wedding veil to meet his kiss. The very exactions of
her petted nature had served to keep alive the
passion of his youth; she demanded service as her
right, and he yielded it as her due. The unflinching
shrewdness of his professional character, the
hardness of his business beliefs, had never entered
into the atmosphere of his home. Juliet possessed to
a degree that pervasive womanliness which
vanquishes mankind. After twenty years of married
life in which Galt had learned her limitations and her
minor sins of temperament, he was not able to face
her stainless bosom or to meet her pure eyes
without believing her to be a saint. In his heart he
knew Sally Burwell to be a nobler woman than
Juliet, and yet he never found himself regarding
Sally through
an outward and visible veil of her virtues. Even
Tom Bassett, who was married to her, had lost the
lover in the husband, as his emotions had matured
into domestic sentiment. Galt had seen Sally wrestle
for a day with one of her father's headaches, to be
rewarded by less gratitude than Juliet would receive
for the mere laying of a white finger on his temple
- Sally's services were looked upon by those who
loved her best as one of the daily facts of life;
Juliet's came always as an additional bounty.
To Galt himself, the different developments of the
two women had become a source of almost
humorous surprise. After her marriage Sally had
sunk her future into Tom's; Galt had submerged his
own in Juliet's. Behind Tom's not too remarkable
success Galt had seen always Sally's quicker wit
and more active nature; to his own ambitions, his
love for Juliet had been the retarding influence. He
had been called "insanely aspiring" in his
profession, and yet he had sacrificed his career
without a murmur for the sake of his wife's health.
He had sundered his professional interests in New
York that he might see the colour rebloom in her
cheek, and neither he nor she had questioned that
the loss was justified. In return she had rendered
him a jealous loyalty and an absorbing wife-hood,
and he had found his happiness apart from his
ambition.
Now she dimpled as he looked at her and he
pinched her cheek.
"The mother of six children!" he exclaimed;
"they're changelings." He looked at Carrie, who was
flitting nervously from room to room.
"It's a shame she didn't take after you," he
added. "She carries the curse of my chin."
"She's splendid!" protested Juliet. "I never had
such a figure in my life; Sally says so. Carrie is a
new woman, that's the difference."
"But the old lady's good enough for me," finished
Galt triumphantly; then he melted towards his
daughter. "I dare say she's stunning," he observed.
"Come here, Carrie, and bear witness that you're
as handsome as your parents."
Carrie floated up, a straight, fine figure in white
organdie, her smooth hair shining like satin as it
rolled from her brow. Her mouth and chin were too
strong for beauty, but she was frank and clean and
fresh to look at.
"Oh, I am just like you," she declared, "and I'm
not half so pretty as mamma. There's the bell.
Somebody's coming!"
There was a rustle of women's skirts on the way
upstairs, and in a moment several light-coloured
gowns were fringed by the palms in the doorway.
When the governor entered, several hours later,
the rooms were filled with warmth and laughter and
the vague perfume of women's dresses mingled
with the odour of American Beauty roses. An
old-fashioned polka was in the air, and beyond the
furthest doorway he saw young people dancing. The
red candles were burning down, and drops of wax
lay like flecks of blood upon the floor. Near the
entrance, a small, dark woman was leaning upon a
marble table, and as she saw him she held out a
cordial hand. She was plain and thin, with pale,
startled eyes and a mouth that slanted upward at one
corner, like a crooked seam. She spoke in an
abrupt, skipping manner that possessed a surprising
fascination.
"Behold the conquering hero!" she exclaimed,
her pale eyes roving from side to side. "I suppose if
you were never late, you would never be longed for."
"My dear Miss Preston," protested pretty little
Mrs. Carrington, who was soft and drowsy, with
eyes that reminded one of a ruminating heifer's.
"I assure you, I have been positively longing to
have you gratify my curiosity," declared Miss
Preston. "You know you do such dear, eccentric
things that we couldn't exist without you - at least I
couldn't because I should perish of boredom. No,
you shan't escape just yet, so stop looking at that
beautiful Mrs. Galt. You must tell me first if it is
really true that you once carried a woman out of a
burning building in your right hand. It is so delightful
to be strong, don't you think?"
The governor regarded her gravely. Before her
animated chatter his gravity became almost
grotesque. "The only burning building I was ever in
was a burning smoke-house," he returned quietly. "I
never carried a woman out of anything in either
hand."
There was a bored expression in his eyes, and he
glanced beyond the group to where Juliet stood
surrounded.
"Pardon me," he said in a moment, and passed
on.
In the crowd about him, where pretty women
were as plentiful as pinks in a garden bed, he moved
awkwardly, with the hesitating steps of a man who
is uncertain of his pathway. His powerful frame and
the splendid vigour in his daring strides seemed out
of place amid a profusion of exotics that trembled
as he passed. His appearance suggested the
battlegrounds of nature - high places, or the breadth
of the open fields; at the plough he would have been
grandly picturesque, in the centre of a throng of
graceful men and women he loomed merely large
and ill at ease. Above his evening clothes his face
showed rough, rather than refined, and his stubborn
jaw gave an impression of heaviness.
As he reached Juliet she uttered an exclamation
of pleasure and held out her hand. "Emma, you
have heard of my Sunday-school scholar," she said
to a girl beside her. "My prize scholar, I mean.
Sally, have you seen the governor?"
Emma Carr, a pink-and-white girl who bore
herself with the air of an acknowledged belle,
bowed, with a platitude that sounded original on her
lovely lips, and Sally Bassett turned with a hearty
handshake.
"And he is our Nick Burr!" she exclaimed.
"Tom, where are you?"
She spoke with an impulsive flutter which he had
remembered as the sparkle of mere girlish liveliness.
Now he saw that it had degenerated into a
restlessness that appeared to result from a
continued waste of nervous energy. She looked
older than Juliet, though she was in fact much
younger, and her face was drawn and heavily lined
as if by years of ill-health. Her physical strength
was prodigious; one perceived it with the
suddenness of surprise. Much
the same impression was produced by her youthful
manner in connection with her worn features; yet,
in spite of her faded prettiness, there was a singular
charm in her unabated vivacity.
She darted off in pursuit of Tom, to be arrested
by the first newcomer she encountered, and
Nicholas was responding gravely to Juliet's banter
when his eyes fell full upon Eugenia Battle as she
stood at a little distance.
He had not seen her for fifteen years, and he
started quickly as if from an unsuspected shock.
She was talking rapidly in her fervent voice, the old
illumination in her look. Her noble figure, in a
straight flaxen gown, was drawn against a
background of green, her head was bent forward on
her long white neck, her kindly hands were
outstretched. She had developed from a girl into a
woman, but to him she was unchanged. Her face
was, perhaps, older, her bosom fuller, but he did not
see it - to him she appeared as the resurrected spirit
of his youth. Miss Carr was speaking and he made
some brief rejoinder. Eugenia had turned and was
looking at him; in a moment he heard her voice.
"Are old friends too far beneath the eyes of your
excellency?" she asked, and he heard the soft
laugh pulse in her throat.
Her hand was outstretched, and he took it for an
instant in his own.
"I am very glad to see you," he remarked lamely
as he let it fall - so lamely that he bit his lip at the
remembrance. "You are looking well," he added.
"Of course - a woman always looks well at
night," she answered lightly. "And you," she
laughed again, her kindly, unconscious laugh; "you
are looking - large."
He did not smile. "I have no doubt of it," he
responded, and was silent.
Juliet Galt broke in with an affectionate protest.
"Eugie is as great a tease as ever," she said. "She
will be the death of my baby yet. I tell her to choose
one of her own size, but she never does. She
always plagues those smaller than herself - or
larger."
But Eugenia had turned away to greet a stranger,
and in a moment Nicholas drew back into a
windowed embrasure where the lights were dim.
Suddenly a voice broke upon his ear addressing
Juliet Galt - the vibrant tones of Dudley Webb. He
had come in late and was standing in mock
helplessness before Juliet and Carrie, his plump
white hand vacillating between the two.
"I am at a loss!" he exclaimed with an appealing
shrug of his shoulders. "Which is the debutante?"
Juliet laughed, her cheeks mantling with a pleased blush.
"You're a sad flatterer, Dudley! Isn't he, Eugie?"
Eugenia turned with a questioning glance.
"Oh, it's just his way," she returned good-humouredly.
"A kindly Providence has decreed that he should cover over
my deficiencies."
Dudley protested affably, and ended by giving a
hand to each. In the crowded rooms he had become
at once the picturesque and popular figure. His
magnetism was immediately felt, and men and
women surrounded him in small circles, while his
pleasant words ran on smoothly, accompanied by
the ring of his infectious laugh. The luminous pallor
of his clear-cut, yet fleshy face, was accentuated by
the sweep of his dark hair that clung closely to his
forehead. He seemed to have brought with him into
the heated rooms the spirit of humour and the zest
of life.
From the deep embrasure Nicholas Burr watched
curiously the flutter of women's skirts and the
flicker of candle light on shining heads. Eugenia
moved easily from group to group, the straight fall
of her flaxen gown giving her an added height, the
dark coil of hair on the nape of her long neck
seeming to rise above the shoulders of other
women. She was never silent - for one and all she
had some ready words, and her manner was cordial,
almost affectionate. It was as if she were in the
midst of a great family party, held together by the
ties of blood.
In a far corner Juliet Galt and Emma Carr, the
prettiest women in the room, sat together upon a
corn-coloured divan, and in front of them a file of
men passed and repassed slowly on their way to
and from the dining-room, pausing to exchange brief
remarks and drifting on aimlessly. Near them a fair,
pale gentleman, robust and slightly bald, with
protruding eyes and anaemic lips, had flung himself
upon a gilded chair, a glass of punch in his hand. He
had danced incessantly for hours in the adjoining
room, and at last, wearied, winded, with a palpitating
heart, he had found a punch bowl and a gilded
chair.
Through the doorway floated music and the
laughter of young girls intoxicated with the dance.
In the hall, some had sought rest upon the stairway,
and sat in radiant clusters, fanning themselves
briskly as they talked. There was about them an
absence of coquetry as of self-consciousness; they
were frank, cordial-voiced, almost boyish.
The governor stepped suddenly from the
embrasure and ran against Ben Galt, who caught
his arm.
"I've been searching the house for you," he
exclaimed, "after landing my twelfth matron in the
dining-room." Then catching sight of the other's
face, he inquired blandly:
"Bored?"
"I am."
Galt gave a comprehending wink.
"So am I. These things are death. I say, don't go!
Come into the library and we'll lock the door and
have supper shoved in through the window, while
we talk business. I've a decanter of the finest
Madeira you ever tasted behind the bookcase. Juliet
will never know, and I don't care a continental if she
does. I'm a desperate man!"
"I was just going," replied the governor. "I'm not
up to parties; but lead off, if it's out of this."
It was one o'clock when the governor left Galt's house,
and turning into Grace Street strolled leisurely in the
direction of the Capitol Square. The night was sharp with
frost and a rising wind drove the shadows on the
pavement against darkened house-fronts, while behind a
far-off church spire, a wizened moon shivered through a
thin cloud. On the silence came the sound of fire bells
ringing in the distance.
The bronze Washington in the deserted square shone
silver beneath the moonlight, and down the frozen slopes
the trees stretched out stiffened limbs. From the
governor's house a broad light streamed, and quickening
his pace he entered the iron gate, which closed after him
with a rheumatic cough, and briskly ascended the stone
steps. As he drew the latch-key from his pocket he was
thinking of his library, where the firelight fell on cheerful
walls and red leathern chairs, and with the closing of the
door he crossed the hall and entered the first room on the
left.
A red fire burned in the grate, and the furniture
reflected the colour until the place seemed pervaded by a
visible warmth. The desk in the centre of the room, the
shining backs of law books, the crimson rugs, the
engravings on the walls, the easy chair drawn up before
the hearth, presented to him as he entered now the
security of individual isolation. He
had felt the same sense of restfulness when he had
ascended, after the day's work, to the little white-washed
attic of his father's house. To-night he liked the glow
because it suggested warmth, but he could not have told
off-hand the colour of the carpet or the subjects of the
engravings on the wall; and had he found a white pine
chair in place of the red leathern one, he would have used
it without an admission of discomfort. In the midnight
hours he liked the empty house about him- the silence
and the safeguard of his loneliness. The deserted
reception-rooms at the end of the hall pleased him by
their stillness and the cold of their tireless grates. Even
the stiff, unyielding furniture, in its fancy dress of satin
brocade, soothed him by its remoteness when he passed
it wrapped in thought.
He flung himself into the easy chair, raised the light by
which he read, and unfolded a newspaper lying upon his
desk. As he did so an article which concerned himself
caught his eye, and he read it with curious intentness.
"THE MAN WITH THE CONSCIENCE.
REFUSES TO RECOMMEND THE PROPOSED
RESTRICTION OF THE SUFFRAGE.
ATTACHES HIS SIGNATURE TO SEVERAL BILLS. - TO
AMEND AND RE-ENACT THE CHARTER OF THE
TOWN OF CULPEPER - TO ESTABLISH A
FERRY ACROSS THE PIANKITANK."
He reread it abstractedly, pondering not the future of
Culpeper or of the Piankitank River, but the title by which
he was beginning to be known:
"The Man with the Conscience!" He had been in
office less than a month, and three times within the
last week he had been called "The Man with the
Conscience." Once a member of the Senate had
declared on the floor that the "two strongest factors
in present State politics are found to be in the will of
the people and the conscience of the governor." The
morning papers had reported it, and when, several
days later, he had vetoed a bill providing to place
certain powers in the hands of a corporation that
was backed by large capital, he had been hailed
again as "The Man with the Conscience!" Now he
wondered as he read what the verdict would be to-morrow,
when his refusal to sign a document which
lay at that moment upon his desk must become
widely known. He had refused, not because the bill
granted too great rights to a corporation, but
because it needlessly restricted the growth of a
railroad. Would his refusal in this instance be
dubbed "conscience" or "inconsistency"?
At the moment he was the people's man - this he
knew. His name was cheered by the general voice.
As he passed along the street bootblacks hurrahed!
him. He had determined that the governorship
should cease to represent a figurehead, and for right
or wrong, he was the man of the hour.
He laid the paper aside, and lifting a pipe from his
desk, slowly lighted it. As the smoke curled up, it
circled in gray rings upon the air, filling the room
with the aroma of the Virginia leaf. He watched it
idly, his mind upon the pile of unopened letters
awaiting his attention. Above the mantel hung a
small oil painting of a Confederate soldier after Appomattox,
and it reminded him vaguely of some one
whom he had half forgotten. He followed the trail
for a moment and gave it up. Higher still was an
engraving of Mr. Jefferson Davis, with the
well-remembered Puritan cast of feature and the
severe chin beard. Beneath the pictures a trivial
ornament stood on the mantel and beside it a white
rose in water breathed a fading fragrance. A child
who had come to feed the squirrels in the square
had put the rose in his coat, and he had transferred
it to the glass of water.
He turned towards his desk and took up several
cards that he had not seen. So Rann had called in
his absence - and Vaden and Diggs. As he pushed
the cards aside, he summoned mentally the men
before him and weighed the possible values of each.
Why had Rann called, he wondered - he had an
object, of course, for he did not pay so much as a
call without a purpose. The name evoked the man
- he saw him plainly in the circles of gray smoke -
a stout, square figure, with short legs, his plaid socks
showing beneath light trousers; a red, hairy face,
with a wart in his left eyebrow, which was heavier
than his right one; a large head, prematurely bald,
and beneath an almost intellectual forehead, a pair
of shrewd, intelligent eyes. Rann was a match for
any man in politics, he knew - the great, silent
voice, some one had said - the man who was clever
enough to let others do his talking for him. Yes, he
was glad that Rann would back him up.
The remaining callers appeared together in his
reverie - Vaden and Diggs. They were never
mentioned apart, and they never worked singly. They
were honest men, whose honesty was dangerous
because it went with dull credulity. In appearance
they were so unlike as to make the connection
ludicrous. Vaden was long, emaciated, with a
shrunken chest in which a consumptive cough
rattled. His face was scholarly, pallid, pleasant to
look at, and there was a sympathetic quality in his
voice which carried with it a reminder of past
bereavements. Beside the sentimental languor which
enveloped him, Diggs loomed grotesquely fair and
florid, with eyes bulging with joviality, and red,
repellent, almost gluttonous lips. He was a teller of
stories and a maker of puns.
They were both honest men and ardent
Democrats, but they were in the leading strings of
sharper politicians. Perhaps, after all, the fools were
more to be feared than the villains.
Somewhere in the city a clock rang the hour, and,
as his pipe died out, he rose and went to his desk.
The next morning Vaden and Diggs dropped in to
breakfast, and before it was over he had
ascertained that they were seeking to sound him
upon his attitude towards the recent National Party
Platform. As he dodged their laboured cross-examination
he laughed at the overdone assumption
of indifference. Before they had risen from the
table, Rann joined them, and the conversation
branched at once into impersonal topics. Diggs told
a story or two, at which Rann roared appreciatively,
while Vaden fingered his coffee spoon in pensive
abstraction.
As they left the dining-room, which was in the
basement, and ascended to the hall, Diggs glanced
into the reception-rooms and nodded respectfully at
the brocaded chairs.
"I like the looks of that, governor," he said, "but
it's a pity you can't find a wife. A woman gives an
air to things, you know." Then he cocked an eye at
the ceiling. "This old house ain't much more than a
fire trap, anyway," he added. "The trouble is it's
gotten old-fashioned just like the Capitol building
over there. My constituents are all in favour of
doing the proud thing by Virginia and giving her a
real up-to-date State House. Bless my life, the old
Commonwealth deserves a brownstone front - now
don't she?"
He appealed to Rann, who dissented in his broad,
if blunt, intelligence.
"I wouldn't trade that old building for all the
brownstone between here and New York harbour,"
he declared.
The governor laughed abstractedly, but a week
later he recalled the proposition as he sat in Juliet
Galt's drawing-room, and repeated it for the sake of
her frank disgust.
"I shall tell Eugie," she exclaimed. "Eugie finds
everything so new that she suffers a perpetual
homesickness for Kingsborough."
"There's nobody left down there except the
judge and Mrs. Webb," broke in Carrie; "and you
know she gets on dreadfully with Mrs. Webb - now
doesn't she, Aunt Sally?"
"She never told me so," laughed Sally, "but I
strongly suspect it. I don't disguise the fact that I
consider Mrs. Webb to be a terror, and Eugie's a
long way off from saintship."
"I hardly think that Mrs. Webb would consent to
join our colony," observed Nicholas indifferently.
"May Kingsborough long enjoy her rule," added
Juliet. "I hear that she has grown quite amiable
towards the judge since she prophesied that he
would have chronic gout and he had it."
"It would be so nice of them to marry each
other," suggested Carrie with an eye for matrimonial
interests. "You needn't shake your head, mamma.
Aunt Sally said the same thing to Uncle Tom."
She was standing on the hearth rug in her
walking gown, slowly fastening her gloves. Sally
looked at her and laughed in her nervous way.
"Well, I confess that it did cross my mind," she
admitted. "Tom, like all men, believed Mrs. Webb
to be a martyr until I convinced him that she
martyred others."
"Oh, he still believes it behind your back," said
Nicholas.
Juliet turned upon him frankly. "It's a shame to
destroy wifely confidence," she protested. "Sally
hasn't been married long enough to know that the
only way to convince a husband is to argue against
oneself."
Her head rested upon the cushions of her chair,
and her pretty foot was on the brass fender. There
was a cordial warmth about her which turned the
simple room into home for even the casual caller.
The matronly grace of her movements evoked the
memory of infancy and motherhood; to Nicholas
Burr she seemed, in her beauty and her abundance,
the supreme expression of a type - of the joyous
racial mother of all men.
Her youngest child, a girl of three, that she called
"baby," had come in from a walk and was standing
at her knee in white cap and cloak and mittens, her
hand clutching Juliet's dress, her solemn eyes on the
governor. He had tried to induce her to approach,
but she held off and regarded him without a smile.
"Now, now, baby," pleaded Juliet, "who fed the
bunnies with you the other day?"
"Man," responded the baby gravely.
"Who gave you nice nuts for the dear bunnies?"
"Man."
"Who carried you all round the pretty square?"
"Man."
"Who gave you that lovely picture book full of
animals?"
"Man."
"Then don't you love the kind man?"
"Noth."
"Yes, you do - you've forgotten. Go and speak
to him."
The child approached gravely to make a grab at
his watch-chain; he lifted her to his knee, and
friendship was established. They were at peace a
moment later when a voice was heard in the hall,
and the curtains were swung back as Eugenia
Webb entered, tall and glowing, her head rising from
a collar of fur. She brought with her the breath of
frost, and the winter red was in her cheeks, fading
slowly as she sat down and threw off her wraps.
He saw then that she looked older than he thought
and that her elastic figure had settled into matronly lines.
She raised her spotted veil and drew off her
gloves.
"I mustn't talk myself out," she was saying
lightly, "because Dudley means to make me bring
him to call this evening. I can't induce him to come
by himself - he simply won't. He considers my
mission in life to be the combined duties of paying
his calls and entertaining his legislators. We had six
senators to dinner last night, and we pay six visits
this evening. Come here, Tweedle-dee," to the
baby. "Come to your own Aunt Eugie and give her
a kiss."
The child looked at her thoughtfully and shook
her head.
"Kith man," she responded shortly.
The swift red rose to Eugenia's face. Nicholas
was looking at her, and her eyes flashed with the
old anger at a senseless blush.
"That's right, old lady," said the governor to the
child. "Tell her you'd rather kiss a man every time."
"Of course she had," replied Eugenia half
angrily. "She's going to be her mother all over
again."
Juliet laughed her full, soft laugh. "Now, Eugie,"
she protested gaily, "my sins are many, but spare
me a public confession of them."
"She takes after her aunt," put in Sally frankly.
"I always liked men better, and I think it's
un-womanly not to - don't you, governor?"
Nicholas put the child down and rose.
"I'm afraid my womanliness is only skin deep,"
he returned, "but I wouldn't give one honest man
for all the women since Eve."
"Behold our far-famed gallantry!" exclaimed
Sally.
Eugenia looked up, laughing. She had seized upon
the child, and he saw her dark eyes above the
solemn blue ones.
"I'm afraid you aren't much of a politician,
Governor Burr, if you tell the truth so roundly," she
said. "The first lesson in politics is to lie and love it;
the second lesson is to lie and live it. Oh, we've
been in Congress, Dudley and I."
She moved restlessly, and her colour came and
went like a flame that flickers and revives. He
wondered vaguely at her nervous animation - she
had not possessed a nerve in her girlhood - nor had
he seen this shifting restlessness the other night. It
did not occur to him that the meeting with himself
was the cause - he knew her too well - but had his
presence, or some greater thing, aroused within her
painful memories of the past?
As he walked down Franklin Street a little later
he contrasted boldly the two Eugenias he had
known - the Eugenia who was his and the Eugenia
who was Dudley Webb's. After fifteen years the
rapture and the agony of his youth showed
grotesque to his later vision; men did not love like
that at forty years. He could see Eugenia now
without the quiver of a pulse; he could sit across
from her, knowing that she was the wife of another,
and could eat his dinner. His passion was dead, but
where it had bloomed something else drew life and
helped him to live. He had loved one woman and he
loved her still, though with a love which in his youth
he would have held to be as ashes beside his flame.
There were months even years - when he did not
think of her; when he thought profoundly
of other things; but in these years the thrill of no
woman's skirts had disturbed his calm. And again, there
were winter evenings - evenings when he sat beside the
hearth, and there came to him the thought of a home and
children - of a woman's presence and a child's laugh. He
could have loved the woman well had she been Eugenia,
and he could have loved the child had it been hers; but
beyond her went neither his vision nor his desire.
Now he swung on, large, forceful, a man young
enough to feel, yet old enough to know. He entered his
door quickly, as was his custom, impatient for his work
and his fireside. On his desk lay the papers that had been
brought over by his secretary, and he ran his fingers
carelessly through them, gleaning indifferently the drift
of their contents. As he did so a light flashed suddenly
upon him, and the meaning of Eugenia's restlessness was
made clear, for upon his desk was an application for the
pardon of Bernard Battle.
The paper was still in his hand when the door behind
him opened.
"A lady to see you, suh."
"A lady?" He turned impatiently to find himself
facing Eugenia Webb. She had come so swiftly, with a
silence so apparitional, that he fell back as from a blow
between the eyes. For a moment he doubted her reality,
and then the glow in her face, the mist on her furs, the
fog of her breath, proclaimed that she had followed
closely upon his footsteps. She must have been almost
beside him when he hurried through the frost.
"You wish to speak to me?" he asked blankly, as he
drew a chair to the hearth rug. "Will you not sit down?"
There was an unfriendly question in his eyes, and she
met it boldly with the old dash of impulse.
"They told me that to-morrow would be too late," she
said. "I went to Ben Galt's to ask him to come to you in
my place, but he is out of town. I found you there
instead. It is a matter of life and death to me, so I came."
She sat down in the chair he had drawn up for her,
her muff fell to the floor, and he placed it upon the desk
where the petition lay unrolled. As he did so he saw the
list of names that presented the appeal - judge, jury,
prosecuting attorney, all were there.
She followed his gaze and moved slightly towards
him. "It can't be true that you - that you will
not -" she said.
He was stirring the fire into flame, but as she
broke off he turned squarely upon her.
"I have not looked into the case," he answered harshly.
He was standing beside his own hearthstone and
he was at ease. There was no awkwardness about
him now; his height endowed him with majesty, and
in his inflexible face there was no suggestion of
heaviness. He looked a man with a sublime
self-confidence.
Her colour beat quickly back, warming her eyes.
"Oh, I am so glad," she said. "When you know
all you will do as we ask you, because it is right and
just. If he did not serve that two years' sentence he
has served six years of poverty and sickness. He is
a wreck - we should not know him, they say - and
he has not seen his wife and children for -"
He raised his hand and stopped her. A rising
anger clouded his face, and, as she met his eyes,
she slowly whitened.
"And you ask me - me of all men - to show
mercy to Bernard Battle? Was there not a governor
of Virginia before me?"
She shook her head.
"Oh, it was different then - he did not know, and
we did not know, everything. For years we had not
heard from him -"
"So my predecessor refused?" he asked.
She bowed her head. "But it is so different now
- every one is with us."
He was looking her over grimly in an anger that
seemed an emotional reversion to the past - as he
felt himself reverting with all his strength to the
original savage of the race. The hour for which he
had starved sixteen years ago was unfolding for him
at last. He gloated over it with a passion that would
sicken him when it was done.
"When you came to me," he said slowly, "did
you remember -"
She had risen and was standing before him, her
hands hidden in the fur upon her bosom. She was
pleading now with startled eyes and cold lips - she
who had turned from him when the first lie was
spoken - she was pleading for the man who had
blackened his friend's honour that he might shield his
own - she was pleading though she knew his
baseness. The very nobility of her posture - the
nobility that he had found outwardly in no other
woman - hardened the man before her. The cold
brow, the fervent mouth, the fearless eyes, the lines
with which Time had chastened into womanliness
her girlish figure - these had become the expression
of an invincible regret. As he faced her the iron of
his nature held him as in a vise, for life, which had
made him a just man, had not made him a gentle one.
But her spirit had risen to match with his. "He
wronged you once," she said; "let it pass - we have
all been young and very ignorant; but we do not
make our lives, thank God."
He looked at her in silence.
Then, as he stood there, the walls of the room
passed from before his eyes, and the gray light
from the western window was falling upon the
white road beyond the cedars. The vague pasture swept to the
far-off horizon where hung the solitary star above
the sunset. From the west a light wind blew, and
into their faces dead leaves whirled from denuded
trees far distant. But surest of all was this - he
hated now as he hated then. "As for him - may
God, in His mercy, damn him," he had said.
"Because he wronged you do not wrong
yourself," she spoke fearlessly, but she fell back
with an upward movement of her hands. The man
was before her as the memory had been for
years - she knew the distorted features, the
convulsed, closed mouth, the furrow that cleft the
forehead like a scar. She saw the savage as she
had seen it once before, and she braved it now as
she had braved it then.
"You are hard - as hard as life," she said.
"Life is as we make it," he retorted. He lifted her
muff from the desk and she took it from him, turning
towards the door. As he followed her into the hall
he spoke slowly: "I shall read the papers that relate
to the case," he said. "I shall do my duty. You were
mistaken if you supposed that your coming to me
would influence my decision. Personal appeal rarely
avails and is often painful."
He unlatched the outer door and she passed out
and descended the steps.
When he returned to the fire he was shivering
from the draught let in by the opening doors, and,
lifting the fallen poker, he attacked almost fiercely
the slumbering coals. The physical shock had not
tempered the rage within; he felt it gnawing upon
his entrails like a beast of prey. Once only in his life
had he found himself so powerless before a
devouring passion, and then, as now, he had glutted
it with wounded love. Then, as now, he had hated
with a terrible desire.
The application lay upon his desk, and he pushed
it out of sight. He could not read it now - he
wondered if the time would ever come when he
could read it. The thought smote him with the lash
of fear - the fear of himself. He who an hour ago
had held his assurance to be beyond assault was
now watching for the death of his hate as he might
have watched for the death of a wolf whose fangs
he had felt.
Lifting his head, he could see through the
curtained window the chill slopes of the square and
the circular drive beneath the great bronze
Washington. Beyond the distant gates rose the
church spires of the city, suffused with the pink
flush of sunset. The atmosphere glowed like a blush
upon the perspective, which was shading through
variations of violet remoteness. All was frozen save
the winter sunset and the advancing twilight.
He turned from the window and faced the
painting of the Confederate soldier. For a moment
he regarded it blankly, then, pushing aside Eugenia's
chair he threw himself into one across from it. He
was thinking of Bernard Battle, and he remembered
suddenly that he must have hated him always - that
he had hated him long ago in his childhood when the
weak-faced boy had headed a school faction
against him. True, Dudley Webb had incited the
attempt at social ostracism, but he bore no
resentment against Dudley - on the contrary, he
was convinced that he liked him in spite of all - in
spite, even, of Eugenia. With the
inflexible fairness that he never lost, he
knew that, with Eugenia, Dudley had not wronged
him. It had been a fight in open field, and Dudley
had won. He had even liked the vigour of his
wooing, and some years later, when they had met,
he had given the victor a hearty handshake. He
distrusted him as a politician, but he liked him as a
man.
And Bernard Battle. That was an honest hate,
and he hugged it to him. Before him still, so vivid
that it seemed but yesterday, hovered the memory
of that wild evening in the road, and the unforgotten
sunset faced him as he hurried through the wood. In
the acuteness of his remembered senses he could
hear the dead leaves rustle in his pathway and could
smell the vague scents of autumn drifting on the
wind. Through all the years of public life and
passionate endeavour he had not lost one colour of
the painted clouds or missed one note from the
sharp tangle of autumn odours. To this day the
going down of the sun in red and gold awoke within
him the impulse of revenge, and the effluvium of
rotting flowers or the tang of pines revived the
duller ache of his senseless rage.
On that evening he had buried his youth with his
youthful passion. The hours between the twilight
and the dawn had seen his emotions consumed and
his softer side laid waste. Since then he had not
played saint or martyr; he had gone his way among
women, and he had liked some good ones and some
bad ones - but the turn of Eugenia's head or the
trick of her voice had haunted him in one and all.
He had followed the resemblance and had found
the vacancy; he had been from first to last a man of
one ideal. His nature had broadened, hardened, rung
metallic to the senses; but it had not yielded to the
shock of fresh emotions. He had loved one woman
from her childhood up.
And again she rose before him as in that Indian
summer when he knew her best - her beauty
flaming against the autumn landscape, "clear as the
sun, and terrible as an army with banners." He saw
her red or pale, quivering or cold, always passing
from him in a splendour of colours that was like the
clash of music.
That was sixteen years ago and it seemed but
yesterday. He had lost her, and yet he had not been
unhappy, for he had learned that it is not gain that
makes happiness nor loss that kills it. Life had long
since taught him the lesson all great men
learn - that happiness is but one result of the
adjustment of the individual needs to the Eternal
Laws. A man had once said of him, "Burr must
think a lot of life; he bears it so blamed well. He's
the happiest man I know," and Burr, overhearing
him, had laughed aloud:
"Am I? I have never thought about it."
He did not think about life, he lived it; this was
the beginning and the end of his success.
The face of Eugenia faded slowly into the
firelight, and he rose and shook himself like a man
who awakes from a nightmare. There was work
for him at his desk, and he settled to it with sudden
determination.
A week later the papers were still in his desk. He
told himself at first that he would send them to
Kingsborough to Judge Bassett and abide by his
decision; but the course struck him as cowardly and
he put it from him. The work was his and he would
do it. Then for a week longer he went on his way
and did not think of them. His days were filled with
work and it was easy to leave disturbing thoughts
alone; what was not easy was to consider them
judicially.
At last Galt spoke of the matter, and he could not
refuse to listen.
"By the way, I am hearing a good deal about that
Battle pardon," Gait said. "You are looking into the
matter, I suppose?"
The other shook his head.
"I have not done so as yet," he answered. "I am
waiting."
"Don't wait too long or the poor devil may apply
higher. He's ill, I believe, and if he insists on
returning to the State, as they say he will, the law
can't help but arrest him. It's a sad case. So far as I
can see he was a catspaw for the real criminal and
didn't have sense enough to hold on to a share of
the money after he sold himself. His sister has been
to see you, hasn't she? She's a superb woman, and
it was a good day for Dudley Webb when he
married her."
He looked up inquiringly.
"Ah, what were you saying?" asked the
governor.
That night he locked himself in with the papers
and plunged into the case. He read and reread each
written word until he was in possession of the
minutest detail. In another instance he knew that
the reasons for granting the pardon would have
seemed sufficient, and he would probably have had it made
out at once. As it was, he admitted the force of the
appeal, but something stronger than himself held
him back. Above the name before him he saw the
girlish face of the man he hated - saw it accusing,
defying, beseeching - and beyond it he saw the
gray road and the solitary star above the sunset. In
the silence his own voice echoed, "As for
him - may God, in His mercy, damn him."
He locked the papers away again. "I cannot do
it," he said.
Several days later he sent for a member of the
legislature from the town where the crime was
committed. He questioned him closely, but without
result - the people up there were tired of it, the man
said - at first they had been wrought up, but six
years is a long time, and they didn't care much
about it now. As the governor closed the interview
he realised that he had hoped a bitter hope that his
revenge might be justified. When the door had shut,
he went back to the case again, and again he left it.
"It ought to be done, but, God help me, I cannot do
it," he said.
The next morning, while he was at work in his
office in the Capitol, his secretary came in to tell
him that Miss Christina Battle was in the anteroom.
He rose hurriedly. "I will see her at once," he said,
and he opened the door as Miss Chris came in,
panting softly from her ascent in the elevator.
She had changed so little that he took her hand in
sudden timidity, recalling the days when he had sold
her chickens before her hen-house door. But when
he had settled her in one of the cane rocking
chairs beside the stove, his confidence returned and
he responded heartily to her beneficent beam. Her
florid face, shining large and luminous above the
stiff black strings of her bonnet, reminded him of
illustrations he had seen in which the sun is
endowed with human features and an enveloping
smile.
"This is the greatest honour my office has
brought me," he said with sincerity.
She laughed softly, smoothing her black kid glove
above her plump wrist.
"I don't know what they mean by saying you
aren't a lady's man, Governor Burr," she returned.
"I am sure old Judge Blitherstone himself never
turned a prettier compliment, and he lived to be
upwards of ninety and did them better every day of
his life. They used to say that when Mrs. Peachy
Tucker dropped in to see him as he was breathing
his last, and told him to look forward to the joys of
heaven and the communion of saints, he replied,
'Madam, if you remain with me I shall merely pass
from one heaven to another,' and they were his last
words."
The governor smiled into her beautiful, girlish
eyes. "Men have spoken worse ones," he said, her
kindliness warming him like a cordial.
"It was good of you to come," he added.
"Not a bit of it," protested Miss Chris with
emphasis. "It's all about that poor, foolish boy - he's
still a boy to me, and so are you for that matter.
You know how wicked he has been and how
miserable he has made us all, for you can't stop
loving people just because they are bad. Now you
are a good man, Governor Burr, and that's why I
came to you. You'll do right if it kills you, and whatever
you do in this matter is going to be the right thing.
You can't help being good any more than he can
help being bad, and I hope the Lord understands this
as well as I do - I don't know, I'm sure - sometimes
it looks as if He didn't; but we'd just as well trust
Him, because there's nothing else for us to do.
"Now the foolish boy wronged you more than he
wronged us; but you'll forgive him as we forgave
him, when you know what he's suffered. It's better
to be sinned against than to sin, God knows."
Her eyes were moist and her lips trembled. The
governor crossed to where she sat and took her hand.
"Dear Miss Chris," he said, "women like you
make men heroes." And he added quickly, "The
pardon is being made out. When it is ready I will
sign it."
She looked at him an instant in silence; then she
rose heavily to her feet, leaning upon his arm. "You're
a great man, Nick Burr," she said softly.
An hour later Nicholas Burr looked calmly down
upon his signature that meant freedom for Bernard
Battle. He had won the victory of his life, and he
was feeling with a glow of self-appreciation that he
had done a generous thing.
Miss Chris, in her hired carriage, rolled leisurely
into Franklin Street, where pretty women in visiting
gowns were going in and out of doorways. She
leaned out and bowed smilingly several times, but
she was not thinking of the gracefully dressed
callers or of the houses into which they went. When
Emma Carr threw her a kiss from Galt's porch, she
responded amiably; but she was as blind to the
affectionate gesture as to the striking beauty of the
girl in her winter furs.
Up the quiet street the leafless trees made a gray
vista that melted into transparent mist. The sunshine
stretched in pale gold bars from sidewalk to
sidewalk, and overhead the sky was of a rare Italian
blue. But for the frost in the air and the naked
boughs, it might have been a day in April.
Presently the carriage turned into Main Street,
halting abruptly while a trolley car shot past.
"Please be very careful," called Miss Chris
nervously, gathering herself together as they
stopped before a big gray house that faced a gray
church on the opposite corner. A flight of stone
steps ran from the doorway to a short tesselated
entrance leading to the street, where two scraggy
poplars still held aloft the withered skeletons of last
year's tulips. The Webbs had taken the house
because the box bushes in the yard reminded Eugenia of Battle
Hall, while Dudley declared it to be the best
breathing space he could get for the money.
"We done git back, Mistis," announced the negro
driver, descending from his perch, and at the same
instant the door of the house flew open and Eugenia
ran out, bareheaded, followed by Dudley.
"I saw you from the window, Aunt Chris," she
cried, "and now I want to know the meaning of this
mystery. Dudley suspects you of having a lover, but
I am positive that you've stolen a march on me and
have been to market. What a pity I confessed to
you that I couldn't tell brains from sweetbreads."
"Let me get there, Eugie," said Dudley, as Miss
Chris emerged with the assistance of the driver.
"Take my arm, Aunt Chris, and I'll hoist you into the
house before you know it."
"Well, I declare," remarked Miss Chris, carefully
stepping forth. "I don't know when I've had such a
turn. These street car drivers have lost all their
manners. If we hadn't pulled up in time, I believe he
would have gone right into us. And to think that a
few years ago we never got ready to go to market
until the car was at the door. Betty Taylor used to
call to the driver every morning to wait till she put
on her bonnet - and time and again I've seen him
stop because she had forgotten her list of groceries.
Now, if you weren't standing right on the corner, I
actually believe they'd go by without you."
"That's progress, Aunt Chris," responded Dudley
cheerfully.
Here the driver insisted upon lending a hand, and
between them they established Miss Chris before
the fire in the sitting-room. "I wish you'd make
Giles go out and pick up that loose paper that's
scattered on the pavement," she said to Eugenia. "It
looks so untidy. If I wasn't rheumatic I'd do it
myself."
Dudley and Eugenia seated themselves across
from her. "Now where have you been, Aunt Chris?"
they demanded.
Miss Chris laughed softly as she took off her
bonnet and gloves and gave them to Eugenia; then
she unfastened her cape and passed it over.
"You'll never find out that, my dears," she
returned. "I'm not too old to keep a secret. Why,
I've gone and lost my bag. Didn't I carry that bag
with me, Eugenia?"
"Of course you did," said Eugenia. "Never mind,
I'll make you another." She went out to put away
Miss Chris's wraps, and came back presently,
laughing.
"Have you found out her secret, Dudley?" she
asked. "If she doesn't tell you, it will die with her."
"I know better than to ask," returned Dudley
good-humouredly. "That's the reason I'm her
favourite. I don't ask impertinent questions, do I,
Aunt Chris?"
"Bless you, no," responded Miss Chris serenely,
as she stretched out her feet in their cloth shoes.
"You're her favourite because you happen to be
a man," protested Eugenia. "She comes of a
generation of man spoilers. I believe she thinks I
ought to bring you your slippers in the evening -
now don't you, Aunt Chris?"
"My dear mother always brought them to my
father," replied Miss Chris placidly. "It was her
pleasure to wait on him."
"And it is mine to have Dudley wait on me. But
you do make an unfair difference between us, Aunt
Chris. Why did you call me 'uncharitable' when I
said Mrs. Gordon painted immodestly! Dudley said
the same thing this morning, and you only smiled."
"It was uncharitable, my dear, and besides it is
too palpable to need mention - but men will be
men."
Eugenia frowned. "I wish you would
occasionally remember that women will be women,"
she suggested. She wore a scarlet shirtwaist, and
the glow from the fire seemed to follow her about.
"I won't have Aunt Chris bullied, Eugie,"
declared Dudley as he rose. "Well, I'm off again. I
may bring a legislator or two back to dinner. What
have we got?"
"The Lord knows," replied Eugenia desperately.
"Our third cook this month for one thing, and Congo
refuses to serve dinner in courses. He says 'dar's
too much shufflin' er de dishes for too little victuals.' "
Dudley laughed at her mimicry.
"Oh, I suppose we'll do," he said. "By the way,
don't forget to call on Mrs. Rann to-day."
Miss Chris was gazing placidly into the fire. As
Dudley turned with his hand on the door knob, she
looked up.
"I was surprised to find the Capitol so dirty," she
observed regretfully.
Dudley swung round breathlessly.
"Well, I am - blessed!" he gasped.
"So that s where you've been!" cried Eugenia.
She threw herself beside Miss Chris's chair. "What
did he say, Aunt Chris?" she implored.
Miss Chris blushed with confusion.
"Well, if I haven't let it out!" she exclaimed.
"Who'd have thought I couldn't keep a secret at my
age." Then she patted Eugenia's hand. "He's a
good man," she said softly, "and it's all right about
Bernard."
"I knew it would be," said Dudley quickly. "You
know, Eugie, I always told you he'd do it."
But Eugenia had turned away with swimming
eyes. "I must tell Lottie," she said hurriedly. "Oh,
Aunt Chris, how could you keep it? To think the
children are at school!"
Dudley, with an afterthought, turned from the
door and gave her an affectionate pat on the
shoulder. "It's fine news, old girl," he said
cheerfully, and Eugenia smiled at him through her
tears.
As he went out she followed him into the hall and
slowly ascended the stairs. On the landing above
she entered a room where Bernard's wife was lying
on a wicker couch, cutting the pages of a magazine.
"Lottie, I've good news for you," she exclaimed,
"the best of news."
Lottie tossed aside the magazine and raised
herself on her elbow. She had a pretty, ineffectual
face and a girlish figure, and, despite her faded
colouring, looked almost helplessly young. Her
round white hands were as weak as a child's.
"I'm sure I don't know what it can be," she returned.
"You look awfully well in that red waist,
Eugie. I think I'll get one like it."
Eugenia picked up a child's story book from the
rug and laid it on the table; then she she stood looking
gravely down on the younger woman.
"Can't you guess what it is?" she asked.
Lottie looked up with a nervous blinking of her
eyes. She had paled slightly and she leaned over
and drew an eiderdown quilt across her knees.
"It - it's not about Bernard?" she asked in a
whisper.
"Yes, it is about Bernard. You may go to him
and bring him home. You may go to-morrow. Oh,
Lottie, doesn't it make you happy?"
Lottie drew the eiderdown quilt still higher. She
was not looking at Eugenia, and her mouth had
grown sullen. "I don't see why you send me," she
said. "Why can't Jack Tucker bring him home?
He's with him."
"But I thought you wanted to go," returned
Eugenia blankly.
"I haven't seen him for six years," said Lottie, her
face still turned away. "He is almost a
stranger - and I am afraid of him.''
"Oh, Lottie, he loves you so!"
"I don't know," protested Lottie. "He has been
so wicked."
Eugenia was looking down upon her with
dismayed eyes.
"Don't you love him, Lottie?" she asked.
For a moment the other did not reply. Her lips
trembled and her knees were shaking beneath the
eiderdown quilt. Then with a slow turn of the head
she looked up doggedly. "I believe I hate him," she
answered.
A swift flush rose to Eugenia's face, her eyes
flashed angrily, she took a step forward. "And you
are his wife!" she cried.
But Lottie had turned at last. She flung the quilt
aside and rose to her feet, her girlish figure
quivering in its beribboned wrapper. There were
bright pink spots in her cheeks.
"Yes, I am his wife, God help me," she said.
Eugenia had drawn back before the childish
desperation. Lottie had never revolted before - she
had thought Eugenia's thoughts and weakly lived up
to Eugenia's conception of her duty. She had been
meek and amiable and ineffectual; but it came to
Eugenia with a shock that she had never admired
her until to-day - until the hour of her rebellion.
She spoke sternly - as she might have spoken to
herself in a moment of dear, but dismal failure.
"Hush," she commanded. "You are one of us,
and you have no right to desert us. It is because you
are his wife that my home is yours and your
children's. I am only his sister, and I have stood by
him through it all. Do you think, if his sins were
twenty times as great, that I should fall away from
him now?"
Lottie looked at her and laughed - a little
heartless laugh.
"Oh, but I am not a Battle," she replied bitterly.
"Battle sins are just like other people's sins to me."
Then she raised her pretty, nerveless hands to
her throat.
"I have wanted to be free all these years," she
said. "All these years when you would not let me
forget Bernard Battle - when you shut me up and
hid me away, and made me old when I was young.
And now - just as I am beginning to be happy with
my children - you tell me that I must go back to him
and start afresh."
Her voice grated upon Eugenia's ears, and she
realised more acutely than her pity the fact that
Lottie was common - hopelessly common. For an
instant she forgot Bernard's greater transgressions
in the wonder that a Battle should have married a
woman who did not know how to behave in a
crisis - who could even chant her wrongs from the
housetop. At the moment this seemed to her the
weightier share of the family remissness. The
loyalty of the Battle wives had been as a lasting
memorial to the Battle breeding - which, after all,
was more invincible than the Battle virtue.
She crossed to the window and stood looking out
upon the winter sunshine falling on the gray church
across the way. On the stone steps a negro nurse
was sitting, drowsily trundling back and forth before
her a beruffled baby carriage. Nearer at hand, in
the yard on the left of the tesselated entrance
below, a pointed magnolia tree shone evergreen
beside the naked poplars, and a bevy of sparrows
fluttered in and out amid the sheltering leaves.
"Oh, you will never understand," wailed Lottie.
She had flung herself upon the couch and was
sobbing weakly. "It is so different with you and
Dudley."
Eugenia turned and came back. "I do understand,"
she resumed gently, and before Lottie could
raise her head she left the room.
She had promised Dudley that the calls should be
made, and she put on her visiting gown without a
thought of shirking the fulfilment of her pledge.
From the day of her marriage she had zealously
accepted the obligations forced upon her by
Dudley's political aspirations, and Mrs. Rann
became today simply a heavier responsibility than
usual. Her world was full of Mrs. Ranns, and she
braved them with dauntless spirits and triumphant
humour. As she buttoned her gloves on the way
downstairs she was conscious of a singularly mild
recognition of the fact that the world might have
been the gainer had Mrs. Rann abided unborn.
But the fresh air restored her courage, and by the
time she sat in Mrs. Rann's drawing-room, face to
face with her hostess, she was at ease with herself
and her surroundings. She gave out at once the
peculiar social atmosphere of her race; she uttered
her gay little nothings with an intimate air; she
laughed good-humouredly at Mrs. Rann's gossip,
and she begged to see photographs of Mrs. Rann's
babies. It was as if she had immediately become
the confidential adviser of Mrs. Rann's domestic
difficulties.
Mrs. Rann, herself, was little and plain and
obsolete. She appeared to have been left behind in
the sixties, like words that have become vulgar
from disuse. She wore bracelets on her wrists, and
her accent was as flat as her ideas. Before the war
- and even long after - nobody had heard of the
Ranns; they had arrived as suddenly as the electric
lights or the trolley cars. When Miss Chris had
alluded to them as "new people," and Juliet Galt had
declared that she "did not call there," Dudley had
thrown out an uncertain line to Eugenia. "Rann is a
useful man, my dear," he had said. "He may be of
great help to me," and the next day Eugenia had left
her card. Where Dudley's ambitions led she
cheerfully followed.
"We are politicians," was her excuse to Juliet,
"and we can't afford to be exclusive. Of course, with
Emma Carr and yourself it is different. You may
exclude half society if you please, and, in fact, you
do; but Dudley and I really don't mind. He wants
something, and I, you know, was born without the
instinct of class."
So she sat in Mrs. Rann's drawing-room and
received her confidences, while Juliet and Emma
Carr were gossiping across the street.
"The greatest trouble I have with Mr. Rann
when he comes to town," said Mrs. Rann, "is that
he refuses to wear woollen socks. I don't know
whether Mr. Webb wears woollen socks or not."
Eugenia shook her head.
"I've no doubt he would be a better and a wiser
man if he did," she responded.
"Then he doesn't catch cold when he puts on thin
ones with his dress suit. Now Mr. Rann says
woollen socks don't look well in the evening - and
he takes cold every time he goes out at night. He
won't even let me put red flannel in the soles of his shoes."
"Then he's not the man I thought him," said
Eugenia as she rose. "Do you know, the baby is so
pretty I stopped her carriage. If she were mine I
shouldn't let her grow up."
Mrs. Rann glowed with pride, and in the depths
of her shallow eyes Eugenia read a triumphant
compassion. This little vulgar countrywoman, upon
whom she looked so grandly down, was pitying her
in her narrow heart.
She flushed and turned away.
"You have never had a child?" asked the little
common voice.
Eugenia faced her coldly. "I lost one - a week
old," she replied, and she hated herself that she was
proud of her seven days' motherhood. She had
mourned the loss, but she had never vaunted the
possession until now.
As she left the house her name was called by
Juliet Galt from her window across the way.
"Come over, Eugie," she cried. "We've been
watching you," and as Eugenia ascended the steps
the door was opened and she was clasped in Emma
Carr's arms. "We've shut our eyes and ground our
teeth and put ourselves in your place," she said.
"Oh, Eugie, she's worse than the dentist!"
"I went to the dentist's first," was Eugenia's
reply.
She followed Miss Carr into the drawing-room
and sank into the window-seat beside Juliet, who
was bending over her embroidery frame. Then she
laughed - a full, frank laugh.
"You dear women," she said, "if you knew the
lot of a politician's wife, you'd - marry a footman."
"Provided he were Dudley Webb," returned
Emma Carr. She seized Eugenia's hand and they
smiled at each other in demonstrative intimacy.
"You know, of course, that we are all in love with
your husband - desperately, darkly in love - and you
ought to be gray with jealousy. If I were married to
the handsomest man in Virginia I'd get me to a nunnery."
"That's not Eugie's way," said Juliet, snapping off
her silk. "If she went, she'd drag him after."
"Oh, he's just Dudley," protested Eugenia. "I'd as
soon be jealous of Aunt Chris - and he's waiting at
home this instant with his senators come to
judgment on my dinner. If I were free, I'd spend the
day with you Juliet, but I've married into servitude."
When Eugenia went upstairs that night she softly
opened Lottie's door and glanced into the room. By
the sinking firelight she saw Lottie lying asleep, her
hand upon the pillow of her younger child, who slept
beside her. The pretty, nerveless hand, even in
sleep, tremored like a caress, for whatever Lottie's
wifely failings, as a mother she was without
reproach. Lottie - vain, hysterical, bewailing her
wrongs - was the same Lottie now resting with a
protecting arm thrown out - this Eugenia admitted
thoughtfully as she looked into the darkened room
where the thin blue flame cast a spectral light upon
the sleepers. From this shallow rooted nature had
bloomed the maternal ardour of the Southern
woman, in whom motherhood is the abiding grace.
Eugenia closed the door and crossed the hall to
Miss Chris, who was reading her Bible as she
seeded raisins into a small yellow bowl. The leaves
of the Bible were held open by her spectacle case
which she had placed between them; for while her
hands were busy with material matters her placid
eyes followed the text.
"I thought I'd get these done to-night," she
remarked as Eugenia entered. "I'm going to make
a plum pudding for Dudley to-morrow. Where is
he now?"
"A political barbecue, I believe," responded Eugenie
indifferently as she knotted the cord of her
flannel dressing-gown. She yawned and threw
herself into a chair. "I wonder why everybody
spoils Dudley so," she added. "Even I do it. I am
sitting up for him to-night simply because I know
he'll want to tell me about it all when he comes in."
"It's a good habit for a wife to cultivate,"
returned Miss Chris, shaking the raisins together.
"If my poor father stayed out until four o'clock in the
morning he found my mother up and dressed when
he came in."
"I should say it was 'poor' grandmamma,"
commented Eugenia drily. "But Dudley won't find
me after midnight." Then she regarded Miss Chris
affectionately. "What a blessing that you didn't
marry, Aunt Chris," she said. "You'd have prepared
some man to merit damnation."
"My dear Eugie," protested Miss Chris, half
shocked, half flattered at the picture. "But you're a
good wife, all the same, like your mother before
you. The only fault I ever saw in poor Meely was
that she wouldn't put currants in her fruit cake. Tom
was always fond of currants -" in a moment she
abruptly recalled herself. "My dear, I don't say you
haven't had your trials," she went on. "Dudley isn't
a saint, but I don't believe even the Lord expects a
man to be that. It doesn't seem to set well on them."
"Oh, I am not blaming Dudley," returned Eugenie
as leniently as Miss Chris. "We live and let
live - only our tastes are different. Why, the chief
proof of his affection for me is that he always
describes to me the object of his admiration - which
means that his eyes stray, but his heart does not,
and the heart's the chief thing, after all."
"I'm glad you aren't jealous," said Miss Chris.
"I used to think you were - as a child."
"Oh, I was - as a child," replied Eugenia. Her
kindly face clouded. It was borne in upon her with a
twinge of conscience that the absence of jealousy
which had become the safeguard of Dudley's peace
proved her own lack of passion. What a hell some
women - good women - might have made of
Dudley's life - that genial life that flowed as
smoothly as a song. In the flights and pauses of his
temperament what discord might have shocked the
decent measure of their marriage? Persistent passion
would have bored him; exacting love would have
soured the charm of his radiant egotism. It was
because she was not in love with him, that
her love had wisely meted out to him only so much
or so little of herself as he desired - and with a
sudden arraignment of Fate she admitted that
because she had failed in the first requirement of the
marriage sacrament, she had made that sacrament
other than a mockery. Out of her own unfulfilment
Dudley's happiness was fulfilled.
"Yes, Dudley suits me," she said absently, "and,
what's the main thing, I suit Dudley."
"Well, well, I'm glad of it," returned Miss Chris,
but in a moment Eugenia was kneeling beside her,
her hand upon the open Bible.
"Dear Aunt Chris, you haven't told me all," she
said.
"All?" Miss Chris wavered. "You mean
about Bernard?"
"I mean about the governor." She closed the
Bible and pushed it from her. "Do you think he is
quite, quite happy?"
Miss Chris laughed in protest.
"Do I believe him to be pining of hopeless love?
No, I don't," she retorted.
"Oh, not that!" exclaimed Eugenia impatiently.
She appeared vaguely to resent Miss Chris's
assurance. She was feminine enough to experience
an irrational jealousy at the idea of a vacancy which
she had done her best to create. It destroyed an
example of the permanence of love.
"I don't suppose anybody could be happy on
politics," observed Miss Chris. "It doesn't seem
natural." And she slowly added: "I wish some good
woman would marry him."
"I don't!" said Eugenia sharply. She rose with a
spring from the rug, and left Miss Chris to her
reflections and her raisins. In her own room she sat
down before the fire and loosened her hair from the
low coil on her neck. She drew out the hairpins one
by one, until her hands were full, and the thick black
rope fell across her bosom. Then she tossed the
pins upon her bureau and shook a veil over her face
and shoulders. As she settled herself into her chair
she glanced impatiently at the clock. Dudley was
late, and she listened for his footsteps with the
composure of a woman from whom the flush of
marriage has passed away. His footsteps were as
much a part of her days as the ticking of the clock
upon the mantel. If the clock were to stop she
would miss the accustomed sound, but so long as it
went on she was almost unconscious of its presence.
Her affection for Dudley had grown so into her
nature that it was like the claim of kinship - quiet,
unimpassioned, full of service - the love that is the
end of many happy marriages, the beginning of few.
As she sat there she fell vaguely to wondering
what her lot would have been had her pulses
fluttered to his footsteps as they came and went. She
would have known remorseless wailings and the long
agony of jealous nights - all the passionate self-torture
that she had missed - that she had missed, thank
God! She made the best of her life to-day, as she would
have made the best of blows and bruises. It was
the old buoyant instinct of the Battle blood - the
fighting of Fate on its ground with its own weapons.
She had insisted strenuously upon her own
happiness - and she had found it not in the great
things of life, but in the little ones. She was happy
because happiness is ours in the cradles or not at
all - because it is of the blood and not of
the environment.
During the first years of her marriage she had
intensely sought the relief of outside interests. She
had worked zealously on hospital boards and had
exhausted herself in the service of the city mission.
Then a new call had quivered in her life, and she
had let these things go. With the passion of her
nature she had pledged herself to motherhood, and
that, too, had foiled her - for the child had died.
Looking back upon the years she saw that those
months of tranquil waiting were the happiest of her
life - those monotonous months when each day was
as the day before it, when her hands were busy for
the love that
would come to her, and her heart warmed itself
before the future. The child was hers for a single
week, and afterwards she had put her grief away
and gone back to the old beginning. She had given
herself to little kindnesses and trivial interests, for
the fulfilment of her nature had withered in the bud.
The key turned in the door downstairs and in a
moment she heard Dudley in the hall. As her door
opened she looked up brightly. "Up, old girl?" he
asked cheerfully, and as he came to the fire he bent
to kiss her.
"Did you make a speech? and what did you say?"
she inquired.
"Oh, they got a good deal out of me," he
responded with a genial recollection which he
proceeded to unfold. His eyes shone and his face
was flushed. As he stood on the hearth rug before
her she admitted with a sigh of satisfaction his
physical splendour. The glow of his personality
warmed her into an emotion half maternal. She
regarded him with the eyes of tolerant affection.
"Oh, yes, I think I made a friend of Diggs," he
was adding complacently as he flecked a particle of
cigar ash from his coat. "He got off a capital story,
by the way. I'd give it to you, but I'm half afraid
- you're so squeamish."
"His jokes don't amuse me," returned Eugenia
indifferently. "Who else was there?"
"Well, the governor was very much there. He
did some stiff talking. I say, Eugie, do you know, I
believe he used to have a pretty strong fancy for
you - didn't he?"
Eugenia looked at him with a laugh. "Oh, a fancy?"
she repeated.
She moved away, gathering her hair from her
shoulders; but in a moment she came back again
and rubbed her cheek against Dudley's arm as she
used to rub it against General Battle's old linen
sleeve. "Dudley," she said with a sudden break,
"the baby would have been ten years old to-night
- do you remember?"
Dudley was looking into the fire; his face grew
grave, and he patted Eugenia's head. "You don't
say so! Poor little chap!" he exclaimed.
They were both silent. Dudley's eyes were still on
the flame, but the shadow lifted from his brow.
Eugenia's lips quivered and grew firm. She gently
drew herself away and began braiding her hair, but
her hands were unsteady.
In a moment Dudley spoke again. "It was a
great pity I lost that governorship," he said
abstractedly.
A week after this Eugenia went with Juliet Galt
to the Capitol to hear a speech in which Dudley was
interested. The Senate Chamber was crowded, and
as the atmosphere grew oppressive while Dudley's
gentleman held the floor, she rose and went out into
the lobby where a noisy circle pulsed round
Houdon's Washington. She had spoken to several
acquaintances, and her hand was in the clasp of a
house member from her old county, when she
started at the sound of a shrill voice rising above the
persistent hum of the legislators and the lobbyists.
"I'm a-lookin' for the governor, Nick Burr,"
it said.
"I didn't know the governor posed as a
cavalier," laughed the house member, and as a
wave of humour lighted the faces around her,
Eugenia turned to find Marthy Burr standing in
the doorway. She wore a stiff alpaca dress, and
beneath the green veil above her bonnet she cast
alert, nervous glances from side to side. Her hands
clutched, in a deathlike grip, a Cotton umbrella and
a small, covered basket.
Eugenia hesitated for a single instant, and then
took a step forward with outstretched hand, a kindly
glow in her face; but as she did so the crowd parted
and Nicholas Burr reached his stepmother's side.
"Why, this is a treat, ma!" he said heartily, and
he took the umbrella and the basket from her
reluctant hands, despite her warning whisper,
"thar's new-laid eggs in thar!"
"My dear Mrs. Burr!" exclaimed Eugenia. She
lifted her gaze from the homely figure in its
awkward finery, to the man who stood beside her.
Then she stooped and kissed Marthy Burr on the
cheek.
"Do let her come home with me," she said.
Her eyes fell and a wave of colour beat into her
face. An instant before she had felt her act to be
entirely admirable; now it flamed before her in
mental revelation that she was a sycophant who
sought the reward of an assumed virtue. With the
reward had come the knowledge - she had found
both in Nicholas's eyes; and as she felt the thrust of
self-abasement, she felt also that for the sake of
that look she would have kissed a dozen Burrs a
dozen times.
"You are very kind," said the governor. "But you
know I have an empty house."
Then he put his arm about Marthy Burr and
assisted her down the steps to the walk below. She
looked about her with half-frightened, half-defiant
eyes, and clung grimly to his powerful figure.
As Eugenia watched them, a quick remembrance
shot before her. She saw Nicholas Burr as she had
seen him in his youth - ardent, assured, holding out
his arms to the future, which was to be love, love,
love. Now the future had become the present, and
the one affection that remained to him was that of
the old, illiterate woman, with the rasping voice.
He had lost the thing he had lived for - and he was
happy.
On one of the closing days of the legislative
session, Ben Galt lounged into the anteroom of the
governor's office and cornered the private
secretary. "Look here, Dickson, what's the latest
demonstration of Old Nickism? I hear he's giving
Rann trouble about that bill of his."
Dickson nodded significantly towards the closed
door. "Rann's with him now," he replied; "they're
having it hot in there. Rann may bluster till he's blue,
but he won't make the governor give an inch. That
bill's as dead as a door nail. The governor's got a fit
of duty on."
"Or his everlasting obstinacy," returned Galt
irritably. "His duty does more harm than most
men's devilment - it stands like a stone wall between
him and his ambition. Of course, that bill is a
political swindle, but there isn't another politician in
the State who would interfere in Rann's little game."
"Oh, between us, I think Rann's honest enough.
He believes he's up to a good thing, but the
governor disagrees with him - there's where the
row begins."
"What does the governor say about it?"
"Say?" laughed Dickson. "Why, I asked him if
he would approve the measure and he said 'No!'
That's the beginning and the end of his discourse
- a 'No' long drawn out."
The door opened abruptly, and Rann put out his
head. "Will you step in here, Mr. Galt?" he asked,
and his voice was husky with anger. "With
pleasure, my dear Major," responded Galt easily, as
he crossed the threshold and closed the door after
him. "I am always at your service as a
peacemaker."
The governor was standing before his desk, his
eyes upon Rann, who faced him, red and trembling.
Galt had seen Burr wear this impassive front before,
and it had always meant trouble. His eyes were
opaque and leaden, his face as expressionless as a
mask. He was motionless save for the movement of
one hand that drummed upon the desk. "If you
possess any influence with the governor," said Rann
to Galt, "will you tell him that his course is ruinous
- ruinous to imbecility? If he thinks I am going to
throw away a winter's work on that bill he's
mistaken his man. It's taken me the whole session to
get that measure through the legislature, and I'm not
going to have it defeated now by any crack-brained
moralist. He'll sign that bill or -"
Burr spoke at last. "Am I the governor of this
State or are you?" he thundered. His face did not
change, but his powerful voice rang to the full.
Rann gave an ugly little sneer, his cheek purpling.
"I may not be governor, but I made you so," he
retorted.
"Your mistake, my dear Major, was that you
neglected to create him in your own likeness," put in
Galt coolly.
"By the people's will I am governor, and
governor I'll be," said Nicholas grimly; "as for this
bill you speak of, I might have saved you the trouble
of working for your pitiable majority. Since you
have seen fit to deride my motive, it is sufficient for
me to say that the measure will not become a law
over my opposition, and I shall oppose it to the
death."
Rann was shaking on his short legs and his hands
were trembling. "So you defy me, do you,
Governor?" he demanded.
"Defy you?" the governor laughed shortly,
"I don't trouble to defy you. I laugh at you - the whole
lot of you who come to cozen me with party
promises. So long as I spoke your speech and did
your bidding I might have the senatorship for the
asking. I was honest Nick Burr, though I might belie
my convictions at every step. So long as I wore the
collar of your machine upon my neck my honesty
was the hall-mark of the party. Where is my
honesty, the first instant that I dare to stand against
you? Defy you? Pshaw! You aren't worth defying!"
"Hold on!" said Galt hastily. "Nick, for God's
sake, leave our friend alone. You're both good
fellows - too good to quarrel -"
"Oh, there's no use," protested Rann, wiping his
flaming brow. "I've offered a dozen compromises
- but compromise I won't without that bill. Bear
witness that I've upheld him from the start. I'd
have run him for the presidency itself if I'd had the
power, and when I ask a little friendly return he
talks about his damned duty. But I tell you, he's
signed his own warrant. He's as dead in this State
as if his grave was dug. He's held his last office in
the Democratic Party."
"I shall certainly not owe my second to you,"
responded the governor; then he looked vacantly
before him. "I have the pleasure to wish you good
morning," he said.
When Rann had gone, and the door had slammed
after him, Galt turned, with a laugh.
"Shake!" he exclaimed, and as Nicholas grasped
his hand, added lightly, "My dear friend, you may
as well have a quiet conscience, since you'll never
have the senatorship."
Nicholas drew his hand away impatiently. "I'm
not beaten yet," he said. "I'll fight and I'll win, or
my name's not Burr! Do you think I'm afraid of a
sneak like that? Why, he offered me the
senatorship as coolly as if he had it in his pocket!"
Galt laughed. "I'm not sure he hasn't; at any rate
he's the power of the ring, and the ring's the power
of the party."
"Then I'll fight the ring," said Nicholas, "and, if
need be, I'll fight the party. So long as right and the
people are with me the party may go hang."
"My dear old Nick, history teaches us that the
party hangs the people. By the way, you've done
Webb a good turn; Rann is going to fight you fair and
foul - mostly foul."
"Oh, I'm not afraid of Rann, or of Webb."
"Or yet of the devil!" added Galt. "When I
come to think of it, I never called you timid. But
wait a few days and Rann will have this little
passage reported to his credit. I'll get ahead of him
with the story, or I'll find some cocked-up account
of it circulating in the lobby. It's easier to blacken
the best man than to whiten the worst. Well, I'm
going. Good day!"
When the door closed, the governor crossed to
the window and stood looking down upon the gray
drive beneath the leafless trees. The sun was
obscured by a sinister cloud that had blotted out all
the fugitive brightness of the morning. A fine
moisture was in the air, and the atmosphere hung
heavily down the naked slopes, where the grass
was colourless and dead. Beyond the gates, the city
was lost in a blurred and melancholy distance, from
which several indistinct church spires rose and sank
in a sea of fog.
But blue and gray were as one to Nicholas. He
was not exhilarated by sunshine nor was he
depressed by gloom; only the inner forces of his
nature had power to quicken or control his moods.
His inspiration, like his destiny, lay within, and so
long as he maintained his wonted equilibrium of
judgment and desire it was, perhaps, impossible that
an outside assault should severely shake the
foundations of his life.
Now, while the glow of his anger still lingered in
his brain, it was characteristic of the man that he
was feeling a pity for Rann's disappointment - for
the discomfiture of one whose methods he despised.
In Rann's place, he felt that he should probably have
risen to the charge as Rann rose - implacable,
unswerving; but he was not in Rann's place, nor
could he be so long as personal reward was less to
him than personal honour. Yes, he could pity Rann
even while he condemned him. For an instant - a
single instant - he had found himself shrinking from
the combat, and in the shock of self-contempt which
followed he had hurled the shock of his resentment
upon the tempter. In that moment of weakness it
had seemed to him an easy thing to let one's self go;
to yield to a friendly, if distrusted force; to place
gratified ambition above the sting of wounded
scruples. Was he infallible that he should make his
judgment a law, or without reproach that he should
set his conscience as an arbiter?
Then in a sudden illumination he had seen the
betrayal of his sophistry, and he had stood his
ground - for the strong man is not he who is
impervious to weaknesses, but he who, scorning his
failures, towers over them. He had felt the
temptation and he had wavered, but not for long. In
all his periods of storm and stress he had found that
his nature rebounded in the end. Disquietude might
waste his ardour; but give him time to reorganise his
forces, and his moral energy would triumph at the
last.
As he looked out upon the great bronze
Washington against the sad-coloured sky, he
realised, with a pang like the thrust of
homesickness, the isolation in which he stood. An
instinctive need to justify himself had risen within
him, and with it awoke the knowledge that beyond
that uncertain abstraction which he called "the
People," he was an alien among his kind. Galt was
his friend, Tom Bassett he could count on, a score
of others would stand or
fall in his service, but where was the single emotion
which bound him to humanity? Where the common
claim of kinship which belonged to Galt, to Bassett,
and to all mankind? He had known many men, but he
knew not one who was not drawn by some
connecting link that was apart from patriotism, or
ambition, or desire. Then quickly there came to him,
not the judge, who was the parent of his intellect, but
the withered little woman, who was not even the
mother of his body. The only happiness that rose and
set in him was that pitiable happiness that could not
think his thoughts or speak his speech. It had never
occurred to him that he loved Marthy Burr - his
kindness had been wholly compassionate - it was the
knowledge that she loved him that now illuminated
her image. It was the old blind craving born again, to
be first with somebody - for there are moods in
which it is better to be adored by a dog than to adore
a divinity. He beheld Eugenia's womanhood as "A
sword afar off"; but with him was the eternal
commonplace - his stepmother's sharp, pained eyes
and shrivelled hands. He had loved Eugenia until
there was nothing left; now he wanted to be loved,
if by a dog.
He raised his head and smiled upon the bronze
Washington and the sad-coloured sky. In the drive
below men were passing, and from time to time he
recognised a figure. He saw only men down there,
and the thought came to him that his was a man's
world - only in the outside circle might he catch the
flutter of a woman's dress. He turned and went
back to his desk and his work.
Two days later the papers chronicled without
comment his opposition to Rann's bill. He was
aware that Rann possessed no uncertain influence
with the editors of the "Morning Standard," and he
was surprised at the apparent indifference displayed
by the curt announcement. Did Rann's resentment
hang fire? Or was the press prepared to uphold the
governor?
On the morning of the same day a member of the
legislature with whom he was slightly acquainted
came in to congratulate him upon his stand. His
name was Saunders, and he was a man of some
ability, whom Nicholas had always regarded as a
partisan of Webb.
"I've been fighting that bill this whole session," he
said emphatically, "and I'd given up all hope of
defeating it when you had the pluck to knock it over.
You've made enemies, Governor, but you've made
friends, and I'm one of them. Give me the man who
dares!" He held out his hand as he rose, and
Nicholas responded with a hearty grip. Before the
legislature closed he found that Saunders spoke the
truth - he had made friends as well as enemies. The
inborn Anglo-Saxon love of "the man who dares"
was with him - a regard for daring for its own
heroic sake. The hour was his, and he braved his
shifting popularity as he would brave its final outcome.
One afternoon in early May, Dudley Webb came
out upon his front steps and paused to light a cigar
before descending to the street. A spring of happy
promise was unfolding, for overhead the poplars
bloomed against an enchanted sky. In the shadow of
the church across the way, children were romping,
their ecstatic trebles floating like bird-song on the
air.
With the cigar between his teeth, Dudley heaved
a sudden reminiscent sigh - the sigh of a man who
possesses an excellent digestion and a complacent
conscience. Things had gone well with him of late
- the fact that a trivial domestic interest darkened
for the moment his serene horizon proved it to be
the solitary cloud of a clear day. The cloud in
question had gathered in the shape of no less a
person than Mrs. Jane Dudley Webb. She had been
on a visit to Richmond, and he had seen her only
two hours before safely started on her homeward
journey. The truth was that Mrs. Webb and Eugenia
had asserted for the past two days an implacable
hostility, and Dudley's genial efforts at pacification
had resulted merely in diverting a share of the
unpleasantness upon his own head. It was a
lamentable fact that Eugenia, who was amiable to
the point of weakness where members of the Battle
family were concerned, found it impossible to
harmonise with the elder Mrs. Webb. They had disagreed
upon such important subjects as Miss Chris's
housekeeping and Dudley's moral welfare, until
Eugenia, after an inglorious defeat, had relapsed into
silence - a silence broken only upon Dudley's
return from the station, when she had unbosomed
herself of the declaration that she "couldn't stand
his mother, and it was as much as she could do to
stand him." Dudley had met this alarming outburst
with its logical retort, "Hadn't you better see a
doctor, Eugie?" whereupon Eugenia had protested
that "if she wasn't fit for an asylum, he needn't
thank Mrs. Webb," and had dissolved in tears.
At the moment Dudley had experienced a warm
recognition of his generosity in refraining from the
use of his own endurance of many Battles, as an
illustration of the opposite and virtuous course; but
upon later reflection he frankly admitted that the
cases were by no means similar. It had not occurred
to him, he recalled, to deny that Mrs. Webb was
singularly trying, though he wondered, half
resentfully, why Eugenia could not be brought to
regard that lady's foibles from his own gently
humorous point of view. He was not in the least
disconcerted by his mother's solicitude as to the
condition of his soul, or by the fact that she still felt
constrained to allude to the governor of the State as
"a person of low antecedents." Personally, he was
inclined to admire - and frankly to admit it - the
ability which had brought Burr into prominence from
a position of evident obscurity, while he regarded
Mrs. Webb's eccentric attitude as a kind of
antedated comedy. What he objected to was his
wife's inability to grasp the keynote of the situation.
It was pleasant to reflect, however, as he
leisurely descended the steps, that he had brought
Eugenia round by less heroic measures than an
assault upon her family altars. He was glad to
think that he had given her a cup of tea instead.
Crossing slowly to Franklin Street, he hesitated an
instant on the corner, and turned finally in the
direction of his office. There was a nearer way
down town, but he always chose this one because
experience had taught him that if pretty women
were abroad here they would be found. With the
same instinct of enjoyment he might have gone out
of his way daily to pass the window of a florist.
As he walked on in the spring sunshine he held
his handsome head erect, blowing the smoke of his
cigar in the scented air. He moved leisurely, finding
life too good to be wasted in rushing. The soft
atmosphere; the fragrance of his fine cigar; the
beauty of the women he passed - these sufficed to
bring the glow of animation to his smooth, full face.
Once he stopped to shake hands with pretty
Emma Carr, detaining her by a jest and a laugh -
and again he paused to exchange a word with Juliet
Galt, who was at her window. It was only when he
turned into the business street again that he brought
his mind to bear upon less engaging subjects.
Then it was that he remembered he had delivered
the evening before his most successful oration. He
had spoken to a large audience upon "Personal
Morality in Politics," and he had received an
appreciation that was prolonged and thundering.
When it was over some one had called him a
"greater orator then Withers," to add quickly, "and a better
Democrat than Burr." He could still see the
whimsical smile Burr had turned upon the
speaker, and he could still feel his own sense of
elation.
Well, as for that matter, he was a better
Democrat than Burr - if to be a better Democrat
meant to place the party will above his personal
opinion. After all, what was a party for if not to
unite individual effort and to combine individual
differences? If organisation was not worth the
sacrifice of personal prejudices it might as well
dissolve before the next election day. It was, of
course, a pity that a man like Burr should dissent
from the views of important politicians, but one
might as well talk of a ship without officers as of a
party without organised leaders. It was a pity from
Burr's point of view, he was willing to admit, but so
long as Burr would make trouble it was just as well
that the ill wind should blow his own side good - he
was honestly glad that it had blown Rann's influence
in his direction. He had never felt more hopeful of
anything in his life than he now felt of the
senatorship. Indeed, he was inclined to think that he
might have something very like a "walk over."
"Hold on, Webb," a voice called behind him, and
a moment later he was joined by Diggs, who
congratulated him upon his speech of the evening
before. Webb tossed back the congratulations with
a laugh. "Yes, it's a popular subject just now," he
said. "Since the negroes have stopped voting in
large numbers we're even going in for honest
elections."
"Well, I reckon it's as well," admitted Diggs.
"We used to have some rampant rascality under
the old system, I dare say; it took clever trickery to
bring in the white rule sometimes. We have a large
negro majority down my way, that obliged us to
devise original methods of disposing of it. It was
fighting the devil with fire, I suppose; but self-preservation
was a law long before Universal Suffrage
was heard of. At any rate, I had my hand
in it now and then. Once, I remember, on an
election day when every darkey in the
neighbourhood had turned out to vote, I hit on the
idea that the man who was to carry the returns
across the river should pretend to get drunk and
upset the boat. It was a pretty scheme and would
have worked all right, but, will you believe it, the
blamed fool got drunk in earnest, and when the boat
upset he was caught under it and drowned." He
paused an instant and complacently added: "But we
lost those returns, all the same."
Webb threw his cigar stump in the gutter and
turned to Diggs with a laugh. "That reminds me,"
he began, and started a story which he finished on
his office steps.
When he went home some hours later he found
that Eugenia had regained her high good-humour.
She was sitting before the fire in her bedroom, her
hair flowing in the hands of Delphy, who had moved
up from Kingsborough, and was doing a thriving
trade as a shampooer. It was her fortnightly
custom to pass from head to head in a round of the
Kingsborough colony, promoting an intimate trend
of gossip among her patrons.
As Dudley entered, she was seeking to induce
Eugenia to consent to an application from one of the
many bottles she carried in an ancient travelling
bag, which had long since descended to her from
General Battle.
"Lawd, Miss Euginny, dis yer ain' gwineter hu't
you. Hit ain' nuttin but ker'sene oil nohow. Miss
Sally Burwell des let me souse her haid in it de udder
day. Hit'll keep you f'om gittin' gray, sho's I live."
"You shan't touch me with it, Delphy. And you
ought to be ashamed - I haven't a gray hair. Have
I, Dudley?"
Delphy returned the bottle with a sigh, and
applied herself to a vigorous brushing of Eugenia's
hair.
"You sho is filled out sence I see you, Marse
Dudley," she observed at last.
"Yes, I'm getting fat, Delphy," returned Dudley
with a laugh. "It's old age, you know. It's a long
time since the days when you spanked me with a
heavy hand."
"Go 'way f'om yer, Marse Dudley; you know I
ain' never spank you none ter hu't. En you ain' er bit
too fat ter fit yo' skin, nohow."
Dudley regarded her with a kindly, patriarchal
eye as he straightened himself against the mantel.
"Any news from down your way, Delphy?" he
inquired with interest. "What's become of Moses?
Moses was always a friend of mine. He used to
bring me a pocketful of peanuts from every picking
he went to."
Delphy shook her head, her huge lips tightening.
"He's down wid de purple headache," she replied
gloomily, "twel he can't smell de diff'ence between
er 'possum en er polecat. Yes, suh, Mose he's
moughty low down, en' ter dis yer day he ain' never
got over Marse Nick Burr's ous'in' you en Miss
Euginny outer de cheer you all outghter had down
yonder at de cap'tol. I ain' got much use fer Marse
Nick myse'f. He's monst'ous hard on po' folks. I
ain' been able to rent out mo'n oner my rooms
sence he's been down dar. Dat's right, Miss
Euginny, yo' hyar's des es dry es I kin git it."
When Delphy had gone, Dudley leaned down and
put his arm about Eugenia as he kissed her. "All
right, Eugie?" he asked cheerfully. Eugenia
returned his caress with a startled pleasure, looking
up at him affectionately, fascinated by the glow
which hung about him.
"Oh, I really don't think I could do without you,
Dudley," she said quickly.
"Well, it's a good thing you don't have to,"
responded Dudley as he kissed her again.
It was several days after this that Eugenia came
to him one evening as he stood before the fire and
laid her cool cheek against his arm.
"Oh, Dudley," she said breathlessly, "I am so
happy - so absurdly happy."
She raised her head and Dudley, looking at her in
the firelight, found her more beautiful than she had
been even in the radiant days of her girlhood. He
had seen that high resolve in her face but once
before, and he grasped the meaning now as then -
it was the dawn of motherhood that enveloped her.
She had heard the call of the generations in the end
- the appeal of the race that moved her nature
more profoundly than did the erratic ardours of the
individual. There was a clear light in her eyes, and
her features had taken an almost marble-like
nobility. The look in her face reminded him of moments in
the old days at Battle Hall, when she had wrapped the
wandering general in a tenderness that was maternal.
With a sudden penetrant insight into her heart, he
realised that her natural emotions were her nobler
ones - that as child and mother the greatness of her
nature assumed its visible form. He drew her closer, the
best in him responding to the mystery he beheld dimly in
her eyes. For ten years they had not touched natures so
nearly; it was the vital breath needed to vivify a union
which was not rooted in the permanence of an enduring
passion.
And as the months went on the wonder deepened in
Eugenia's eyes. The old restlessness was gone; she was
like one who, having looked into the holy of holies,
keeps the inward memory clear. She was in the supreme
mental state - attained only by religious martyrs or
maternal, yet childless, women long married - when
physical pain loses its relative values before the
exaltation of an abiding vision. And, above all, she was
what each woman of her race had
been before her - a mother from her birth.
From the day of the child's birth it did not leave
Eugenia's sight. Her eyes followed it when it was carried
about the room, and she watched wistfully the dressing
and undressing of the round little body. She knew each
separate frock that she had made before its coming, and
each day she called for a different and a daintier one. "I
must make new ones," she said at last, "he is such a
beauty!" And she would hold out her arms for him, half
dressed as he was, and, as he lay beside her, fresh and
cool and fragrant as a cowslip ball, she would cover the
soft pink flesh with passionate kisses. Her motherhood
was an obsession, jealous, intense, unreasoning.
They had named him after the general - Thomas Battle
Webb, but to Eugenia he was "the baby," the solitary
baby in a universe where birth is as common as death.
And, indeed, he was a thing of joy - the nurse, Dudley,
Miss Chris, all admitted it. There was never so round, so
rosy, so altogether marvellous a baby, and never one
that laughed so much or cried so little. "He was born
with a silver spoon in his mouth," declared Miss Chris.
"I can see his luck already in his eyes."
At first Eugenia had been tortured by a fear that the
little life would go out as the other had done; but, as the
weeks went on and he lived and fed and
fattened, her fear was lost in the wondering rapture
of possession. Nothing so perfectly alive could
cease to be.
When she was well again she dismissed the
nurse and took, herself, entire charge of the child.
"There are no mammies these days," she had said in
reply to Dudley's remonstrances, "and I can't trust
him with one of the new negroes - I really can't.
Why, I saw one slap a baby once." So she bathed
and dressed him in the mornings and rocked him to
sleep at midday and at dark, and in the brightness of
the forenoon gave him an airing on the piazza that
overlooked the back garden. From the time of her
getting up to her lying down he left her arms only
when he was laid asleep in the little crib beside her
bed.
But, for all this, he was a healthy, hearty baby,
with a round bald head, great blue eyes like china
marbles, and a ridiculous mouth that would not shut
over the pink gums and hide the dimples at the
corners. He did not cry because, as yet, he hadn't
seen the moon, and the lamp had been carefully
emptied and given to him as soon as he was big
enough to hold out his hands. Pins had not stuck
him, because Eugenia had guarded against the
danger by sewing ribbons on his tiny innumerable
slips. And he was as amiable as his elders are apt
to be so long as they are permitted to regard the
visible universe as a possible plaything.
At this time it was Eugenia's custom to hold him
on her lap while she ate her meals, or to leave Miss
Chris in charge if the small tyrant chanced to be
asleep. Miss Chris had become a willing servitor;
but she occasionally felt it to be her duty to put a
modest check upon Eugenia's maternal frenzy.
"My dear, there were ten of us," she remarked
one day, "and I am sure we never required as
much attention as this one."
"And nine of you died," Eugenia solemnly
retorted.
Miss Chris was compelled to assent; but she
immediately added: "Not until we had reached
middle age. Belinda died youngest, and it was of
pneumonia, at the age of forty-one. You don't think
neglect during her infancy had anything to do with
it, do you? Nobody ever accused my poor dear
mother of not looking after her children."
But Eugenia stood her ground. "One can never
tell," was all she said, though a moment later she
wiped her eyes and sobbed: "Oh, papa! If papa
could only see him! He would be so proud."
"Of course, darling," said Miss Chris. "He was
always fond of children. I remember distinctly the
way he carried on when his first child was born -
but he lost him of croup before he was a month
old."
She left the room to see after the housekeeping,
and Eugenia hugged the baby to her bosom, and
cried over him and kissed him, and thought his eyes
were like her father's - though, for that matter, the
general's were gray and watery, with weak red lids
that blinked. The baby gurgled and showed his
gums still more and clutched the lace upon his
mother's breast until it hung in shreds. It was a new
gown, but neither Eugenia nor the baby cared for
that - if he had wanted to pull her hair out, strand
by strand, she would have submitted rather than
have brought a wrinkle to his cloudless brow.
A little later she took him out upon the sidewalk,
after swathing him from head to foot in a light-blue
veil that floated about her like a strip of sky. It was
here that Juliet Galt found her, as she was passing,
and, throwing back her pretty head, she laughed
until the tears came.
"O Eugie, Eugie, if you had six!" she gasped.
Eugenia flinched slightly at her merriment. "But,
Juliet, I can't trust him with a nurse. Why, you told
me only the other day that your faithful old Fanny
called Elizabeth an 'imp of Satan.' "
Juliet only wrung her hands and laughed the
more. "It's too funny," she panted at last; "but I'm
sure if Fanny said it about Elizabeth it was true
- she never tells stories." Then she rippled off
again. "Oh, my poor Dudley! How does he endure
it? Why, Ben would ship the babies off to boarding
school if I attempted this."
"Dudley tries to be good about it," replied
Eugenia, "but he hates it awfully."
Juliet went by, and Eugenia kept up her slow
promenade until Dudley came up to dinner. Then
she followed him into the house and upstairs to her
room, where he turned upon her reproachfully:
"I say, Eugie, I wish you'd stop this sort of thing.
It isn't fair to me, you know."
"How absurd, Dudley!"
"But it isn't. People will begin to say that I'm
bankrupt or a beast. If you will go parading round
like this, for heaven's sake hire a servant or two to
follow after; it'll look more decent."
Eugenia's response was far from satisfactory,
and the next morning, before going to his office, he
drew Miss Chris aside and unburdened himself into
her sympathetic ear. "You don't think Eugie's a - a
- exactly crazy, do you, Aunt Chris?" he wound up
with, for Miss Chris was on his side, and he knew
it.
"I don't wonder you ask, Dudley, I really don't,"
was her comforting rejoinder. "Why, she actually
had the face to tell me yesterday that I'd never had
any children, so I couldn't advise her. It is
provoking. I don't pretend to deny it."
Dudley took up his hat and carefully examined
the inside lining. "Well, I'll settle it," he said at last,
and went out.
The next day, when Eugenia went upstairs from
dinner, she found Delphy in a nurse's cap and
apron, installed in a low chair before the fire, jolting
the baby on her knees with a peculiar rhythmic
motion.
Eugenia fell back, regarding her with blank
amazement. "Why, Delphy, where did you come
from?" she exclaimed. "I didn't know you were in
service. Whom are you nursing for?"
Delphy responded with a passive nod. "I'se
nussin' for Marse Dudley," she retorted.
"But I don't want a nurse, Delphy. I take care of
the baby myself. I like to do it."
Delphy kept up her drowsy jolting, shaking at the
same time an unrelenting head. "Go 'long wid you,
honey," she returned. "I ain' oner yo' new-come
niggers I'se done riz mo' chillun den you'se got teef
in yo' haid, en I ain' gwine ter have Marse
Dudley's chile projecked wid 'fo' my eyes. You
ain' no mo' fitten ter nuss dis chile den Marse Dudley
hisse'f is."
"O Delphy!" gasped Eugenia reproachfully. She
made a dart at the baby, but he raised a shrill protest,
which caused her hopelessly to desist. "O Delphy,
you've come between us!" she cried.
"I 'low ef I hadn't you'd 'e' run plum crazy," was
Delphy's justification. "Dis yer chile's my bizness, en
yourn it's down yonder in de parlour wid Marse Dudley."
Eugenia wavered and stood irresolute. Delphy's
authority, rooted in superior knowledge, appeared to be
unshakable, but she made a last desperate effort.
"Suppose he should get sick without me, Delphy?"
Delphy positively snorted. "Ef you wanter raise dis
yer chile, Miss Euginny," she replied, "you'd des better
let me alont. Hit's a won'er you ain' been de deaf er him
'fo' I got yer wid yo' sto' physicks en yo' reel doctahs es
dunno one baby f'om anur when dey meet 'im in de street.
I reckon, ef he'd got de colic you'd have kilt 'im terreckly,
you en yo' sto' physicks en yo' real doctahs! Now, you'd
des better dress yo'se'f an' go down yonder ter de
parlour."
But as she finished Dudley strolled in and stood
beaming down upon his offspring as it lay, round and
pinkly impressive, in Delphy's lap. "Fine boy, eh,
Delphy?" he inquired proudly.
"Dat 'tis, suh," responded Delphy heartily, "an' he's
des de spit er you dis ve'y minit."
The following morning Dudley went to Washington
for several days, and Eugenia was left with Miss
Chris and the child. Lottie and the little girls were with
Bernard, who was dragging to a tedious end in Florida,
where he had been ordered as a last resource. Poor,
pretty, ineffectual Lottie had succumbed to the
unrelenting pressure of her duty. She had sacrificed
herself from sheer lack of the force necessary to
withstand fate.
During Dudley's absence Eugenia gave herself up to
as much of the baby as Delphy grudgingly allowed her,
sewing, in the long intervals, on tiny slips as delicate as
cobwebs. Even this occupation was not wholly a
peaceful one. "Des wait twel he begin ter crawl, en' den
whar'l dose spider webs be?" propounded Delphy in
the afternoon of the third day. "Dey'll be in de ash-ba'r'l
er at de back er de fireplace, en dat's whar dey belong.
Marse Dudley ain' never wo' no sech trash ner is you
yo'se'f."
Eugenia did not respond. She seated herself beside
the window, and with one eye on her child and one on
her work sewed silently, her white hands gleaming amid
the laces in her lap. The training of her slave-holding
ancestors was strong upon her, and she regarded
Delphy's liberty of speech as an inherent right of her
position. The Battle servants had always spoken their
minds to their mistresses in a manner which caused them
to become hopeless failures when they hired themselves
into strange families, where the devotion of their lives
could not be offered in extenuation of the freedom of
their tongues.
So when Eugenia spoke, after a placid pause, it was
merely to suggest that the baby's head was hanging too
far over Delphy's knee. "That can't
be healthful, Delphy," she said, half timidly. Delphy
grunted and adjusted matters with a protest. "Hit's
de way yourn done hung en Miss Meely's done
hung befo' you," she muttered. Eugenia turned to
the window and looked out upon the back yard,
where the horse-chestnut tree was a mass of
bloom, delicate as a cloud. In the beds below, roses
were out in red and white, and against the gray wall
of the stable at the end of the brick walk purple
flags were flaunting in the shadow. Across the city,
beyond the tin roofs and the chimney-pots, the sun
was going down in a mist as sheer as gauze, and the
surrounding atmosphere was charged with
opalescent lights.
Her eyes rested upon it with a quick sense of its
beauty; then the sunset lost itself in the round of her
thoughts. She had missed Dudley, and she was glad
that he was coming home to-night. For the first time
during the fifteen years of her marriage she
experienced a vague uneasiness at his absence. A
year ago she had not known a tremor of loneliness
when he was away - but then the child was unborn.
Now, in some subtle way, the child's existence was
bound and rebound in Dudley's. The two stood
together in her thoughts; she could not separate
them - the child was but a smaller, a closer, a
dearer Dudley - a Dudley of her dreams and
visions, the ideal ending to life's realities.
As she sat beside the window, her eyes
wandering from the sunset to the baby asleep in
Delphy's lap, she wondered that she had never
before suffered this incipient thrill of nervous fear.
Was it that her affection for her child had revivified
all lesser emotions?
Or was it that with supreme love came the
vague, invincible perception of supreme loss? Did
great happiness bear within itself the visible
reflection of great sorrow? Her life before this had
been more peaceful - it had been also less
complete. With the coming of her heart's desire had
awakened her heart's inquietude - both had dawned
after years of restless waiting and uncertain
wandering. It was borne in upon her, with something
like a pang, that the fulness of life had blossomed
for her only when her first youth was withered,
when she had long since relinquished high
expectations or keen desire. She had set her young
mind and her quick passion on a far-away good, she
had shed vain tears over the lack of it; yet, in the
end, she found compensation where she would least
have sought it - in the things which made up her
destiny. She had learned the wisdom of acceptance,
and Fate had rewarded her, not by yielding to her
what she had called her heart's necessity, but by
fitting her heart to the necessity that was already
hers. She had not known the fulfilment of her young
ideals, but she was content at last with an existence
which was a personal surrender to older realities.
For herself she asked now only busy days of
domestic interests and the unbroken serenity of
middle age - but, despite herself, another life was
before her, for she lived again in her child.
The twilight fell. She put her work aside, and,
coming to the hearth rug, took the baby from
Delphy's arms. He was in his night-dress, and his
big blue eyes were drugged with sleep. As Eugenia
took him he gave a whimpering cry and clutched
her with his little hands before he nestled into the
lace at her bosom.
Some hours later, while Eugenia awaited Dudley
in the dining-room, Miss Chris came in to see that
his late supper was in preparation. "The train is
over-due," she said, with a glance at the clock. "He
will be hungry when he gets in. He always is."
Eugenia looked up anxiously. "I am beginning to
feel alarmed," she replied. "Can anything have
happened, do you think? He is an hour late."
Miss Chris shook her head as she refilled the
sugarbowl. "Why, he's often late," she rejoined. "I
never knew you to be nervous before. What is it?"
"Oh, I don't know," said Eugenia. She rose and
stood looking at the clock, her brow wrinkling. "If
he isn't here in five minutes I'm going to the station,"
she added, and went upstairs for her wraps.
When she returned Miss Chris resorted to
argument. "Don't be absurd, Eugie," she urged.
"You can't go alone. It's too late and too far."
"But I sent for a carriage," replied Eugenia
decisively. "If anything happens to the baby come
after me," and a moment later she rolled away,
leaving Miss Chris transfixed upon the doorstep.
As the carriage passed along the lighted streets
she smiled at the recollection of the face Miss Chris
had turned upon her. Well, she was absurd, of
course, but one couldn't go through life being
reasonable. And if anything were to happen to
Dudley she would always remember that she had
refused to go to walk with him the afternoon before
he went away, because the baby was crying for the flames
and couldn't be left with Delphy. Dudley was
provoked about it, but men never understood these
matters. He had even gone so far as to declare that
his son would get only his deserts if he were to cry
himself hoarse; and she had felt impelled to resent
so hard-hearted an utterance. How could the baby
know that the fire was the only thing in the world he
couldn't have for his own?
When she drew up at the station the train was
just coming in, and she rushed through the
waiting-room to the gate from which the passengers
were streaming. As she reached it Dudley came
through, talking animatedly to the man who walked
beside him. "That was the very point, my dear sir -"
he was saying, when he caught sight of Eugenia,
and paused abruptly, domestic affairs asserting their
supremacy in his mind. "Why, Eugie!" he gasped.
"What's happened?"
Eugenia seized his arm impatiently. "Oh, you
were so late, Dudley," she cried, half angrily. "You
made me miserable - it wasn't right of you!"
She hesitated an instant and, looking up, found
that his companion was Nicholas Burr. His eyes
were upon her, and he lifted his hat without
speaking, but Dudley at once turned to him.
"You are old friends with Mrs. Webb,
Governor," he said lightly, "but you don't know the
ways of a woman who thinks her husband may lose
himself between Washington and Richmond."
Nicholas met the impatient flicker in Eugenia's
eyes and laughed.
"Oh, she hardly fancied you had fallen
overboard," he returned. "It's too difficult in these
days. I trust you have had no great anxiety, Mrs.
Webb."
And he passed on, his bag in his hand.
When Dudley and Eugenia were in the carriage
she held herself erect and attacked him with
asperity. "You might at least not laugh at me," she
said.
For reply he smiled and flung his arm about her.
"My darling girl, it's one of the things that make life
worth living," he retorted. "When I cease to laugh
at you I'll cease to love you - and that's a long way
off."
The campaign which would decide the election of
a United States Senator was warming to white
heat. On the last day of October Tom Bassett,
dropping into Galt's office, greeted him with the
exclamation: "So you've taken to the stump!"
Galt put aside his papers and rose with a laugh,
holding out his hand. "My dear fellow, may I ask
where you have spent the last fortnight? Is it
possible that my oratorical fame has just penetrated
to your retreat?"
Tom sat down, and taking off his hat, ran his
hand through his hair with an exhausted gesture.
"Oh, I've been West. I got back last night, and I'm
off to New York in an hour. So it's a fact that
you've been on the stump?"
"It is! I don't mean to allow the Webb men to do
all the talking. You heard about my joint debate with
Diggs at Amelia Court-house, didn't you? That, my
dear Tom, was the culminating point of my glorious
career. I squared him off as nicely as you please,
and with no rough edges either."
But Tom refused to be impressed. "Oh, anybody
could do up Diggs," he said. "I hear, however, that
you had some hot words between you."
Galt shook his head. "Ah, the words were as
nothing to the drinks that followed," he sighed.
"Diggs mayn't be much on speeches, but he's great
on cocktails. It was a glorious day!" Then he grew
serious. "When he was fairly wound up I got a
good deal out of him," he said. "We came down on
the train together, and I found out that he was
against Burr simply because the Webb men had told
him that he pledged himself to them when he
allowed them to send him to the Legislature. It's all
rot, of course; his constituents are strong for Burr,
but he's a good deal of a fool, and Rann has put it
into his head that he must do the 'honest thing' by
coming out for Webb. He has a great idea of party
honour, so out he's come."
"Rann's a born organiser," commented Tom.
"Ah, there's where we aren't even with him. He
and his assistants have been drilling their forces
ever since he had that clash with Burr, and the
discipline's so good they are beginning to convince
the people that the opinions of a dozen men
represent the principles of the party. What Burr
aims at, of course, is to organise the mass of
Democratic voters as effectively as Rann has
organised the ring."
"That's a tough job," said Tom, "but if it's to be
done, Burr's the man to do it. As it is, I haven't a
doubt that the majority is with us."
"Well, I live in hope," returned Galt easily. "It
seems to me there's a clear chance of our having a
good deal over half the votes in the caucus. Now,
grant that there'll be a hundred and twenty regular
Democratic votes -"
"Of which Webb already claims sixty-five."
"Claims!" growled Galt. "He may claim the
whole confounded lot if he wants to. The question
is - will he get them?"
"He will if Rann can manage it. It isn't mere
party bitterness that actuates that man - there's a
good deal of personal spite mixed with it. He hates
Burr."
"Oh, I dare say. But he overreached himself
when he tried to get control of the committee. They
decided in favour of Saunders in the last Southside
contest, and Saunders is pledged to Burr."
Tom drew out his watch and moved towards the
door, but having reached it, he swung round with a
question: "Seen Webb since your debate?" he
inquired.
Galt nodded. "I had a chat with him in the lobby
at the 'Royal' last night, and I must admit that, so
far as Webb's concerned, this campaign is a
particularly decent one. He can't help being a
gentleman any more than he can help being a
demagogue. Both instincts are in the blood."
"Yes, I rather think you're right. Well, goodbye.
I'll see you Tuesday."
He ran downstairs, breaking into a whistle on the
way, and Galt, after a moment's hesitation, took up
his hat and followed him. He had an appointment
with Burr's campaign manager, who had his
headquarters at the Royal Hotel.
It was there that Galt found him, holding a jubilant
gathering in his rooms. He was absolutely sanguine
of success, and when Galt left an hour later, he
sought to impart to him his emphatic confidence.
"My dear sir, I can conclusively prove to you that we
shall win," he said, one eye on Galt and one on a
reporter who had just entered. "I can prove it to
you in figures - and figures never lie.
There is not the faintest doubt that Burr will have
seventy votes by the meeting of the caucus."
"Glad to hear it," was Galt's response; but in
passing through the lobby on his way out he
encountered an equal assurance in the opposite
camp. Rann, who was the centre of a small group,
broke away and came towards him.
"I suppose the governor has reconciled himself
to defeat, oh, Mr. Galt?"
Galt shook his head with a laugh. "Defeat! Why,
Major, we're just beginning to enjoy our triumph.
Burr has his seventy votes in his hand and he keeps
it closed."
Rann flushed angrily, his mouth twitching. "If you
will come this way, sir, I can prove to you on
paper - on paper, sir - that Webb has his majority
as plain as if the caucus was over. Seventy votes!
Why, bless my soul, he must have counted in every
Republican and Independent that will be sent up.
Seventy votes! I tell you he won't have forty - not
forty, sir!"
"Ah, he laughs best that laughs last, my dear
Major."
And he left the hotel, walking rapidly in the
direction of the Capitol. Once or twice he stopped
to speak to an acquaintance who wanted his opinion
of Burr's chances, and to such inquiries his
response was invariably an expression of perfect
conviction. But when alone his uncertainty
appeared - and he acknowledged to himself that he
was afraid of Rann's last card. What it was he did
not know, but he knew that when the time came it
would be well played. Bassett was right - it was not party
bitterness that moved Rann, it was personal hatred.
The square was flooded with sunshine, and down
the green slopes gray squirrels were feeding from
the hands of children. Overhead the elms were
russet from a sharp frost, and the golden leaves of
the sycamores shone against the leprous whiteness
of the branches.
Near a fountain he came upon his own small
daughter building huts of pebbles. As she saw him
she gave a shrill scream and caught his knees in a
tight embrace. He raised her in his arms for a kiss,
and then spoke cordially to the old negro janitor of
the Capitol, who was watching him. "Is that you,
Carter? Good-morning!"
"Well, I declar, boss, I ain' seen you fur a mont'
er Sundays."
"You must have been looking at the clouds,
Carter."
"Naw, suh, I'se been lookin' right out yer, an' I
ain' seen you. Is you gwine ter 'lect de gov'nor?"
Galt was holding his daughter high enough to
reach the branches of an elm. "I'm trying to,
Carter," he returned good-humouredly, "but I can't
do it by myself. Won't you lend a hand?"
"I'll len' 'em bofe, if you want 'em, boss. I'se
been stedyin' 'bout dis bizness, an' I'se got a plan all
laid out in my haid. Dey's a lot er coloured folks in
dis State, suh."
"That's so, man."
"An' dey's all got a vote des de same es de white?"
Galt laughed. "Sure's you live," he replied.
"Well, I'se gwine ter git my friend Bob Viars ter
git up er meetin' er all de coloured folks roun' in
Cumberland County, an' I'se gwine ter put on de
bes' I'se got an' git up on de platform an' Bob's
gwine tell 'em I'se de janitor er de Capitol dat knows
all de ways de laws are made - an' when Bob says
dat, I'se gwine ter bow an' flirt my hank'chif."
Galt nodded. "Oh, I see," he said.
"Den I'se gwine say I'se come ter tell 'em ter
'lect de gov'nor 'case he's de bes' man in de State
an' de greates' gent-man dey's ever lay eyes on -
an' I'se gwine flirt my hank'chif some mo'."
"What else?" said Galt.
"I'se gwine tell 'em I kin prove de gov'nor's de
bes' man in de State by 'splainin' er de tarif - dat I
kin prove it by 'splainin' er de tarif so dey'll
unnerstan' it ev'y word - an' when I flirt my
hank'chif dat time, Bob's gwine call out 'Yo' time's
up, boss!' an' I'se gwine answer back, 'Naw 'tain't,
Bob, des lemme 'splain de tarif. I'se got de
'splanification er de tarif right on de tip er my
tongue,' an' Bob's gwine holler out, 'Not
anudder word, boss, not anudder word!' an' he gwine
shuffle me right spang out."
Galt put down his daughter and shook Carter's
hand. "If you ever get out of a job, my man," he
said, "go into politics. Is the governor in his office?"
"I'se des dis minit seen him come out fer dinner."
"All right, I'll find him," and he went on to the
governor's house.
Nicholas was in his library, a law-book open
before him. When he saw Galt he turned from his
desk and motioned to a chair beside him. "Come in,
Ben, and sit down. I'm glad to see you."
Galt threw himself into the chair. "I've just seen
Ryan," he said, "and I never met a more sanguine
man. He doesn't give Webb a chance."
"Ah, is that so?" asked the governor; his tone
was almost indifferent, but in a moment he leaned
forward and spoke rapidly:
"I fear there's trouble in Kingsborough, Ben.
They've brought a negro there to the gaol from
Hagersville, where there were threats of a
lynching."
"The devil! Well, you aren't afraid that
Kingsborough will turn lawless? My dear friend,
there isn't enough vitality down there to make one
first-class savage."
Nicholas fell back again, his vivid hair drawing
the superb outline of his head on the worn leather
against which he leaned.
"Oh, I'm not afraid of Kingsborough," he
returned, "but Hagersville is only three miles
distant, and the country people are much wrought
up. God knows they have reason to be."
"Ah, the usual thing."
"I don't know the details - but there is sufficient
evidence against the man, they say, to hang him
twenty times. He's as dead as if the noose had left
his neck - but he must die by law. There hasn't
been a lynching in the State since I've been in office."
He spoke quietly, but Galt saw the anxiety in his
face and met it bravely.
"Nonsense, my dear Nick, don't let your hobby
run away with you. If there had been any danger
they'd have got the wretch away. By the bye, Tom
Bassett has gone to New York. I saw him this
morning."
"Yes, he dropped in last night. You haven't seen
this, I dare say - it's a copy of Diggs's speech at
Danville. So they have fallen on my private life at
last."
He handed Galt a typewritten sheet, watching
him closely as he read it. "This looks as if they
feared me, doesn't it?" he asked.
Galt's reply was an oath of sudden anger. "This
is Rann!" he cried. "I see his mark!" A flush of
red rose to his face and his voice came again in a
long-drawn whistle of helpless rage. "The
scoundrel!" he said sharply. "He's raked up that
old Kingsborough scandal of Bernard Battle's and
made you the man. Oh, the sneaking scoundrel!"
His passion appeared in quick contrast to the
other's composure. He was resenting the slander
with a violence that he would not have wasted on it
had it touched himself - for the fame of his friend
was a cause for which his easy-going nature would
spring at once into arms.
Burr came over to him and laid a hand on his
shoulder. "When you come to think of it, Ben," he
said, "it's no great matter."
"Then what steps have you taken about it?"
Nicholas's arm fell to his side. "I have done
nothing. What's the use?"
Galt strode to the window and back again to the
fireplace. His eyes were blazing. "The use?
Why, man, use or no use, I'll send the last one of
them to hell, but they'll stop it! It's Rann - Rann
from the beginning. I'd take my oath on it - but I'm his
match, and he'll find it out. I'll have Diggs retract
this lie by six o'clock this evening or I'll -"
He checked himself abruptly. "How long have
you had this?"
"A half-hour. The speech goes in the evening
papers."
"A half-hour! And you sit here snivelling about
your lynching. Why, what are the necks of ten such
devils worth to your good name? When I come to
think of it, I'd like to lend a hand at a lynching
myself. If I had Rann here -"
The governor laughed dryly. "To tell the truth,
my dear fellow, I don't take it seriously. The people
know me."
Galt uttered an angry exclamation and flung out
his hand. "Oh, give over, Nick," he implored.
"Don't drive me to frenzy! I can't stand much more."
He took up a sheet of paper and wrote several
lines in pencil. "After all, I've been thinking to some
purpose," he said. "Judge Bassett is the man we
need. I'll telegraph to him from your office, and I'll
have his reply scattered broadcast. If it riddles
Webb like shot, I'll have it out."
"Oh, it isn't Webb," said Nicholas. He was looking
into the fire, but as the door closed behind Galt he
turned and seated himself at his desk. The law-book
he had been reading lay to one side, and he opened
it and followed up the question that perplexed him.
His face was grave, but his eyes were shot with
light. When Galt came back he entered
slowly and hesitated an instant before speaking,
then he said:
"There's bad news, Nick. The judge has had a
stroke of paralysis. He is now unconscious. Tom
can't be reached, and you -"
Nicholas took out his watch. "I have fifteen
minutes in which to make that train," was his
answer. "Will you tell Dickson to repeat all
messages?" Then, as Galt followed him into the
hall, he looked back and spoke again. "Until
tomorrow," he said, and went out.
Galt delivered the message to Dickson and
walked uptown to Webb's house, where he
expected to find him. He had not lunched, and he
remembered suddenly that Nicholas had also gone
hungry; but the thought brought a smile as he rang
Webb's bell. "Oh, for once in a lifetime a man may
be heroic," he said. Then he entered the house and
found, not Dudley, but Eugenia.
At the sound of his name she had risen and come
swiftly forward with outstretched hand. Her face
was white and her eyes heavy with anxiety, but he
felt then, as always, the calm nobility of her
carriage. In the added fulness of her figure her
beauty showed majestic.
He took her hand, holding it warmly in his own.
"My dear Eugenia, if you are in trouble, remember
that I am an ignoble edition of Juliet."
"Oh, I want you, not Juliet," she said. "I have
sent for Dudley, but he has not come - I took the
paper at the door by chance - and I find that
Colonel Diggs has brought up that old dead lie
about the governor. He dares to say that the
people of Kingsborough
believe it - the coward! They never
believed it - it is false - as false as the lie itself. Oh,
if I were a man I would kill him for it, but I am a
woman, and you -"
"Kill him!" He laughed harshly. "We don't kill
men who blacken our friend's honour; we wait till
they attack our own lives - that's our code for you.
If it were otherwise, I should act upon it with
pleasure. But I came to see Webb about this thing.
Where is he?"
"Oh, he is coming."
She sat down, keeping her excited eyes upon
him. "It was Bernard, my own brother," she said
passionately. "You know this, and the world must
know it. The world shall know it if I have to utter it
from the housetops. Oh, I have sinned enough in
ignorance; now I will speak."
She bit her lips to keep back the quick tears,
tapping her foot upon the floor. The red was in her
cheeks and her eyes were as black as night. Her
bosom quivered from the lash of her scorn.
"But you must keep out of it, my dear Eugie.
Dudley and I will manage it. We'll see Diggs and
get a retraction from him - that's sensible and
simple. There's no scandal the better for dragging a
woman into it."
She stopped him fiercely. "Then I give you fair
warning. If you do not stop it, I shall. Ah, here's
Dudley!"
She met him as he entered the room, clasping her
hands upon his arm. "Dudley, have you seen it -
this falsehood?"
He let her hands fall from his arm and drew her
with him to the fireside. "Yes; I have seen it," he
answered, and as he shook hands heartily with Galt
he made a casual remark about the weather.
"Oh, Dudley, what does the weather matter?"
cried Eugenia. "No, don't sit down. You are to go
at once to Colonel Diggs and tell him everything
- and not spare any one - and you may tell him
also that - I despise him!"
He smiled at her vehemence - it was so unlike
Eugenia. "I didn't know you took so much interest
in these things," he said lightly. "I thought the baby
had cured you."
But she caught his hand and held it in her own.
"Don't, Dudley," she implored. "You know what it
means to me. You know all."
His face softened as he met her eyes; but instead
of replying to her appeal he turned with a question
to Galt. "Can I do any good?" he asked. "I am
willing, of course, to do what I can."
"I was going to ask you to see Diggs," said Galt
quietly. "We shall endeavour to keep his speech out
of the morning papers, but it has already appeared
in the evening issue. You might secure a card from
him retracting his statements. I hardly think he
knew them to be false."
"I'll go at once," replied Dudley. He went into the
hall and took up his hat, but as Galt opened the door
he lingered an instant and looked at his wife. She
came to him, her eyes shining, and in a flash he
realised that to Eugenia it was a question of his own
honour as well as of the governor's. With a smile he
lifted her chin and met her gaze. "Are you
satisfied, my lady?" he asked; but before
she could respond he had joined Galt upon the
pavement.
There he paused to light a cigar, while Galt
hesitated and looked at his watch. "I suppose I may
leave it in your hands," suggested the older man.
"Diggs isn't on the best of terms with me, you
know."
Dudley took the cigar from his mouth and threw
the match over the railing into the grass. "Oh, I'll do
my best," he answered readily, "and I'll see that the
statements are delivered to the newspapers at
once. I am as much interested in it as you are. It
was a dirty piece of work." And leaving Galt, he
quickened his pace as he crossed the street.
Diggs was at his hotel and somewhat relieved at
the sudden turn of affairs. "Honestly, I hated it," he
frankly admitted. "It's the kind of job I'd like to
wash my hands of. But Major Rann took oath on
the truth of the story, and he convinced me that I
owed it to the community to expose Burr's
character. I don't know why I believed it, except
that it never occurs to one to doubt evil. However,
I'm glad you called. I assure you I'll take more
pleasure in retracting the statements than I did in
making them."
He wrote the notes and gave them into Dudley's
hands. "If they don't get in to-morrow's issue, they
must wait over till election day. It's a pity this is
Saturday - but you'll have them in, I dare say."
"Yes; I'll take them down," said Dudley. He
descended in the elevator, walking rapidly when he
reached the pavement. Diggs's parting words came
back to him and he repeated them as he went. Tomorrow's
was the last paper before election day. If
the speech were reported in the morning issue and
Burr's friends made no denial, there would be, as
far as the country voters were concerned, a silence
of two days. The contest was not yet decided, this
he knew - it would be a close one, and a straw's
weight might turn the scales of public favour. Rann
realised this too, for he did not fling slime at men for
nothing - there was a serious purpose underneath
the last act of his play. He was doing it for the sake
of those Democrats whose constituents were
divided against themselves, and he was trusting to
himself to hold the votes that came his way when
the cloud should have passed from Burr again. It
was all so evident that Dudley held his breath for
one brief instant. The whole scheme lay bare before
him - he had but to drop these letters into the
nearest box, and Rann's purpose would be fulfilled.
In the howl of reprobation that followed the
hounding of Burr his own hour would come. And
granted that the governor was cleared before the
meeting of the caucus - well, men are easier to
keep than to win - and he might not be cleared after
all.
A clock near at hand struck the hour. He raised
his head and saw the "Standard" office across the
street - and the temptation passed as swiftly as it
had come. The instinct of generations was stronger
than the appeal of the moment - he might sin a
great sin, but he could never commit a meanness.
With sudden energy he crossed the street and
ran up the stairs.
Again he was returning to Kingsborough. The
familiar landscape rushed by him on either side -
green meadow and russet woodland, gray swamp
and dwarfed brown hill, unploughed common and
sun-ripened field of corn. It was like the
remembered features of a friend, when the change
that startles the unaccustomed eye seems to exist
less in the well-known face than in the image we
have carried in our thoughts.
It was all there as it had been in his youth - the
same and yet not the same. The old fields were
tilled, the old lands ran waste in broomsedge, but he
himself had left his boyhood far behind - it was his
own vision that was altered, not the face of nature.
The commons were not so wide as he had thought
them, the hills not so high, the hollows not so
deep - even the blue horizon had drawn a closer
circle.
A man on his way to the water-cooler stopped
abruptly at his side. "Well, I declar, if 'tain't the
governor!"
Nicholas looked up, and recognising Jerry
Pollard, shook his outstretched hand. "When did
you leave Kingsborough?" he inquired.
"Oh, I jest ran up this morning to lay in a stock
of winter goods. Trade's thriving this year, and you
have to hustle if you want to keep up with the
tastes of yo' customers. Times have changed since
I had you in my sto'."
"I dare say. I am glad to hear that you are doing
well. Was the judge taken ill before you left
Kingsborough?"
"The judge? Is he sick? I ain't heard nothin' 'bout
it. It wa'n't more'n a week ago that I told him he
was lookin' as young as he did befo' the war. It ain't
often a man can keep his youth like that - but his
Cæsar is just such another. Cæsar was an old man
as far back as I remember, and, bless you, he's
spryer than I am this minute. He'll live to be a
hundred and die of an accident."
"That's good," said the governor with rising
interest. "Kingsborough's a fine place to grow old
in. Did you bring any news up with you?"
"Well, I reckon not. Things were pretty lively
down there last night, but they'd quieted down this
morning. They brought a man over from
Hagersville, you know, and befo' I shut up sto' last
evening Jim Brown came to town, talkin' mighty big
'bout stringin' up the fellow. Jim always did talk,
though, so nobody thought much of it. He likes to
get his mouth in, but he's right particular 'bout his
hand. The sheriff said he warn't lookin' for trouble."
"I'm glad it's over," said the governor. The train
was nearing Kingsborough, and as it stopped he
rose and followed Jerry Pollard to the station.
There was no one he knew in sight, and, with his
bag in his hand, he walked rapidly to the judge's
house. His anxiety had caused him to quicken his
pace, but when he had opened the gate and ascended
the steps he hesitated before entering the hall, and
his breath came shortly. Until that instant he had not
realised the strength of the tie that bound him to the
judge.
The hall was dim and cool, as it had been that
May afternoon when his feet had left tracks of dust
on the shining floor. Straight ahead he saw the
garden, lying graceless and deserted, with the
unkemptness of extreme old age. A sharp breeze
blew from door to door, and the dried grasses on the
wall stirred with a sound like that of the wind among
a bed of rushes.
He mounted the stairs slowly, the weight of his
tread creaking the polished wood. Before the
threshold of the judge's room again he hesitated, his
hand upraised. The house was so still that it seemed
to be untenanted, and he shivered suddenly, as if the
wind that rustled the dried grasses were a ghostly
footstep. Then, as he glanced back down the wide
old stairway, his own childhood looked up at
him - an alien figure, half frightened by the silence.
As he stood there the door opened noiselessly,
and the doctor came out, peering with shortsighted
eyes over his lowered glasses. When he ran against
Nicholas he coughed uncertainly and drew back.
"Well, well, if it isn't the governor!" he said. "We
have been looking for Tom - but our friend the
judge is better - much better. I tell him he'll live yet
to see us buried."
A load passed suddenly from Nicholas's mind.
The ravaged face of the old doctor - with its
wrinkled forehead and its almost invisible eyes - became
at once the mask of a good angel. He
grasped the outstretched hand and crossed the
threshold.
The judge was lying among the pillows of his bed,
his eyes closed, his great head motionless. There
was a bowl of yellow chrysanthemums on a table
beside him, and near it Mrs. Burwell was measuring
dark drops into a wineglass. She looked up with a
smile of welcome that cast a cheerful light about the
room. Her smile and the colour of the
chrysanthemums were in Nicholas's eyes as he
went to the bed and laid his hand upon the still
fingers that clasped the counterpane.
The judge looked at him with a wavering
recognition. "Ah, it is you, Tom," he said, and there
was a yearning in his voice that fell like a gulf
between him and the man who was not his son. At
the moment it came to Nicholas with a great
bitterness that his share of the judge's heart was the
share of an outsider - the crumbs that fall to the
beggar that waits beside the gate. When the soul
has entered the depths and looks back again it is the
face of its own kindred that it craves - the
responsive throbbing of its own blood in another's
veins. This was Tom's place, not his.
He leaned nearer, speaking in an expressionless
voice. "It's I, sir - Nicholas - Nicholas Burr."
"Yes, Nicholas," repeated the judge doubtfully;
"yes, I remember, what does he want? Amos Burr's
son - we must give him a chance."
For a moment he wandered on; then his memory
returned in uncertain pauses. He looked again at the
younger man, his sight grown stronger. "Why,
Nicholas, my dear boy, this is good of you," he exclaimed.
"I had a fall - a slight fall of no
consequence. I shall be all right if Cæsar will let me
fast a while. Cæsar's getting old, I fear, he moves
so slowly."
He was silent, and Nicholas, sitting beside the
bed, kept his eyes on the delicate features that were
the lingering survival of a lost type. The splendid
breadth of the brow, the classic nose, the firm, thin
lips, and the shaven chin - these were all downstairs
on faded canvases, magnificent over lace ruffles, or
severe above folded stocks. Over the pillows the
chrysanthemums shed a golden light that mingled in
his mind with the warm brightness of Mrs. Burwell's
smile - giving the room the festive glimmer of an
autumn garden.
A little later Cæsar shuffled forward, the
wine-glass in his hand. The judge turned towards
him. "Is that you, Cæsar?" he asked.
The old negro hurried to the bedside. "Here I is,
Marse George; I'se right yer."
The judge laughed softly. "I wouldn't take five
thousand dollars for you, Cæsar," he said. "Tom
Battle offered me one thousand for you, and I told
him I wouldn't take five. You are worth it, Cæsar
- every cent of it - but there's no man alive shall
own you. You're free, Cæsar - do you hear, you're
free!"
"Thanky, Marse George," said Cæsar. He passed
his arm under the judge's head and raised him as
he would a child. As the glass touched his lips the
judge spoke in a clear voice. "To the ladies!" he
cried.
"He is regaining the use of his limbs," whispered
Mrs. Burwell softly. "He will be well again," and
Nicholas left the room and went downstairs. At the
door he gave his instructions to a woman servant.
"I shall return to spend the night," he said. "You will
see that my room is ready. Yes, I'll be back to
supper." He had had no dinner, but at the moment
this was forgotten. In the relief that had come to
him he wanted solitude and the breadth of the open
fields. He was going over the old ground again - to
breathe the air and feel the dust of the Old Stage
Road.
He passed the naked walls of the church and
followed the wide white street to the college gate.
Then, turning, he faced the way to his father's farm
and the distant pines emblazoned on the west.
A clear gold light flooded the landscape, warming
the pale dust of the deserted road. The air was keen
with the autumn tang, and as he walked the quick
blood leaped to his cheeks. He was no longer
conscious of his forty years - his boyhood was with
him, and middle age was a dream, or less than a
dream.
In the branch road a fall of tawny leaves hid the
ruts of wheels, and the sun, striking the ground like
a golden lance, sent out sharp, fiery sparks as from
a mine of light. Overhead the red trees rustled.
It was here that Eugenia had ridden beside him in
the early morning - here he had seen her face
against the enkindled branches - and here he had
placed the scarlet gum leaves in her horse's bridle.
The breeze in the wood came to him like the echo
of her laugh, faded as the memory of his past
passion. Well, he had more than most men, for he
had the ghost of a laugh and the shadow of love.
Passing his father's house, he went on beyond the
fallen shanty of Uncle Ish into the twilight of the
cedars. At the end of the avenue he saw the rows
of box - twisted and tall with age - leading to the
empty house, where the stone steps were wreathed
in vines. Did Eugenia ever come back, he
wondered, or was the house to crumble as Miss
Chris's rookery had done? On the porch he saw the
marks made by the general's chair, which had been
removed, and on one of the long green benches
there was an E cut in a childish hand. At a window
above - Eugenia's window - a shutter hung back
upon its hinges, and between the muslin curtains it
seemed to him that a face looked out and
smiled - not the face of Eugenia, but a ghost again,
the ghost of his old romance.
He went into the garden, crossing the cattle lane,
where the footprints of the cows were fresh in the
dust. Near at hand he heard a voice shouting. It
was the voice of the overseer, but the sound startled
him, and he awoke abruptly to himself and his forty
years. The spell of the past was broken - even the
riotous old garden, blending its many colours in a
single blur, could not bring it back. The
chrysanthemums and the roses and the hardy zenias
that came up uncared for were powerless to
reinvoke the spirit of the place. If Eugenia, in her
full-blown motherhood, had risen in an overgrown
path he might have passed her by unheeding. His
Eugenia was a girl in a muslin gown, endowed with
immortal youth - the youth of visions unfulfilled
and desire unquenched. His Eugenia could never
grow old - could never alter - could never leave
the eternal
sunshine of dead autumns. In his nostrils was the
keen sweetness of old-fashioned flowers, but his
thoughts were not of them, and, turning presently,
he went back as he had come. It was dark when at
last he reached the judge's house and sat down to
supper.
He was with the judge until midnight, when,
before going to his room, he descended the stairs
and went out upon the porch. He had been thinking
of the elections three days hence, and the outcome
seemed to him more hopeful than it had done when
he first came forward as a candidate. The
uncertainty was almost as great, this he granted; but
behind him he believed to be the pressure of the
people's will - which the schemes of politicians had
not turned. Tuesday would prove nothing - nor had
the conventions that had been held; when the
meeting of the caucus came, he would still be ignorance -
unaware of traps that had been laid or
surprises to be sprung. It was the mark to which his
ambition had aimed - the end to which his career
had faced - that now rose before him, and yet in his
heart there was neither elation nor distrust. He had
done his best - he had fought fairly and well, and he
awaited what the day might bring forth.
Above him a full moon was rising, and across the
green the crooked path wound like a silver thread,
leading to the glow of a night-lamp that burned in a
sick-room. The night, the air, the shuttered houses
were as silent as the churchyard, where the
tombstones glimmered, row on row. Only
somewhere on the vacant green a hound bayed at
the moon.
He looked out an instant longer, and was turning
back, when his eye caught a movement among the
shadows in the distant lane. A quick thought came
to him, and he kept his gaze beneath the heavy
maples, where the moonshine fell in flecks. For a
moment all was still, and then into the light came the
figure of a man. Another followed, another, and
another, passing again into the dark and then out into
the brightness that led into the little gully far beyond.
There was no sound except the baying of the dog;
the figures went on, noiseless and orderly and grim,
from dark to light and from light again to dark.
There were at most a dozen men, and they might
have been a band of belated workmen returning to
their homes or a line of revellers that had been
sobered into silence. They might have been - but a
sudden recollection came to him, and he closed the
door softly and went out. There was but one thing
that it meant; this he knew. It meant a midnight
attack on the gaol, and a man dead before morning,
who must die anyway - it meant vengeance so quiet
yet so determined that it was as sure as the hand of
God - and it meant the defiance of laws whose
guardian he was.
He broke into a run, crossing the green and
following the path that rose and fell into the gullies
as it led on to the gaol. As he ran he saw the glow
of the night-lamp in the sick-room, and he heard the
insistent baying of the hound.
The moonlight was thick and full. It showed the
quiet hill flanked by the open pasture; and it showed
the little whitewashed gaol, and the late roses
blooming on the fence. It showed also the mob that
had
gathered - a gathering as quiet as a congregation at
prayer. But in the silence was the danger - the
determination to act that choked back speech - the
grimness of the justice that walks at night - the
triumph of a lawless rage that knows control.
As he reached the hill he saw that the men he
had followed had been enforced by others from
different roads. It was not an outbreak of swift
desperation, but a well-planned, well-ordered
strategy; it was not a mob that he faced, but an
incarnate vengeance.
He came upon it quickly, and as he did so he saw
that the sheriff was ahead of him, standing, a single
man, between his prisoner and the rope. "For God's
sake, men, I haven't got the keys," he called out.
Nicholas swung himself over the fence and made
his way to the entrance beneath the steps that led to
the floor above. He had come as one of the men
about him, and they had not heeded him. Now, as
he faced them from the shadow he saw here and
there a familiar face - the face of a boy he had
played with in childhood. Several were masked, but
the others raised bare features to the
moonlight - features that were as familiar as his
own.
Then he stood up and spoke. "Men, listen to me.
In the name of the Law, I swear to you that justice
shall be done - I swear."
A voice came from somewhere. "We ain't here
to talk - you stand aside, and we'll show you what
we're here for."
Again he began. "I swear to you -"
"We don't want no swearing." On the outskirts
of the crowd a man laughed. "We don't want no
swearing," the voice repeated.
The throng pressed forward, and he saw the
faces that he knew crowding closer. A black cloud
shut out the moonlight. Above the pleading of the
sheriff's tones he heard the distant baying of the
hound.
He tried to speak again. "We'll be damned, but
we'll get the nigger!" called some one beside him.
The words struck him like a blow. He saw red, and
the sudden rage upheld him. He knew that he was
to fight - a blind fight for he cared not what. The old
savage instinct blazed within him - the instinct to do
battle to death - to throttle with his single hand the
odds that opposed. With a grip of iron he braced
himself against the doorway, covering the entrance.
"I'll be damned if you do!" he thundered.
A quick shot rang out sharply. The flash blinded
him, and the smoke hung in his face. Then the moon
shone and he heard a cry - the cry of a well-known
voice.
"By God, it's Nick Burr!" it said. He took a step
forward.
"Boys, I am Nick Burr," he cried, and he went
down in the arms of the mob.
They raised him up, and he stood erect between
the leaders. There was blood on his lips, but a man
tore off a mask and wiped it away. "By God, it's
Nick Burr!" he exclaimed as he did so.
Nicholas recognised his voice and smiled. His
face was gray, but his eyes were shining, and as he
steadied himself with all his strength, he said with
a laugh. "There's no harm done, man." But when
they laid him down a moment later he was dead.
He lay in the narrow path between the doorstep
and the gate where roses bloomed. Some one had
started for the nearest house, but the crowd stood
motionless about him. "By God, it's Nick Burr!"
repeated the man who had held him.
The sheriff knelt on the ground and raised him in
his arms. As he folded his coat about him he looked
up and spoke.
"And he died for a damned brute," was what he
said.
It was the afternoon of election day, and Eugenia
sat in her drawing-room with Sally Bassett.
Outside there was the sound of tramping feet, for
the people were giving him burial. They had been
passing so for half an hour and they still went on,
on, on - he was going to his grave in state.
"There are the drums," said Sally, turning her ear.
"All Virginia has come to town, I believe. The
whole city is in mourning, and by and by they will
put up his statue in the Capitol Square - but if he
had lived, would he have had the senatorship?"
"Ah, who knows?" said Eugenia. She played idly
with the spoon of her teacup, her eyes on the coals.
"As you say - who knows?" murmured the
other. "And, after all, it is perhaps better that he
died just now. He would have tried to lift us too
high, and we should have fallen back. He was a
hero, and the public can't always keep to the heroic
level."
There were tears in her voice.
Eugenia drank her tea and said nothing.
After Sally had gone she still sat with her cup in
her hand before the fire. Her child was rolling on
the floor at her feet, but she did not stoop to him.
She was not thinking - she was merely resting from
emotion - as she would rest for the remainder of
her days.
The sound of tramping feet died away. The cars
passed once more, and along the block a boy went
whistling a tune. Everything was beginning again
- everything would go on as it had gone since the
dawn of time, and she would go with it. The best or
the worst of it was that she would go happily -
neither regretting nor despairing, but filled to the
finger-tips with the cheerful energy of a busy life.
Suddenly she caught up her child with a frantic
rapture and held him to her bosom, kissing the small
hands that reached up to her lips. This was her
portion, and even to-day she was content.
An hour later Dudley found her sitting there when
he entered, and as he straightened himself against
the mantel he looked down on her with an
affectionate gaze.
"He was a great man," he said simply, and his
generous spirit rang in his voice.
"Yes, he was a great man," repeated Eugenia.
She looked up at her husband as he stood before her
- buoyant with expectation, mellowed by the glow
of assured success. He smiled into her face, and
she smiled back again with quick tenderness. Then
she bent above her child and kissed his lips, and the
sunlight coming from the day without shone in her
eyes.
Return to Menu Page for The Voice of the People by E. A. G. Glasgow Return to A Digitized Library of Southern Literature, Beginnings to 1920 Home Page Return to Documenting the American South Home Page
Page 211
Page 212
Page 213
Page 214
Page 215
Page 216
Page 217
Page 218
Page 219
Page 220
Page 221
Page 222IV
Page 223
Page 224
Page 225
Page 226
Page 227
Page 228
Page 229
Page 230
Page 231
Page 232
Page 233
Page 234
Page 235V
Page 236
Page 237
Page 238
Page 239
Page 240
Page 241
Page 242
Page 243
Page 244
Page 245
Page 246
Page 247
"I love Love, though he has wings,
And like light can flee -"
Page 248
Page 249VI
Page 250
Page 251
Page 252
Page 253
Page 254
Page 255
Page 256
Page 257
Page 258
Page 259
Page 260VII
Page 261
Page 262
Page 263
Page 264
Page 265
Page 266
Page 267
Page 268
Page 269
Page 270VIII
Page 271
Page 272
Page 273
Page 274
Page 275
Page 276
Page 277
Page 278
Page 279
Page 280
Page 281
Page 282
Page 283
Page 287BOOK IV
THE MAN AND THE TIMES
I
Page 288
Page 289
Page 290
Page 291
Page 292
Page 293
Page 294
Page 295
Page 296
Page 297
Page 298II
Page 299
Page 300
Page 301
Page 302
Page 303
Page 304
Page 305
Page 306
Page 307
Page 308
Page 309III
Page 310
Page 311
Page 312
Page 313
Page 314
Page 315
Page 316
Page 317
Page 318
Page 319
Page 320
Page 321IV
Page 322
Page 323
Page 324
Page 325
Page 326
Page 327
Page 328
Page 329
Page 330
Page 331
Page 332
Page 333V
Page 334
Page 335
Page 336
Page 337
Page 338
Page 339
Page 340
Page 341
Page 342
Page 343
Page 344VI
Page 345
Page 346
Page 347
Page 348
Page 349
Page 350
Page 351
Page 352
Page 353
Page 354
Page 355VII
Page 356
Page 357
Page 358
Page 359
Page 360
Page 361
Page 362
Page 363
Page 364
Page 365
Page 366VIII
Page 367
Page 368
Page 369
Page 370
Page 371
Page 372
Page 373
Page 374
Page 375
Page 376
Page 377
Page 378IX
Page 379
Page 380
Page 381
Page 382
Page 383
Page 384
Page 385
Page 386
Page 389BOOK V
THE HOUR AND THE MAN
I
Page 390
Page 391
Page 392
Page 393
Page 394
Page 395
Page 396
Page 397II
Page 398
Page 399
Page 400
Page 401
Page 402
Page 403
Page 404
Page 405III
Page 406
Page 407
Page 408
Page 409
Page 410
Page 411
Page 412
Page 413
Page 414
Page 415
Page 416
Page 417IV
Page 418
Page 419
Page 420
Page 421
Page 422
Page 423
Page 424
Page 425
Page 426
Page 427
Page 428
Page 429
Page 430
Page 431V
Page 432
Page 433
Page 434
Page 435
Page 436
Page 437
Page 438
Page 439
Page 440
Page 441
Page 442
Page 443VI
Page 444